that_o constantinus_n have_v against_o maxentius_n séeinge_v therefore_o none_o of_o all_o these_o cross_n that_o m._n hardinge_n have_v here_o find_v out_o either_o have_v any_o image_n hang_v on_o it_o or_o be_v erect_v in_o any_o church_n or_o adour_v of_o the_o people_n how_o can_v all_o these_o word_n stand_v he_o in_o steed_n to_o serve_v his_o purpose_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .4_o division_n concern_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o saint_n time_n that_o they_o have_v be_v great_o esteem_v and_o use_v in_o house_n 1._o church_n and_o place_n of_o prayer_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n forward_o it_o be_v so_o evident_a that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v athanasius_n write_v that_o nicodeme_n who_o come_v to_o jesus_n by_o night_n make_v a_o image_n of_o christ_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o that_o when_o he_o lie_v in_o his_o death_n bed_n he_o deliver_v it_o to_o gamaliel_n who_o be_v s._n paul_n schoolmaster_n gamaliel_n when_o he_o see_v he_o shall_v dye_v leafy_a it_o to_o james_n fable_n james_n leave_v it_o to_o simon_n and_o zachaeus_n this_o image_n come_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n by_o succession_n and_o continue_v a_o long_a time_n in_o hierusalemâ_n from_o jerusalem_n it_o be_v carry_v into_o syria_n and_o at_o length_n it_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o city_n berytus_n not_o far_o from_o tyre_n and_o sydon_n where_o how_o despiteful_o it_o be_v use_v of_o the_o jew_n athanasius_n and_o what_o wonder_n ensue_v thereupon_o who_o listen_v to_o know_v he_o may_v read_v it_o large_o declare_v in_o a_o little_a book_n write_v by_o athanasius_n of_o that_o mattier_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n the_o reader_n of_o himself_o if_o he_o be_v not_o over_o simple_a may_v soon_o espy_v the_o simplicity_n of_o this_o fable_n a_o christian_a man_n remove_v his_o household_n and_o have_v there_o a_o image_n of_o christ_n equal_a unto_o he_o in_o length_n and_o breadthe_v and_o all_o proportion_n by_o forgeatefulnes_n leave_v it_o there_o in_o a_o secret_a place_n behind_o he_o a_o jew_n after_o he_o inhabit_v the_o same_o house_n a_o long_a while_n and_o see_v it_o not_o a_o other_o strange_a jew_n sittinge_n there_o at_o dinner_n immediate_o eâpieth_v it_o stand_a open_a against_o a_o wall_n all_o this_o m._n hardinge_n athanasius_n thus_o it_o stand_v open_a and_o yet_o it_o be_v hide_v it_o be_v hide_v and_o yet_o it_o stand_v open_a afterward_o the_o priest_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o jew_n come_v together_o &_o abuse_v it_o with_o all_o villainy_n they_o crown_v it_o with_o a_o thorn_n make_v it_o drink_v esel_n and_o gal_n and_o stick_v it_o to_o the_o heart_n with_o a_o spear_n out_o issue_v blood_n in_o great_a quantity_n the_o power_n of_o heaven_n be_v shake_v the_o sun_n be_v darken_v the_o moon_n lose_v her_o light_n and_o from_o thence_o âª_o saithe_n this_o young_a athanasius_n we_o have_v the_o blood_n of_o hailes_n and_o all_o other_o like_o blood_n throughout_o the_o world_n to_o be_v short_a the_o first_o word_n of_o the_o book_n be_v iraque_fw-la m._n hardinge_n himself_o be_v ashamed_a to_o report_v the_o tale_n yet_o must_v it_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o athanasius_n and_o be_v never_o so_o childish_a a_o fable_n yet_o it_o must_v have_v the_o forewarde_n to_o prove_v adoration_n of_o image_n only_o he_o tell_v we_o a_o long_a genealogy_n of_o the_o name_n of_o nicodemus_n gamaliel_n james_n simon_n &_o zachaeus_n to_o astonne_n the_o reader_n and_o to_o make_v he_o think_v the_o better_a of_o it_o how_o be_v it_o all_o this_o notwithstanding_o this_o image_n be_v neither_o church_v nor_o adour_v or_o woorship_v either_o of_o priest_n or_o people_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .5_o division_n eusebius_n caesariensis_n in_o the_o seventhe_n book_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a story_n 14._o write_v of_o the_o ancient_a image_n of_o christ_n make_v in_o brass_n and_o of_o the_o woman_n that_o be_v heal_v by_o our_o saviour_n of_o her_o blouddye_a flix_a in_o the_o city_n of_o phoenicâa_n call_v caesarea_n philippi_n whereof_o that_o woman_n be_v a_o citizen_n which_o image_n he_o saithe_v he_o see_v as_o likewise_o the_o image_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n keep_v by_o some_o of_o old_a time_n and_o there_o he_o confess_v that_o the_o image_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n and_o of_o our_o saviour_n be_v in_o his_o time_n make_v and_o paint_v in_o âables_n ãâã_d and_o set_v forth_o after_o eusebius_n death_n julian_n the_o renegade_n take_v down_o this_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o set_v up_o his_o own_o in_o the_o same_o place_n which_o with_o violente_fw-la fire_n that_o fall_v from_o heaven_n be_v clefte_v asunder_o in_o the_o breast_n the_o head_n break_v of_o with_o a_o piece_n of_o the_o neck_n and_o stickte_v in_o the_o ground_n the_o rest_n of_o it_o soremain_v long_o after_o as_o a_o token_n of_o lightninge_n and_o god_n displeasure_n may_v be_v reserve_v that_o image_n of_o christ_n after_o that_o the_o painime_n have_v hale_v pull_v break_a and_o mangle_v it_o villainous_o by_o the_o christian_n be_v take_v up_o set_v together_o and_o place_v in_o the_o church_n where_o it_o be_v yet_o reserve_v saithe_v socrates_n of_o his_o time_n of_o the_o miraculouse_a herb_n that_o grow_v at_o the_o foot_n of_o this_o image_n which_o after_o that_o it_o have_v grow_v so_o high_a that_o it_o touch_v the_o image_n skirt_n take_v and_o minister_v be_v a_o medicine_n and_o present_a remedy_n for_o all_o disease_n as_o eusebius_n write_v because_o it_o pertain_v not_o special_o to_o the_o matter_n of_o image_n i_o rehearse_v nothing_o the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n eusebius_n himself_o show_v that_o the_o phoenicians_n be_v heathen_n and_o hear_v and_o seeinge_v the_o strange_a miracle_n that_o have_v be_v wrought_v by_o christ_n and_o by_o his_o apostle_n make_v these_o image_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o they_o only_o of_o their_o heathenish_a 18._o and_o vain_a superstition_n his_o word_n be_v these_o nec_fw-la mirum_fw-la est_fw-la veteres_n ethnicos_fw-la beneficio_fw-la affectos_fw-la à _fw-la seruatore_fw-la nostro_fw-la ista_fw-la fecisse_fw-la no_o &_o apostolorum_fw-la pauli_n ãâã_d &_o petri_n &_o ipsius_fw-la christi_fw-la imagine_v coloribus_fw-la ductas_fw-la &_o seruatas_fw-la vidimus_fw-la et_fw-la credibile_fw-la est_fw-la priscos_fw-la illos_fw-la homines_fw-la non_fw-la dum_fw-la relicta_fw-la avita_fw-la superstitione_n ad_fw-la hunc_fw-la modum_fw-la consuevisse_fw-la colere_fw-la illos_fw-la ethnica_fw-la consueââdine_fw-la ranquam_fw-la seruatores_fw-la it_o be_v no_o marvel_v that_o the_o heathen_n receivinge_v such_o benefit_n of_o our_o saviour_n do_v these_o thing_n for_o we_o have_v see_v the_o image_n of_o pauâe_n of_o peter_n and_o of_o christ_n draw_v in_o colour_n and_o preserve_v and_o it_o may_v well_o be_v think_v that_o man_n in_o old_a time_n be_v not_o yet_o remoove_v from_o the_o superstition_n of_o their_o father_n use_v after_o this_o sort_n to_o worship_n they_o by_o a_o heathenish_a custom_n as_o their_o saveour_n by_o these_o word_n of_o eusebius_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o use_n of_o image_n come_v not_o from_o christ_n or_o from_o the_o apostle_n as_o m._n hardinge_n saithe_v but_o from_o the_o superstitious_a custom_n of_o the_o heathen_n neither_o doothe_v it_o appear_v that_o those_o image_n be_v set_v up_o in_o any_o church_n 18._o as_o for_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v plain_a it_o stand_v in_o the_o street_n abroad_o and_o a_o herb_n of_o strange_a operation_n grow_v underneath_o it_o julianus_n that_o renegade_n that_o once_o have_v profess_v christ_n and_o afterwards_o wilful_o renounce_v he_o take_v down_o that_o image_n of_o christ_n not_o to_o withdraw_v the_o people_n from_o idolatry_n but_o in_o malice_n and_o despite_n of_o that_o new_a religion_n and_o erect_v up_o his_o own_o image_n to_o the_o intent_n the_o people_n shall_v worship_v it_o purposely_o to_o deface_v christ_n even_o as_o they_o do_v now_o that_o wilfu_o break_v god_n commandment_n 15._o to_o uphold_v and_o maintain_v their_o own_o tradition_n of_o who_o s._n basile_n write_v thus_o 14._o who_o so_o forbid_v we_o to_o do_v that_o god_n command_v or_o command_v we_o to_o do_v that_o god_n forebid_v be_v accurse_v unto_o all_o they_o that_o love_v the_o lord_n therefore_o god_n stroke_n julians_n image_n from_o heaven_n with_o lightning_n and_o rend_v it_o in_o piece_n 8._o in_o token_n of_o his_o revengeance_n like_a as_o also_o when_o a_o other_o julian_n precedent_n of_o the_o east_n have_v spoil_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n &_o in_o like_a despite_n of_o christ_n sit_v upon_o the_o holy_a communion_n cup_n god_n smite_v he_o sudden_o in_o the_o secret_a part_n with_o such_o a_o disease_n as_o never_o afterward_o can_v be_v cure_v m._n hardinge_n the_o .6_o division_n it_o be_v evident_a by_o chrysostom_n mass_n that_o there_o be_v some_o use_n of_o image_n in_o the_o church_n
must_v pull_v out_o and_o cast_v from_o he_o his_o affection_n his_o good_n and_o his_o friend_n for_o the_o gospel_n sake_n you_o though_o he_o love_v they_o as_o his_o eye_n and_o if_o the_o picarde_n take_v it_o otherwise_o it_o be_v a_o error_n of_o simplicity_n much_o like_o the_o error_n of_o origen_n 8._o and_o certain_a other_o who_z as_o it_o be_v write_v of_o they_o gross_o and_o accord_v to_o the_o letter_n gheld_v themselves_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n or_o the_o error_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o upon_o small_a occasion_n of_o these_o word_n obedientâa_fw-la ecce_fw-la duo_fw-la gladij_fw-la hâc_fw-la behold_v here_o be_v two_o swearde_n claim_v unto_o himself_o both_o the_o spiritual_a and_o also_o the_o temporal_a swearde_n sanctam_fw-la &_o so_o the_o whole_a jurisdiction_n of_o all_o the_o world_n the_o forbear_n of_o blood_n and_o strangle_v meat_n 15._o begin_v emonge_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n not_o as_o of_o god_n commandment_n or_o to_o continue_v for_o ever_o but_o only_o of_o charity_n to_o bear_v with_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o jew_n until_o they_o may_v grow_v to_o a_o perfect_a knowledge_n in_o christ_n during_o which_o weakness_n this_o charitable_a order_n among_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o faithful_a christian_n continue_v still_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o tertullian_n by_o arnobius_n by_o eusebius_n by_o oecumenius_n and_o other_o but_o after_o that_o the_o jew_n be_v thorough_o persuade_v that_o all_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v clean_o this_o forbearinge_n which_o begin_v only_o for_o their_o sake_n have_v a_o end_n but_o how_o can_v m._n hardinge_n apply_v these_o thing_n to_o his_o purpose_n or_o how_o can_v he_o hereby_o warrant_v the_o manifest_a breach_n of_o christ_n institution_n the_o church_n in_o every_o of_o these_o order_n be_v direct_v and_o guide_v by_o god_n word_n touchinge_v kill_v god_n saithe_v unto_o the_o magistrate_n thou_o shall_v not_o suffer_v the_o wicked_a to_o live_v touchinge_v swearinge_n âª_o god_n saithe_v 5._o thou_o shall_v swear_v in_o truth_n in_o judgement_n and_o in_o justice._n touchinge_v pullinge_a out_o of_o our_o eye_n s._n paul_n saithe_v no_o man_n ever_o hate_v his_o own_o flesh_n but_o do_v nourish_v and_o chearishe_a it_o and_o touchinge_v blood_n and_o strangle_v meat_n christ_n saithe_v the_o thing_n that_o enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n defile_v not_o the_o man_n and_o s._n paul_n saithe_v every_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v good_a therefore_o the_o church_n in_o these_o case_n divise_v no_o new_a thing_n of_o herself_o nor_o break_v any_o of_o god_n ordinance_n but_o only_o follow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n now_o of_o the_o other_o part_n let_v m._n hardinge_n show_v what_o word_n of_o god_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v to_o follow_v in_o thorder_v of_o the_o half_a communion_n where_o do_v christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n ever_o say_v let_v not_o the_o people_n receive_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n as_o it_o be_v ordain_v at_o the_o first_o but_o let_v it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o to_o receive_v one_o portion_n if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o commandment_n to_o be_v show_v then_o be_v not_o these_o case_n like_a and_o if_o the_o case_n be_v not_o like_a why_o do_v m._n hardinge_n deceive_v the_o world_n and_o compare_v they_o thus_o together_o as_o though_o they_o be_v like_o what_o trow_v he_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o obey_v god_n commandment_n and_o break_v god_n commandment_n 20._o or_o think_v he_o because_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o abraham_n have_v god_n commandment_n to_o have_v slay_v his_o son_n isaac_n that_o therefore_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o slay_v ishmael_n also_o have_v no_o commandment_n it_o be_v a_o dangerous_a doctrine_n to_o say_v the_o church_n be_v omnipotent_a and_o may_v allow_v or_o disallow_v god_n commandment_n without_o difference_n 3._o at_o her_o pleasure_n for_o as_o it_o be_v discret_o note_v by_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n and_o martian_a who_o so_o ever_o after_o the_o truth_n be_v once_o find_v seek_v further_a he_o seek_v for_o a_o lie_n and_o not_o for_o the_o truth_n but_o to_o minister_v unto_o the_o vulgar_a lie_v people_n in_o both_o kind_n saithe_n m._n hardinge_n be_v not_o christ_n institution_n thus_o he_o saithe_v and_o saithe_v it_o often_o and_o only_o saithe_v it_o other_o authority_n than_o his_o own_o he_o bring_v none_o the_o reason_n that_o move_v he_o i_o ween_v be_v this_o for_o that_o there_o be_v not_o say_v people_n at_o that_o banquet_n with_o christ_n but_o the_o apostle_n only_o but_o this_o reason_n will_v spoil_v the_o say_v people_n not_o of_o one_o part_n only_o but_o of_o all_o together_o proroganda_fw-la sure_o one_o lorichius_n a_o doctor_n of_o m._n hardings_n own_o side_n saithe_v thus_o ipsius_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la institutio_fw-la vult_fw-la ut_fw-la omnes_fw-la unà _fw-la manducemus_fw-la &_o bibamus_fw-la the_o very_a institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n will_v that_o we_o all_o eat_v and_o drink_v together_o m._n hardinge_n doctor_n saithe_v it_o be_v christ_n institution_n m._n hardinge_n himself_o say_v it_o be_v not_o christ_n institution_n whether_o of_o they_o two_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v i_o leave_v it_o to_o other_o how_o be_v it_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n while_o these_o doctor_n can_v better_o agree_v it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o christ_n minister_v unto_o his_o disciple_n the_o whole_a sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n &_o give_v they_o in_o charge_n in_o plain_a express_a word_n to_o do_v the_o same_o but_o of_o the_o half_a communion_n in_o one_o kind_n christ_n neither_o give_v they_o charge_n nor_o speak_v any_o one_o word_n at_o al._n if_o m._n hardinge_n will_v reply_v that_o christ_n word_n in_o this_o case_n be_v doubtful_a &_o may_v be_v diverse_o take_v yet_o be_v that_o objection_n already_o answer_v for_o the_o law_n saithe_v de_fw-fr si_fw-mi de_fw-fr interpretatione_n legis_fw-la quaeratur_fw-la in_fw-la primis_fw-la inspiciendum_fw-la est_fw-la quo_fw-la jure_fw-la civitas_fw-la retrò_fw-la in_o huiusmodi_fw-la casibus_fw-la usa_fw-la fuerit_fw-la optima_fw-la enim_fw-la est_fw-la legum_n interpretatio_fw-la consuetudo_fw-la if_o question_n happen_v to_o be_v move_v touchinge_v the_o meaning_n of_o a_o law_n first_o of_o all_o we_o must_v see_v what_o order_n have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o like_a case_n in_o time_n past_a for_o the_o custom_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o people_n be_v the_o best_a expounder_n of_o the_o law_n now_o it_o appear_v plain_o that_o the_o custom_n &_o practice_n of_o the_o pure_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o other_o old_a catholic_a father_n be_v to_o minister_v unto_o the_o people_n in_o both_o kind_n whereof_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o the_o same_o be_v christ_n institution_n &_o very_a meaning_n but_o if_o m._n harding_n will_v apply_v thautoritie_n of_o custom_n unto_o his_o purpose_n for_o that_o the_o common_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o a_o few_o late_a year_n have_v be_v to_o the_o contrary_a that_o therefore_o this_o be_v christ_n meaning_n this_o objection_n be_v also_o soon_o answer_v for_o both_o law_n &_o common_a reason_n saithe_v in_o ambiguo_fw-la sermone_fw-la non_fw-la utrunque_fw-la dicââus_fw-la sed_fw-la id_fw-la duntaxat_fw-la quod_fw-la volumus_fw-la ambiguo_fw-la in_o a_o doubtful_a speech_n we_o speak_v not_o both_o the_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v geather_v but_o that_o thing_n only_o that_o we_o mean_v now_o if_o christ_n mean_v both_o the_o order_n that_o be_v practise_v by_o thapostle_n &_o old_a father_n and_o also_o the_o contrary_a order_n that_o of_o late_o have_v be_v practise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o have_v christ_n at_o one_o time_n and_o in_o the_o utteringe_a of_o one_o sentence_n not_o only_o two_o but_o also_o diverse_a and_o contrary_a meaning_n and_o so_o by_o m._n hardinge_n judgement_n christ_n must_v needs_o construe_v his_o own_o word_n in_o this_o wise_a drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o i_o mean_v set_v priste_n only_o drink_v of_o this_o drink_v you_o all_o i_o mean_v some_o may_v not_o drink_v drink_v you_o all_o i_o mean_v contrary_a drink_v you_o not_o al._n and_o when_o i_o say_v do_v you_o the_o same_o that_o i_o have_v do_v my_o meaning_n be_v otherwise_o do_v not_o the_o same_o that_o i_o have_v do_v o_o m._n hardinge_n it_o be_v a_o old_a saiing_n maledicta_fw-la glosa_fw-la quae_fw-la corrumpit_fw-la textum_fw-la curse_v be_v that_o gloaâinge_a construction_n that_o destroy_v the_o text_n the_o say_v the_o priest_n be_v bind_v of_o necessity_n to_o receive_v both_o kinds_a but_o the_o say_v people_n be_v not_o bind_v and_o so_o you_o conclude_v that_o christ_n ordain_v two_o sundry_a communion_n the_o one_o not_o like_o the_o other_o the_o one_o for_o the_o priest_n the_o other_o for_o the_o people_n and_o therefore_o by_o your_o advice_n hieronym_n we_o
natural_a body_n for_o as_o it_o be_v true_a that_o god_n be_v make_v man_n even_o so_o and_o in_o like_a sense_n it_o be_v also_o true_a that_o man_n be_v make_v god_n without_o any_o change_n of_o substance_n of_o either_o nature_n and_o therefore_o the_o father_n say_v christ_n body_n be_v deify_v or_o make_v god_n for_o that_o it_o be_v unite_v in_o person_n and_o glory_n with_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n to_o this_o purpose_n 1._o although_o not_o altogether_o in_o like_a sense_n s._n augustine_n seem_v to_o say_v that_o man_n be_v deify_v and_o make_v god_n thus_o he_o write_v homines_fw-la dixit_fw-la deos_fw-la ex_fw-la gratia_n sva_fw-la deificatos_n non_fw-fr de_fw-fr substantia_fw-la sva_fw-la natos_fw-la he_o call_v man_n god_n as_o be_v deify_v and_o so_o make_v by_o his_o grace_n but_o not_o as_o bear_v so_o of_o his_o substance_n so_o say_v dionysius_n pontifex_fw-la ipse_fw-la mutatur_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la the_o bishop_n himself_o be_v turn_v into_o god_n likewise_o s._n cyprian_n call_v the_o scripture_n ãâã_d scripturas_fw-la deificas_fw-la the_o scripture_n that_o make_v man_n god_n and_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n say_v sacrae_fw-la literae_fw-la nos_fw-la deificant_fw-la the_o holy_a scripture_n make_v we_o god_n 8._o by_o these_o and_o other_o like_a word_n be_v mean_v not_o that_o man_n be_v change_v from_o their_o own_o natural_a substance_n and_o in_o deed_n become_v god_n as_o the_o letter_n seem_v to_o import_v protreptico_fw-la but_o only_o that_o man_n be_v endue_v with_o godly_a virtue_n and_o quality_n and_o so_o make_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o so_o dionysius_n himself_o also_o say_v 1._o hae_fw-la mutatio_fw-la nostri_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la est_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la similitudo_fw-la quantam_fw-la capere_fw-la natura_fw-la potest_fw-la this_o changinge_v of_o we_o into_o god_n be_v the_o likeness_n or_o image_n of_o god_n within_o we_o as_o far_o as_o nature_n can_v receive_v but_o s._n hierome_n say_v christ_n flesh_n have_v double_a understand_v and_o may_v be_v take_v either_o for_o his_o spiritual_a or_o divine_a flesh_n or_o else_o for_o his_o mortal_a flesh_n as_o it_o be_v crucify_a and_o be_v think_v to_o make_v much_o for_o m._n hardinge_n for_o answer_n hereunto_o first_o of_o all_o this_o one_o thing_n i_o pray_v thou_o good_a reader_n to_o consider_v that_o s._n hierome_n in_o that_o whole_a place_n speak_v not_o one_o word_n neither_o of_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o of_o any_o real_a or_o fleash_o presence_n therefore_o m._n hardinge_n can_v have_v but_o very_o poor_a help_v hereof_o to_o prove_v his_o purpose_n only_o he_o expound_v what_o s._n paul_n mean_v by_o these_o word_n 1._o we_o have_v redemption_n by_o his_o blood_n and_o his_o meaning_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o whole_a drift_n of_o his_o word_n be_v this_o that_o the_o salvation_n which_o we_o have_v in_o christ_n stand_v not_o in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o mere_a natural_a man_n as_o be_v codrus_n decius_n curtius_n or_o such_o other_o that_o die_v for_o the_o safety_n and_o delivery_n of_o their_o country_n but_o in_o that_o his_o humanity_n be_v unite_v and_o join_v in_o one_o person_n with_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n 1._o his_o word_n be_v these_o quis_fw-la iste_fw-la aiunt_fw-la tantus_fw-la ac_fw-la talis_fw-la qui_fw-la possit_fw-la pretio_fw-la svo_fw-la totum_fw-la orbem_fw-la redimere_fw-la jesus_n christus_fw-la filius_fw-la dei_fw-la proprium_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la dedit_fw-la &_o nos_fw-la de_fw-la seruitute_fw-la eripiens_fw-la libertate_fw-la donavit_fw-la et_fw-la re_fw-la vera_fw-la si_fw-la historijs_fw-la gentilium_fw-la credimus_fw-la quòd_fw-la codrus_n &_o curtius_n &_o decci_n mure_n pestilentias_fw-la urbium_fw-la &_o fame_n &_o bella_fw-la suis_fw-la mortibus_fw-la represserint_fw-la quantò_fw-la magis_fw-la hoc_fw-la in_o dei_fw-la filio_fw-la possible_a iudicandum_fw-la est_fw-la quòd_fw-la cruore_fw-la svo_fw-la non_fw-la urbem_fw-la unam_fw-la purgaverit_fw-la sed_fw-la totum_fw-la orbem_fw-la they_o say_v what_o be_v he_o such_o a_o one_o and_o so_o mighty_a that_o by_o his_o price_n be_v able_a to_o redeem_v the_o whole_a world_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n give_v his_o own_o blood_n and_o deliveringe_v we_o from_o bondage_n have_v make_v we_o free_a and_o in_o deed_n if_o we_o believe_v the_o heathen_a story_n that_o codrus_n curtius_n and_o decii_n mure_n remove_v pestilence_n famine_n and_o war_n from_o their_o city_n by_o their_o death_n how_o much_o more_o may_v we_o judge_v the_o same_o possible_a in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o he_o by_o his_o blood_n have_v purge_v not_o only_o one_o city_n but_o also_o the_o whole_a world_n immediate_o after_o this_o follow_v the_o word_n that_o m._n hardinge_n have_v here_o allege_v dupliciter_fw-la verò_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o the_o blood_n and_o flesh_n of_o christ_n have_v double_a understand_v by_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o these_o word_n thus_o gooinge_a before_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o perceive_v s._n hieromes_n meaning_n that_o be_v that_o we_o have_v our_o salvation_n in_o christ_n and_o do_v eat_v he_o and_o drink_v he_o and_o live_v by_o he_o not_o for_o that_o his_o flesh_n be_v mortal_a only_o and_o crucify_a upon_o the_o cross_n but_o for_o that_o it_o be_v spiritual_a and_o divine_a that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o herein_o stand_v that_o great_a contention_n that_o cyrillus_n and_o other_o godly_a father_n have_v against_o nestorius_n as_o it_o be_v well_o know_v unto_o the_o learned_a and_o therefore_o s._n paul_n saithe_v 2._o that_o i_o live_v now_o in_o the_o flesh_n i_o live_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n therefore_o notwithstanding_o s._n augustine_n say_v 88_o christus_fw-la crucifixus_fw-la est_fw-la lac_n sugentibus_fw-la &_o cibus_fw-la proficientibus_fw-la christe_o crucify_a be_v milk_n unto_o the_o sucklinge_n and_o hard_a meat_n unto_o the_o strong_a 1._o and_o notwithstanding_o angelomus_n say_v christ_n body_n be_v hay_n whereby_o the_o gentile_n be_v feadde_a yet_o must_v both_o these_o and_o also_o all_o other_o like_o place_n be_v take_v not_o of_o bare_a mortal_a flesh_n alone_o but_o of_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o s._n hierome_n call_v divine_a &_o spiritual_a for_o that_o it_o be_v personal_o and_o inseparable_o join_v with_o the_o godheade_n again_o s._n hieromes_n meaning_n be_v that_o the_o same_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v thus_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a must_v also_o spiritual_o be_v receive_v and_o not_o in_o any_o such_o carnal_a or_o fleash_o wise_a as_o be_v here_o imagine_v by_o m._n hardinge_n for_o notwithstanding_o christ_n body_n be_v spiritual_a yet_o be_v that_o no_o sufficient_a warrant_n to_o prove_v that_o therefore_o m._n hardinge_n opinion_n be_v not_o as_o he_o saithe_v over_o gross_a and_o carnal_a for_o the_o manichée_n and_o the_o messalian_a heretic_n have_v gross_a and_o carnal_a imagination_n of_o god_n himself_o notwithstanding_o god_n be_v only_a spirit_n and_o most_o spiritual_a and_o therefore_o s._n augustine_n say_v of_o they_o ecce_fw-la ego_fw-la derideo_fw-la carnales_fw-la homines_fw-la 23._o qui_fw-la nondum_fw-la possunt_fw-la spiritualia_fw-la cogitare_fw-la behold_v i_o laugh_v to_o scorn_v these_o carnal_a and_o fleash_o man_n that_o be_v not_o yet_o able_a to_o conceive_v thing_n spiritual_a for_o proufe_v hereof_o s._n hierome_n himself_o saithe_v hac_fw-la de_fw-fr hac_fw-la quidem_fw-la hoftia_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o christi_fw-la commemoratione_n mirabiliter_fw-la fit_a edere_fw-la licet_fw-la de_fw-fr illa_fw-la verò_fw-la quam_fw-la christus_fw-la in_o ara_n crucis_fw-la obtulit_fw-la secundum_fw-la se_fw-la nulli_fw-la edere_fw-la licet_fw-la of_o this_o oblation_n which_o be_v marvelous_o make_v in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o eat_v but_o of_o that_o oblation_n which_o christ_n offer_v upon_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n accord_v to_o itself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o gross_a &_o fleash_o manner_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o noman_n to_o eat_v by_o these_o word_n s._n hierome_n also_o show_v a_o great_a difference_n bitweene_n the_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v make_v in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o very_a sacrifice_n in_o deed_n that_o christ_n make_v upon_o the_o crosse._n so_o s._n chrysostome_n say_v 47._o si_fw-la carnaliter_fw-la quis_fw-la accipiat_fw-la nihil_fw-la lucratur_fw-la if_o a_o man_n take_v it_o fleash_o he_o gain_v nothing_o so_o likewise_o s._n augustine_n saithe_v 2._o as_o it_o be_v allege_v before_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n or_o form_n of_o speech_n willinge_v we_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o confortable_o to_o remember_v that_o christ_n have_v die_v for_o us._n this_o s._n hierome_n call_v the_o eatinge_v of_o the_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a flesh_n of_o christ_n therefore_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n saithe_v not_o only_o in_o like_a sense_n but_o also_o in_o like_a form_n of_o word_n duplex_fw-la est_fw-la sanguis_fw-la domini_fw-la alter_fw-la carnalis_fw-la quo_fw-la redempti_fw-la sumus_fw-la alter_fw-la
the_o holy_a table_n where_o these_o mystery_n be_v celebrate_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n be_v lay_v and_o sacrifice_v of_o priest_n unbloude_o as_o that_o most_o ancient_a and_o worthy_a council_n of_o nice_a report_v the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n as_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a say_v the_o lamb_n be_v lay_v upon_o the_o altar_n alludinge_v unto_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n even_o so_o do_v s._n augustine_n say_v unto_o the_o people_n 10._o vos_fw-fr estis_fw-la in_o mensa_fw-la vos_fw-la estis_fw-la in_o calais_n you_o be_v upon_o the_o table_n you_o be_v in_o the_o cup_n as_o the_o people_n be_v lay_v upon_o the_o table_n so_o be_v christ_n lay_v upon_o the_o table_n but_o this_o authority_n be_v answer_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o fiâte_a article_n and_o the_o eight_o division_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .13_o division_n brief_o in_o this_o high_a sacrament_n under_o visible_a shape_n invisible_a thing_n soothe_o the_o very_a true_a real_a lively_a natural_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v contain_v as_o 162_o father_n the_o scripture_n doctor_n counsel_n yea_o and_o the_o best_a learned_a of_o martin_n luther_n school_n do_v most_o plain_o and_o assure_o affirm_v the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n now_o sooth_o if_o m._n hardinge_n can_v have_v find_v any_o of_o all_o these_o term_n real_a lyvely_a natural_a or_o substantial_a either_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o in_o the_o doctor_n or_o in_o any_o council_n he_o will_v not_o have_v spare_v the_o allegation_n but_o thus_o avouchinge_v these_o term_n and_o so_o constant_o assuâring_v we_o thereof_o by_o these_o authority_n be_v nevertheless_o not_o able_a anywhere_o to_o find_v the_o same_o we_o must_v needs_o think_v he_o misreport_v the_o scripture_n constancy_n the_o doctor_n and_o the_o council_n and_o much_o abuse_v the_o simple_a credulity_n of_o the_o people_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .14_o division_n this_o i_o say_v in_o conclusion_n be_v so_o as_o it_o be_v undoubted_o so_o we_o that_o remain_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o can_v by_o no_o persecution_n be_v remove_v from_o the_o catholic_a faith_n who_o it_o like_v m._n jewel_n and_o his_o fellow_n to_o call_v papist_n believe_v very_o that_o it_o be_v our_o bind_a dewtie_n to_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n and_o to_o worship_n it_o with_o all_o godly_a honour_n by_o which_o word_n sacrament_n notwithstanding_o in_o this_o respect_n we_o mean_v not_o the_o outward_a form_n 163_o father_n that_o proper_o be_v call_v the_o sacrament_n but_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o invisible_a grace_n and_o virtue_n therein_o contain_v even_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o when_o we_o adore_v and_o worship_n this_o blissed_a sacrament_n we_o do_v not_o adore_v and_o worship_n the_o substance_n itself_o of_o bread_n and_o wine_n 164_o article_n because_o after_o consecration_n none_o at_o all_o remain_v neither_o do_v we_o adore_v the_o outward_a shape_v and_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o remain_v for_o they_o be_v but_o creature_n that_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v adore_v but_o the_o body_n itself_o and_o blood_n of_o christ_n 165_o article_n under_o those_o form_n very_o and_o real_o contain_v lowly_a and_o devout_o do_v we_o adore_v and_o therefore_o to_o speak_v more_o proper_o and_o accord_v to_o skille_v lest_o our_o adversary_n may_v take_v advantage_n against_o we_o through_o occasion_n of_o term_n where_o right_a sense_n only_o be_v mean_v âª_o we_o protest_v and_o say_v that_o we_o do_v and_o aught_o to_o adore_v and_o worship_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n if_o m._n hardinge_n be_v persecute_v as_o he_o saithe_v very_o it_o seem_v a_o delicate_a kind_n of_o persecution_n they_z of_o his_o side_n do_v not_o so_o persecute_v other_o but_o solomon_n say_v there_o be_v certain_a that_o flee_v ââââmanitis_n when_o nomân_n follow_v they_o thus_o do_v arius_n the_o heretic_n sometime_o complain_v of_o his_o persecutor_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d arius_n that_o wrongeful_o suffer_v persecution_n for_o the_o truth_n sake_n that_o conquer_v all_o thing_n as_o for_o m._n hardinge_n constancy_n which_o be_v here_o bring_v in_o as_o in_o steed_n of_o some_o proufe_v i_o will_v say_v nothing_o how_o be_v it_o his_o friend_n think_v so_o many_o so_o light_a and_o so_o sudden_a change_n can_v scarce_o stand_v well_o with_o the_o title_n of_o constancy_n certain_o the_o maintenance_n of_o open_a &_o know_v error_n shall_v rather_o have_v some_o other_o name_n the_o prophet_n zacharie_n saithe_v 41._o posuerunt_fw-la ut_fw-la adamantem_fw-la cor_fw-la suum_fw-la they_o have_v set_v their_o heart_n as_o the_o adamant_n stone_n job_n saithe_v stetit_fw-la cor_fw-la eius_fw-la sicut_fw-la incus_fw-la his_o heart_n stand_v as_o a_o steadie_a yet_o may_v not_o they_o therefore_o be_v call_v constant_a s._n hilary_n saithe_v gravis_fw-la &_o periculosus_fw-la est_fw-la lapsus_fw-la in_o multis_fw-la 84._o etsi_fw-la enim_fw-la se_fw-la intelligant_fw-la tamen_fw-la pudor_fw-la exurgendi_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la sibi_fw-la praesumit_fw-la ut_fw-la quòd_fw-la errant_a prudentiam_fw-la velint_fw-la existimari_fw-la quòd_fw-la cum_fw-la multis_fw-la errant_a intelligentiam_fw-la esse_fw-la asserant_fw-la veritatis_fw-la fall_v from_o god_n in_o many_o man_n be_v grievous_a and_o dangerous_a for_o albeit_o they_o understande_v themselves_o yet_o for_o that_o they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o rise_v again_o they_o therefore_o take_v upon_o they_o some_o authority_n and_o will_v have_v their_o error_n count_v wisdom_n and_o that_o they_o be_v deceive_v with_o many_o they_o call_v it_o the_o understand_v of_o the_o truth_n touchinge_v the_o purpose_n it_o appear_v this_o matter_n can_v stand_v without_o the_o disordringe_n and_o confoundinge_a of_o the_o natural_a course_n and_o sound_n of_o word_n sometime_o the_o accident_n and_o show_v of_o bread_n must_v be_v the_o sacrament_n sometime_o christ_n body_n which_o as_o m._n hardinge_n confess_v in_o deed_n be_v not_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o to_o maintain_v this_o new_a adoration_n must_v needs_o become_v the_o sacrament_n and_o thus_o now_o we_o have_v two_o sacrament_n together_o in_o one_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o conclusion_n we_o may_v not_o worship_n the_o very_a sacrament_n but_o only_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o this_o as_o m._n hardinge_n tell_v we_o be_v a_o proper_a plain_a familiar_a kind_n of_o speech_n and_o accord_v unto_o skill_n thus_o he_o teach_v we_o to_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n and_o to_o worship_n god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n onlesse_a the_o simple_a people_n go_v to_o the_o university_n and_o learn_v this_o new_a skill_n what_o be_v accidens_fw-la absque_fw-la subiecto_fw-la corpus_fw-la sine_fw-la loco_fw-la locus_fw-la sine_fw-la corpore_fw-la quantitas_fw-la sine_fw-la modo_fw-la quanti_fw-la they_o can_v skilful_o worship_n christ_n body_n or_o if_o they_o worship_n without_o this_o skill_n they_o worship_n one_o thing_n for_o a_o other_o and_o become_v idolater_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .15_o division_n and_o here_o this_o much_o be_v further_a to_o be_v say_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o adore_v by_o thought_n of_o mind_n sunder_v from_o the_o word_n but_o be_v inseparable_o unite_v to_o the_o word_n for_o this_o be_v special_o to_o be_v consider_v that_o in_o the_o most_o holy_a sacrament_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o present_a by_o themselves_o alone_o as_o be_v separate_v from_o his_o soul_n and_o from_o the_o godhead_n but_o that_o there_o be_v 166_o sacrament_n here_o his_o true_a and_o live_a flesh_n and_o blood_n join_v together_o with_o his_o godhead_n inseparable_o and_o that_o they_o be_v as_o himself_o be_v perfect_a whole_a and_o inseparable_a which_o be_v sufficient_o confirm_v by_o sundry_a his_o own_o word_n in_o s._n john_n i_o be_o saithe_v he_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n again_o this_o be_v bread_n come_n down_o from_o heaven_n that_o if_o any_o eat_v of_o it_o he_o die_v not_o i_o be_o the_o lively_a bread_n that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n if_o any_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n he_o shall_v live_v everlasting_o and_o to_o show_v what_o bread_n he_o mean_v he_o conclude_v with_o these_o word_n and_o the_o bread_n which_o i_o shall_v geve_v be_v my_o flesh_n which_o i_o shall_v geve_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n by_o which_o word_n he_o assure_v we_o plain_o that_o his_o flesh_n which_o he_o geve_v we_o to_o eat_v be_v full_o of_o life_n and_o join_v with_o his_o godhead_n which_o bring_v to_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n thereof_o immortality_n as_o well_o of_o body_n as_o of_o soul_n which_o thing_n flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o itself_o can_v not_o perform_v as_o our_o lord_n himself_o declare_v plain_o where_o he_o saithe_v as_o there_o it_o follow_v it_o be_v the_o
still_o although_o it_o be_v not_o bare_a or_o common_a oil_n so_o the_o nature_n or_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n remain_v still_o although_o it_o be_v not_o common_a or_o bare_a bread_n in_o like_a sort_n he_o write_v of_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n 3._o non_fw-la tanquam_fw-la aquae_fw-la simplici_fw-la studeas_fw-la huic_fw-la laâachro_n ne_fw-la aquae_fw-la simplicitaâi_fw-la mentem_fw-la adhibeas_fw-la behold_v not_o this_o bath_n as_o simple_a water_n consider_v not_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o water_n of_o these_o conference_n of_o place_n we_o may_v well_o gather_v thus_o the_o water_n in_o the_o holy_a mystery_n of_o baptism_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v not_o bare_a &_o common_a water_n yet_o nevertheless_o continew_v still_o in_o the_o nature_n and_o substance_n of_o very_a water_n so_o likewise_o the_o bread_n in_o the_o holy_a mystery_n of_o christ_n body_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v not_o bare_a and_o common_a bread_n yet_o nevertheless_o in_o nature_n and_o substance_n be_v bread_n stil._n but_o cyrillus_n say_v it_o be_v no_o bread_n it_o be_v no_o wine_n notwithstanding_o it_o appear_v so_o unto_o the_o sense_n chrysostome_n say_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v consume_v emissenus_fw-la say_v it_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o damascenus_n and_o theophylactus_n late_a writer_n of_o no_o great_a credit_n avouche_v the_o same_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o both_o cyrillus_n and_o all_o other_o old_a learned_a father_n labour_n evermore_o with_o all_o vehemency_n and_o force_v of_o word_n to_o sequester_v and_o pull_v their_o hearer_n from_o the_o judgement_n of_o their_o sense_n to_o behold_v that_o bread_n that_o geve_v life_n unto_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o he_o call_v it_o spiritual_a bread_n and_o of_o christ_n blood_n he_o say_v thus_o 4._o bibe_n vinum_fw-la in_o cord_n tuo_fw-la spiritual_fw-la scilicet_fw-la vinum_fw-la drink_v that_o wine_n not_o with_o thy_o bodily_a mouth_n but_o in_o they_o heart_n i_o mean_v that_o spiritual_a wine_n again_o he_o show_v wherefore_o the_o jew_n be_v offend_v with_o christ_n and_o open_v the_o very_a cause_n of_o the_o grossness_n of_o their_o erroure_n 4._o judaei_n non_fw-la audientes_fw-la verba_fw-la christi_fw-la secundum_fw-la spiritum_fw-la scandalizaâi_fw-la abierunt_fw-la reârò_fw-la eo_fw-la quòd_fw-la existimarent_fw-la sefe_n ad_fw-la humanarum_fw-la carnium_fw-la esum_fw-la incitari_fw-la the_o jew_n not_o hear_v christ_n word_n accord_v to_o the_o spirit_n be_v offend_v and_o go_v from_o he_o for_o that_o they_o think_v they_o be_v encourrage_v to_o eat_v man_n flesh_n ãâã_d again_o he_o say_v gustate_n &_o videte_fw-la quòd_fw-la suavis_fw-la est_fw-la dominus_fw-la num_fw-la hoc_fw-la corporeo_fw-la palato_fw-la ut_fw-la istud_fw-la dijudicetis_fw-la vobis_fw-la praecipitâ_n nequaquam_fw-la sed_fw-la potius_fw-la certa_fw-la fide_fw-la taste_v and_o see_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v delectable_a what_o be_v you_o command_v to_o judge_v this_o with_o your_o bodily_a mouth_n no_o not_o so_o but_o with_o undoubted_a faith_n in_o this_o sense_n the_o water_n in_o baptism_n geve_v place_n to_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o itself_o seem_v nothing_o likewise_o the_o bread_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n geve_v place_n to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o respect_n thereof_o be_v utter_o nothing_o which_o thing_n concern_v the_o water_n of_o baptism_n paulinus_n seem_v to_o express_v thus_o fonsque_fw-la nows_fw-la renovans_fw-la hominem_fw-la quia_fw-la suscipit_fw-la &_o that_o munus_fw-la 22._o sive_fw-la magis_fw-la quod_fw-la deâinit_fw-la esse_fw-la per_fw-la usum_fw-la tradere_fw-la divino_fw-la mortalibus_fw-la incipit_fw-la usu._n likewise_o chrysostome_n non_fw-la erit_fw-la aqua_fw-la potationis_fw-la sed_fw-la sanctificationis_fw-la it_o shall_v not_o be_v water_n to_o drink_v as_o it_o be_v before_o but_o water_n of_o sanctification_n as_o before_o it_o be_v not_o this_o be_v the_o very_a substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o respect_n whereof_o the_o corruptible_a element_n of_o bread_n wine_n and_o water_n be_v consume_v &_o take_v for_o nothing_o this_o thing_n chrysostome_n express_v notable_o to_o the_o eye_n by_o this_o example_n lege_fw-la lanae_fw-la cùm_fw-la tinguntur_fw-la naturae_fw-la svae_fw-la nomen_fw-la amittunt_fw-la &_o tincturae_fw-la nomen_fw-la accipiunt_fw-la &_o non_fw-la ultrà _fw-la vocas_fw-la lanam_fw-la sed_fw-la vel_fw-la purpuram_fw-la vel_fw-la coccinum_fw-la vel_fw-la prasinum_fw-la etc._n etc._n wool_n when_o it_o be_v die_v lose_v the_o name_n of_o his_o own_o nature_n and_o take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o colour_n thou_o call_v it_o not_o long_o wool_n but_o purple_a or_o scarlet_a or_o green_a etc._n etc._n notwithstanding_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o wool_n remain_v stil._n and_o so_o pachymeres_n say_v comparison_n the_o holy_a oil_n be_v no_o lânger_n call_v oil_n but_o it_o be_v turn_v into_o christ_n his_o word_n be_v plain_a oleum_fw-la enim_fw-la est_fw-la christus_fw-la for_o the_o cile_a be_v christ_n not_o meaning_n thereby_o that_o the_o oil_n be_v no_o oil_n but_o only_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o christ_n that_o thereby_o be_v signify_v the_o oil_n be_v consume_v christ_n and_o appear_v nothing_o so_o paulus_n that_o famous_a learned_a lawyer_n say_v res_fw-la una_fw-la per_fw-la praevalentian_n trahit_fw-la aliam_fw-la one_o thing_n by_o force_n of_o great_a weight_n ãâã_d draw_v a_o other_o with_o it_o thus_o therefore_o saithe_v cyrillus_n the_o bread_n that_o we_o see_v be_v now_o not_o bread_n âut_v christ_n body_n and_o the_o wine_n that_o we_o see_v be_v now_o not_o wine_n but_o christ_n blood_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v these_o element_n or_o creature_n be_v not_o so_o much_o the_o thing_n that_o they_o be_v in_o deed_n as_o the_o thing_n that_o they_o represent_v for_o so_o s._n augustine_n say_v general_o of_o all_o sacrament_n paulus_n as_o it_o have_v be_v allege_v once_o or_o twice_o before_o in_o sacrament_n we_o may_v not_o consider_v what_o they_o be_v in_o deed_n but_o what_o they_o signify_v and_o to_o the_o same_o end_n s._n ambrose_n say_v magis_fw-la videtur_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la videtur_fw-la it_o be_v better_a see_v that_o be_v not_o see_v 3._o and_o all_o this_o be_v wrought_v both_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o baptism_n and_o also_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n body_n not_o by_o the_o work_n or_o force_v of_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 3._o and_o by_o the_o warrant_n of_o christ_n word_n thus_o emissenus_fw-la thus_o damascene_fw-la thus_o theophylacte_n say_v the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n i_o mean_v even_o so_o as_o the_o same_o theophylacte_n say_v johan._n we_o ourselves_o be_v transelemented_a &_o transubstantiate_a into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o thus_o he_o imagine_v christ_n to_o say_v miscetur_fw-la mihi_fw-la &_o transelementatur_fw-la in_o i_o and_o in_o like_a sort_n chrysostome_n speak_v of_o the_o corruption_n and_o renewinge_v of_o the_o world_n 1._o say_v thus_o opus_fw-la erat_fw-la quasi_fw-la reelementationem_fw-la quandam_fw-la fieri_fw-la it_o be_v needful_a that_o the_o element_n be_v transubstantiate_a or_o make_v new_a so_o s._n peter_n say_v efficimur_fw-la consortes_fw-la divinae_fw-la naturae_fw-la we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o a_o heathen_a writer_n saithe_v aesculapio_n homo_fw-la transit_fw-la in_o naturam_fw-la dei_fw-la a_o man_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n all_o these_o and_o other_o like_a phrase_n of_o speech_n must_v be_v qualify_v with_o a_o sober_a and_o a_o discrete_a construction_n otherwise_o accord_v to_o the_o simple_a tenor_n of_o the_o word_n they_o can_v stand_v 39_o therefore_o s._n chrysostome_n entreat_v of_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n say_v thus_o divina_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la gratia_n ne_fw-la nudis_fw-la verbis_fw-la insistamus_fw-la nam_fw-la ita_fw-la haeretici_fw-la in_o errorem_fw-la incidunt_fw-la neque_fw-la sententiam_fw-la neque_fw-la auditoris_fw-la habitum_fw-la inquirentes_fw-la nisi_fw-la enim_fw-la tempora_fw-la locos_fw-la auditorem_fw-la &_o alia_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la consideremus_fw-la multa_fw-la sequentur_fw-la absurda_fw-la we_o have_v need_n of_o god_n heavenly_a grace_n that_o we_o stand_v not_o upon_o the_o bare_a word_n for_o so_o heretic_n fall_v into_o error_n never_o consider_v neither_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o speaker_n nor_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o hearer_n onlesse_a we_o weigh_v the_o time_n the_o place_n the_o hearer_n eucha_fw-mi and_o other_o like_a circumstance_n many_o inconvenience_n must_v needs_o follow_v uery_o bertramus_n a_o ancient_a writer_n saithe_v ipse_fw-la qui_fw-la nunc_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o that_o now_o in_o the_o church_n by_o his_o omnipotent_a power_n spiritual_o turn_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o his_o body_n the_o same_o invisible_o make_v his_o body_n of_o the_o manna_n body_n that_o come_v from_o heaven_n and_o of_o the_o water_n that_o flow_v from_o the_o rock_n invisible_o he_o make_v his_o own_o blood_n thus_o
father_n 217._o epâârem_fw-mi minister_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o vulgate_n tongue_n 157._o excommunication_n 32._o 38._o 39_o reconciliation_n 134._o exuperius_n 129._o f._n this_o word_n figure_n mislike_v of_o m._n hardinge_n side_n 445._o heretic_n press_v the_o letter_n and_o leave_v the_o meaning_n 447._o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o figure_n 446._o 448._o 451._o 462._o 475._o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o figure_n and_o not_o the_o truth_n 465._o m._n hardinge_n saithe_v christ_n body_n itself_o be_v a_o figure_n 447._o christ_n body_n a_o figure_n of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 455._o the_o number_n and_o strangeness_n of_o m._n hardinge_n figure_n 448._o 476._o by_o m._n hardinge_n fantasy_n the_o outward_a foundry_n be_v christ_n body_n 408._o forma_fw-la signify_v the_o substance_n 427._o 435._o 449._o g._n gelasius_n 144._o 145._o all_o the_o easte_n speak_v greek_a 162._o the_o greek_a tongue_n reach_v far_o 165._o h._n receivinge_v the_o sacrament_n with_o hand_n 48._o hear_v without_o understand_v be_v no_o hear_v 69._o 70._o 175._o m._n hardinge_n witness_n against_o himself_o 10._o 11._o 42._o 139._o m._n hard._n jest_v at_o christ_n institution_n 20._o m._n hard._n allege_v one_o thing_n for_o a_o other_o 20._o 33._o 41._o 56._o 59_o 135._o 375._o m._n hard._n dissemble_v the_o doctor_n word_n 21._o m._n hard._n argument_n not_o well_o frame_v 21._o 25._o 58._o 92._o 101._o 158._o 160._o m._n hard._n refuse_v the_o example_n of_o christ_n 22._o 23._o m._n hard._n corrupt_v the_o old_a doctor_n 43._o 45._o 49._o 77._o 84._o m._n hard._n allege_v authority_n without_o sense_n 54._o m._n hard._n allege_v decree_n of_o council_n that_o he_o never_o see_v 69._o 295._o 390._o 484._o m._n hard._n be_v fain_o to_o leave_v the_o old_a doctor_n and_o to_o forge_v new_a 7._o 78._o m._n hard._n contrary_a to_o himself_o 85._o 139._o 175._o 201._o 418._o 459._o 538._o 550._o m._n hard._n conclude_v that_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n commit_v sacrilege_n 126._o m._n hard._n deceiteful_a dealingeâwherein_o as_o tertullian_n saithe_v he_o follow_v the_o very_a cast_v of_o all_o heretic_n 127._o m._n hard._n wit_o avouch_v untrueth_n 167._o 168._o m._n hard._n reason_v against_o himself_o 167._o m._n hard._n forgeat_v himself_o 173._o 209._o m._n har._n wilful_o pervert_v the_o way_n of_o god_n 174._o m._n hard._n come_v after_o the_o date_n as_o his_o wont_n be_v to_o do_v 192._o m._n hard._n say_v the_o ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a people_n understand_v the_o latin_a tongue_n although_o not_o perfect_o 197._o m._n hard._n allege_v authority_n that_o he_o know_v to_o be_v forge_v 235._o m._n hard._n hold_v by_o burn_v evidence_n 235._o m._n hard._n condemn_v s._n augustine_n for_o a_o seââmatique_n 290._o 291._o m._n hard._n use_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o heretic_n call_v the_o manichee_n 150._o m._n hardin_n use_v the_o eurychian_n heretic_n argument_n 3ââ_n m._n hard._n imagine_v two_o great_a error_n 391._o m._n hard._n âaithe_n accident_n perform_v the_o sacrament_n 427._o m._n hard._n fight_v with_o old_a heretic_n weapon_n 439._o m._n hard._n contrary_a to_o his_o own_o fellow_v 445._o m._n hard._n shun_v his_o own_o doctor_n 457._o m._n hard._n be_v drive_v to_o say_v that_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o very_o and_o in_o deed_n but_o unapt_o and_o unfit_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n 474._o m._n hard._n understand_v not_o his_o own_o book_n 495._o m._n h._n allege_v his_o authority_n without_o his_o compass_n 495._o m._n h._n judgement_n of_o the_o people_n 527._o m._n hard._n sudden_o turn_v from_o the_o gospel_n 534._o m_o âª_o hard._n seem_v not_o to_o understande_v his_o own_o word_n 555._o 557._o m._n hard._n saithe_n christ_n sheadde_v his_o blood_n at_o his_o supper_n 560._o m._n hard._n not_o certain_a of_o his_o own_o doctrine_n 626._o m._n hard._n new_a doctor_n can_v agree_v 630._o m._n hard._n compare_v the_o pope_n with_o balaam_n and_o caiphas_n 274._o m._n hard._n misreport_v the_o councelle_n of_o ephesus_n 111_o 112._o m._n hard._n falsifi_v the_o word_n of_o s._n luke_n 115._o m._n hardin_n unaduised_o allege_v the_o authority_n of_o s._n augustine_n 123._o m._n hard._n abuse_v s._n augustine_n word_n 124._o m._n hard._n falsifi_v s._n paul_n word_n 126._o m._n hard._n corrupt_v the_o holy_a father_n 131._o 144._o m._n hard._n misreport_v strabo_n 159._o 161._o m._n hard._n misreport_v the_o word_n of_o pliâie_n 159._o m._n hard._n foul_o abuse_v s._n chrysostom_n word_n 203._o m._n hard._n wrea_v origen_n from_o his_o purpose_n 210._o m._n hardin_n misreport_v the_o word_n of_o chrysostome_n 212._o m_o h._n cut_v of_o the_o word_n of_o s._n gregory_n 225._o m._n hard._n manifest_o corrupt_v and_o falsifi_v s._n cyprian_n 228._o m._n h._n twice_o falsifi_v s._n cyprian_n in_o one_o place_n 231._o m._n hard._n falsifi_v s._n hilary_n 527._o 246._o m._n hard._n falsifi_v s._n chrysostome_n 264._o 269._o m._n hard._n falsifi_v cassiodorus_n and_o socrates_n 284._o m._n hardin_n misreport_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n 297._o m._n hard._n falsifi_v the_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n 248._o 250._o 309._o 405._o m._n hard._n wilful_o corrupt_v the_o ãâ¦ã_o m._n har._n misreport_v s._n basiles_n word_v 438._o 439._o m_o hard._n falsifi_v dionysiâs_n 440._o 44â_n m._n har._n wilful_o deprave_v the_o holy_a father_n 453._o m._n hard._n saithe_n tertullian_n understand_v not_o the_o very_a literal_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n 45â_n m._n hard._n wilful_o corrupt_v tertullian_n 464._o m._n hard._n misconstrueth_n the_o word_n of_o ãâã_d 485._o m._n hard._n mistake_v prudentius_n 500_o 502._o m._n hard._n allege_v a_o fable_n under_o the_o name_n of_o athanasius_n 502._o m._n hardin_n misreport_v god_n divine_a providence_n 527._o m._n hard._n untrue_o report_v the_o emperor_n justinian_n 171._o 54â_n m._n hard._n misreport_v his_o own_o glemens_n 561._o m._n har._n misreport_v s._n augustine_n woorder_n 598._o m._n hard._n untrue_o translate_v the_o word_n of_o origen_n 602._o 604._o m._n hard._n misconstrueth_n the_o word_n of_o irenaeus_n 602._o m_o hard._n guiful_o expound_v s._n cyril_n 622._o m._n hard._n utter_v a_o heap_n of_o untruethe_n altogether_o 217._o m._n hard._n utter_v two_o untruethe_n together_o in_o one_o sentence_n 172._o m._n hard._n utter_v five_o untruethe_n together_o in_o the_o report_n of_o four_o word_n 382._o m._n hardin_n utter_v four_o untruethe_v together_o with_o one_o breath_n 454._o m._n hard._n utter_v three_o untruethe_n together_o 497_o m._n hardinge_n untruethe_n or_o oversigthe_n upon_o better_a advice_n to_o be_v redress_v two_o hundred_o fifty_o and_o five_o hippolytus_n martyr_n ââ_o i._o s._n james_n liturgy_n or_o communion_n 10._o james_n never_o drink_v wine_n but_o only_o at_o christ_n last_o supper_n 128._o ignorance_n the_o mother_n of_o religion_n 640._o the_o faction_n of_o rome_n overrule_v the_o world_n by_o ignorance_n 641._o ignorance_n dangerous_a â07_n 641._o ignorance_n excuse_v not_o 208._o image_n in_o the_o church_n contrary_a to_o god_n word_n 496._o 505._o the_o heathen_n and_o infidel_n the_o first_o father_n of_o image_n 497._o 498._o 503._o the_o cherubin_n 498._o 499._o the_o brazen_a serpent_n 499._o the_o crosse._n 499._o 500_o 501._o 502._o irene_n the_o empress_n the_o king_n daughter_n of_o tartary_n the_o chief_a defender_n of_o image_n 504._o a_o image_n better_o than_o prayer_n 504._o the_o invention_n of_o image_n come_v of_o if_o 507._o peevis_n he_o reason_n for_o proufe_v of_o image_n 508._o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n there_o be_v no_o image_n 508._o image_n condemn_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n 509._o 517._o imagery_n like_a unto_o poetry_n 510._o a_o image_n be_v a_o lesson_n of_o lie_n 510._o holy_a image_n 512._o image_n woorship_v with_o godly_a honour_n 514._o 515._o 516._o image_n dangerous_a in_o the_o church_n 514._o we_o be_v incorporate_a into_o christ_n by_o baptism_n 36._o 345._o individuum_fw-la vagum_fw-la 629._o 630._o institution_n of_o christ_n 18._o 19_o 20._o 22._o institution_n of_o christ_n break_v 23._o god_n institution_n lawful_o break_v 113._o institution_n of_o the_o cup_n 118._o inâention_n of_o the_o priest_n 34._o invisible_a 472._o john_n the_o aulmonare_fw-la 74._o l._n latin_a tongue_n in_o aphrica_n 180._o 181._o the_o learned_a latin_a tongue_n 200._o latin_a church_n 211._o leontius_n 74._o liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n 33._o 34._o lidforde_n law_n 432._o d._n luther_n sclaunder_v 3._o 107._o m._n malaclâias_n 6._o martialis_n 9_o 10._o missa_fw-la signify_v the_o communion_n 72._o 94._o 491._o missa_fw-la signify_v any_o assembly_n 6._o 72._o missa_fw-la never_n take_v for_o private_a mass_n 73._o 492._o mass_n private_a and_o peculiar_a 3._o private_a mass_n prove_v by_o boies_n laiemenne_n and_o woman_n 41._o 56._o difference_n bitweene_n the_o new_a private_a mass_n and_o the_o old_a communion_n 50._o no_o private_a mass_n
be_v bishop_n in_o milan_n two_o and_o twenty_o year_n and_o more_o be_v also_o so_o holy_a a_o man_n as_o few_o the_o like_a in_o those_o day_n yet_o m._n hardinge_n can_v not_o learn_v that_o ever_o he_o say_v private_a mass_n but_o only_o when_o he_o lay_v breathless_a in_o his_o death_n bed_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .23_o division_n now_o that_o i_o have_v thus_o prove_v the_o single_a communion_n i_o use_v their_o own_o term_n i_o desire_v m._n jewel_n to_o reason_n with_o i_o sober_o a_o word_n or_o two_o how_o say_v you_o sir_n do_v you_o reprove_v the_o mass_n or_o do_v you_o reprove_v the_o private_a mass_n i_o think_v what_o so_o ever_o your_o opinion_n be_v herein_o your_o answer_n shall_v be_v you_o allow_v not_o the_o private_a mass_n for_o as_o touchinge_v that_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n do_v in_o the_o mass_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o proper_a to_o the_o new_a testament_n 33_o sacrifice_n command_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v frequent_v accord_v to_o his_o institution_n if_o you_o deny_v this_o make_v it_o so_o light_a as_o you_o list_v all_o those_o authority_n which_o you_o deny_v we_o to_o have_v for_o proufe_v of_o your_o great_a number_n of_o article_n will_v be_v find_v against_o you_o i_o mean_v doctor_n general_a counsel_n the_o most_o ancient_a the_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o scripture_n i_o add_v further_a reason_n consent_v universal_a and_o uncontrolled_a and_o tradition_n ground_n if_o you_o deny_v this_o you_o must_v deny_v all_o our_o religion_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o this_o day_n and_o now_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n when_o iniquity_n abound_v and_o charity_n wax_v cold_a when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v shall_v scarce_o find_v faith_n in_o the_o earth_n begin_v a_o new_a and_o therefore_o you_o m_o jewel_n know_v this_o well_o enough_o what_o so_o ever_o you_o do_v in_o deed_n in_o word_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o little_a book_n you_o have_v set_v forth_o in_o print_n you_o pretend_v to_o disallow_v yea_o most_o vehement_o to_o improve_v the_o private_a mass_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n hitherto_o m._n hardinge_n have_v bring_v doctor_n without_o reason_n now_o he_o bring_v reason_n without_o doctor_n and_o how_o say_v you_o sir_n saithe_v he_o do_v you_o reprove_v the_o mass_n or_o do_v you_o reprove_v private_a mass_n i_o trust_v he_o have_v not_o so_o soon_o forget_v whereof_o he_o have_v discourse_v all_o this_o while_n neither_o do_v the_o matter_n rest_n upon_o that_o point_n what_o i_o list_v to_o allow_v or_o disallow_v but_o what_o he_o can_v prove_v or_o not_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n and_o father_n but_o mark_v well_o good_a christian_a reader_n and_o thou_o shall_v see_v how_o handesome_o m._n harding_n convei_v and_o shift_v his_o hand_n to_o deceive_v thy_o sight_n first_o he_o have_v hitherto_o foreborne_v both_o the_o name_n and_o also_o the_o proufe_v of_o private_a mass_n and_o only_o have_v use_v the_o word_n of_o sole_a receivinge_n and_o single_a communion_n and_o so_o have_v take_v pain_n to_o prove_v that_o thing_n that_o be_v never_o deny_v and_o that_o thing_n that_o we_o deny_v and_o wherein_o the_o whole_a question_n stand_v he_o have_v leafte_o utter_o untouched_a now_o he_o demand_v whether_o i_o reprove_v the_o mass_n or_o the_o private_a mass_n what_o mean_v this_o that_o private_a mass_n and_o sole_a receive_v be_v so_o sudden_o grow_v in_o one_o sure_o m._n hardinge_n well_o know_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o these_o word_n be_v not_o one_o neither_o who_o so_o ever_o receive_v alone_a do_v therefore_o of_o necessity_n say_v private_a mass_n this_o so_o sudden_a alter_v of_o term_n may_v breed_v suspicion_n that_o he_o further_o interlace_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v a_o other_o conveyance_n to_o blind_v thy_o sight_n as_o utter_o nothing_o make_v to_o this_o purpose_n for_o neither_o do_v the_o sacrifice_n import_v private_a mass_n nor_o do_v sole_a receivinge_n imply_v the_o sacrifice_n yet_o for_o short_a answer_n we_o have_v that_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n upon_o the_o cross_n âª_o that_o lamb_n of_o god_n that_o have_v take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n the_o virtue_n of_o which_o sacrifice_n endure_v for_o ever_o to_o this_o everlasting_a sacrifice_n the_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v imagine_v in_o the_o mass_n be_v mere_a injurious_a and_o where_o as_o m._n hardinge_n say_v if_o you_o deny_v this_o you_o must_v deny_v all_o our_o religion_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n until_o this_o day_n these_o be_v but_o empty_a word_n without_o weigh_v and_o prove_v nothing_o in_o my_o little_a book_n say_v he_o i_o disallow_v the_o private_a mass_n if_o he_o find_v fault_n with_o my_o book_n for_o that_o it_o be_v little_a he_o may_v consider_v it_o be_v but_o a_o sermon_n and_o therefore_o no_o reason_n it_o shall_v be_v great_a yet_o be_v it_o a_o great_a deal_n long_o than_o either_o hippolytus_n martyr_n or_o the_o fable_n of_o his_o amphilochius_n of_o who_o notwithstanding_o their_o shortness_n he_o make_v no_o small_a account_n and_o where_o he_o saithe_v i_o dissallowe_v private_a mass_n i_o disallow_v that_o thing_n that_o infinite_a number_n of_o godly_a and_o learned_a man_n have_v disallow_v and_o that_o m._n hardinge_n himself_o not_o long_o since_o open_o and_o earnest_o disallow_v both_o in_o school_n and_o pulpitte_n until_o he_o be_v sudden_o persuade_v to_o the_o contrary_a only_o by_o the_o alteration_n of_o the_o state_n of_o these_o two_o word_n private_a mass_n i_o can_v no_o better_o say_v than_o s._n gregory_n sometime_o say_v of_o that_o antichriste_n shall_v be_v call_v deus_fw-la 30._o god_n si_fw-la quantitatem_fw-la vocis_fw-la perpendimus_fw-la sunt_fw-la dvae_fw-la syllabae_fw-la sin_n pondus_fw-la iniquitatis_fw-la universa_fw-la pernicies_fw-la if_o we_o weight_n the_o quantity_n of_o the_o word_n they_o be_v but_o two_o syllable_n but_o if_o we_o weigh_v the_o weight_n of_o the_o wickedness_n it_o be_v a_o universal_a destruction_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .24_o division_n upon_o this_o resolution_n that_o the_o mass_n as_o it_o be_v take_v in_o general_a be_v to_o be_v allow_v i_o enter_v further_o in_o reason_n with_o you_o and_o make_v you_o this_o argument_n if_o private_a mass_n in_o respect_n only_o of_o that_o it_o be_v private_a after_o your_o meaning_n be_v reprovable_a it_o be_v for_o the_o single_a communion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o that_o the_o priest_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n alone_o but_o the_o single_a communion_n be_v lawful_a yea_o good_a and_o godly_a ergo_fw-la the_o private_a mass_n in_o this_o respect_n that_o it_o be_v private_a be_v not_o reprovable_a but_o to_o be_v allow_v hold_v for_o good_a and_o holy_a and_o to_o be_v frequent_v if_o you_o deny_v the_o first_o proposition_n or_o mayor_n then_o must_v you_o show_v for_o what_o else_o you_o do_v reprove_v private_a mass_n in_o respect_n only_o that_o it_o be_v private_a then_o for_o single_a communion_n if_o you_o show_v any_o thing_n else_o then_o do_v you_o digress_v from_o our_o purpose_n and_o declare_v that_o you_o reprove_v the_o mass_n the_o minor_a you_o can_v deny_v seinge_v you_o see_v how_o sufficient_o i_o have_v prove_v it_o and_o so_o the_o private_a mass_n in_o that_o respect_n only_o it_o be_v private_a be_v to_o be_v allow_v for_o good_a as_o the_o mass_n be_v the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n out_o of_o all_o these_o former_a authority_n of_o tertullians_n wife_n monk_n in_o the_o wilderness_n say_v man_n woman_n and_o boy_n m._n hardinge_n geather_v this_o conclusion_n which_o as_o he_o will_v have_v folk_n think_v stand_v so_o sounde_o on_o every_o side_n that_o it_o can_v possible_o be_v avoid_v the_o private_a mass_n be_v single_a communion_n single_a communion_n be_v lawful_a ergo_fw-la private_a mass_n be_v lawful_a this_o syllogism_n unto_o the_o unskilful_a may_v seem_v somewhat_o terrible_a as_o a_o vizard_n unto_o a_o child_n that_o can_v not_o judge_v what_o be_v within_o it_o but_o m._n hardinge_n that_o make_v it_o know_v it_o be_v vain_a and_o woorthe_a nothing_o and_o that_o it_o may_v the_o better_o appear_v i_o will_v open_v the_o error_n by_o a_o other_o like_a the_o ministration_n of_o private_a mass_n be_v a_o single_a communion_n single_a communion_n be_v lawful_a for_o a_o woman_n ergo_fw-la the_o ministration_n of_o private_a mass_n be_v lawful_a for_o a_o woman_n it_o be_v all_o one_o kind_n of_o argument_n of_o like_a form_n and_o like_a term_n and_o as_o this_o be_v deceiteful_a so_o be_v the_o other_o likewise_o deceiteful_a the_o error_n be_v in_o the_o second_o proposition_n which_o be_v call_v the_o
to_o be_v give_v in_o wine_n these_o be_v the_o holy_a mystery_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n we_o may_v not_o here_o account_v what_o may_v be_v in_o either_o of_o they_o by_o the_o drift_n of_o vain_a fantasy_n but_o rather_o we_o ought_v to_o consider_v what_o christ_n in_o the_o first_o institution_n hereof_o do_v and_o what_o he_o command_v to_o be_v do_v neither_o do_v we_o here_o condemn_v the_o church_n as_o it_o please_v m._n harding_n unjust_o to_o charge_v we_o but_o we_o wish_v and_o pray_v to_o god_n that_o his_o whole_a church_n may_v once_o be_v reform_v after_o the_o example_n and_o institution_n of_o christ_n without_o who_o the_o church_n be_v no_o church_n neither_o have_v any_o right_n or_o claim_v without_o his_o promise_n nor_o any_o promise_n without_o his_o word_n now_o whereas_o m._n hardinge_n say_v the_o reason_n that_o we_o make_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o christ_n institution_n be_v so_o slender_a if_o he_o have_v first_o weigh_v his_o own_o perhaps_o he_o will_v the_o more_o favourable_o have_v report_v we_o i_o mean_v not_o the_o reason_n that_o other_o of_o that_o side_n have_v take_v of_o man_n beard_n of_o fear_n of_o the_o palsy_n and_o shakinge_a or_o other_o disease_n or_o inconvenience_n that_o may_v happen_v but_o even_o of_o the_o same_o that_o he_o have_v here_o plant_v in_o the_o first_o rank_n and_o entry_n of_o his_o cause_n the_o first_o be_v this_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o unity_n therefore_o if_o it_o be_v abuse_v we_o may_v seek_v no_o redress_n the_o second_o be_v this_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o sacrament_n depend_v not_o of_o the_o form_z of_o bread_n and_o wine_n therefore_o we_o may_v break_v christ_n institution_n the_o third_o be_v this_o whole_a christ_n as_o m._n hardinge_n saithe_v be_v in_o either_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o wrongâ_n do_v in_o barringe_a the_o people_n from_o one_o kind_n certain_o these_o reason_n seem_v very_o slender_a and_o special_o to_o countermaunde_v the_o plain_a word_n of_o god_n the_o sentence_n that_o s._n basile_n use_v in_o this_o case_n be_v very_o terrible_a 14._o who_o so_o forbid_v the_o thing_n that_o god_n command_v and_o who_o so_o command_v the_o thing_n that_o god_n forbid_v be_v to_o be_v hold_v accurse_v of_o all_o they_o that_o love_v the_o lord_n m._n hardinge_n the_o second_o division_n now_o concern_v thâoutwarde_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n 47_o nothing_o their_o use_n be_v employ_v in_o signification_n only_o and_o be_v not_o of_o necessity_n so_o as_o grace_n may_v not_o be_v obtain_v by_o worthy_a receivinge_n of_o the_o sacrament_n onlesse_a both_o kind_n be_v minister_v therefore_o in_o consecratinge_v of_o the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o christ_n institution_n both_o kind_n be_v necessary_a for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v not_o prepare_v for_o the_o receive_n only_o but_o also_o for_o renewinge_v and_o stirringe_n up_o of_o the_o remembrance_n of_o our_o lord_n death_n so_o in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o sacrament_n serve_v the_o sacrifice_n by_o which_o the_o death_n and_o oblation_n of_o christ_n be_v represent_v both_o the_o kind_n be_v requisite_a that_o by_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a form_n the_o bloudde_n of_o christ_n shed_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o separate_v from_o his_o body_n may_v evident_o be_v signify_v but_o in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o faithful_a people_n do_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n thereby_o to_o attain_v spiritual_a grace_n and_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n diversity_n of_o the_o form_n or_o kind_n that_o be_v use_v for_o the_o signification_n only_o have_v no_o further_a use_n ne_o profit_n but_o by_o one_o kind_n because_o in_o it_o whole_a christ_n be_v exhibit_v abundance_n of_o all_o grace_n be_v once_o give_v so_o as_o by_o the_o other_o kind_n thereto_o over_o add_v which_o geve_v the_o same_o and_o not_o a_o other_o christ_n no_o further_o augmentation_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n may_v be_v attein_v in_o consideration_n of_o this_o the_o catholic_a church_n teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n all_o truth_n while_o in_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n the_o memory_n of_o our_o lord_n death_n and_o passion_n be_v celebrate_v for_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a therein_o to_o express_v most_o plain_o the_o sheddinge_a and_o separatinge_v of_o the_o blood_n from_o the_o body_n that_o be_v crucify_a have_v always_o to_o that_o purpose_n diligent_o use_v both_o kind_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o in_o distributinge_v of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n to_o christian_a people_n have_v use_v liberty_n which_o christ_n never_o imbar_v by_o any_o commandment_n to_o the_o contrary_a so_o as_o it_o have_v 48_o year_n ever_o be_v most_o for_o the_o behoove_v and_o commodity_n of_o the_o receiver_n and_o have_v minister_v sometime_o both_o kind_n sometime_o one_o kind_n only_o as_o it_o have_v be_v think_v most_o expedient_a in_o regard_n of_o time_n place_n and_o personne_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n here_o be_v much_o talk_n and_o no_o proufe_v i_o grant_v the_o priest_n if_o he_o minister_v the_o communion_n orderly_o and_o as_o he_o shall_v do_v renew_v the_o memory_n of_o christ_n passion_n accord_v to_o his_o own_o commandment_n do_v this_o in_o my_o remembrance_n yet_o all_o this_o conclude_v not_o direct_o that_o therefore_o christ_n ordinance_n may_v be_v break_v neither_o be_v it_o yet_o so_o clear_o prove_v that_o the_o priest_n in_o his_o mass_n represent_v the_o separation_n of_o christ_n blood_n from_o his_o body_n for_o beside_o that_o there_o be_v no_o ancient_a doctor_n here_o allege_v for_o proufe_v hereof_o i_o may_v well_o demand_v by_o what_o word_n by_o what_o gesture_n or_o to_o who_o do_v he_o represent_v this_o separation_n his_o word_n be_v strange_a his_o gesture_n secret_a the_o people_n neither_o hear_v nor_o see_v aught_o nor_o know_v what_o he_o mean_v and_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o separation_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v represent_v in_o the_o holy_a mystery_n yet_o how_o know_v m._n hardinge_n that_o the_o priest_n ought_v more_o to_o represent_v the_o same_o than_o the_o people_n doubtless_o christ_n blood_n be_v shed_v indifferent_o for_o all_o the_o faithful_a as_o well_o for_o the_o people_n as_o for_o the_o priest_n between_o who_o and_o the_o people_n as_o i_o have_v before_o show_v out_o of_o s._n chrysostome_n 18._o in_o this_o case_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n for_o whereas_o m._n hardinge_n take_v the_o name_n of_o sacrifice_n for_o some_o show_n of_o proufe_v in_o this_o matter_n it_o behove_v he_o to_o know_v that_o not_o only_o the_o portion_n receive_v by_o the_o priest_n but_o also_o the_o portion_n that_o be_v distribute_v unto_o the_o people_n be_v of_o the_o old_a father_n call_v a_o sacrifice_n s._n augustine_n have_v these_o word_n in_o carthage_n the_o manner_n be_v that_o hymn_n shall_v be_v say_v at_o the_o aultare_fw-la out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o psalm_n 2._o either_o when_o the_o oblation_n be_v make_v or_o when_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v offer_v be_v divide_v unto_o the_o people_n by_o these_o plain_a word_n we_o may_v see_v that_o both_o the_o priest_n and_o people_n receive_v one_o sacrifice_n and_o clemens_n as_o m._n hardinge_n call_v he_o the_o apostle_n fellow_n saithe_v thus_o 2._o tanta_fw-la in_o altario_fw-la holocausta_fw-la offerantur_fw-la quanta_fw-la populo_fw-la sufficere_fw-la debeant_fw-la let_v there_o be_v so_o many_o sacrifice_n offer_v at_o the_o altar_n as_o may_v suffice_v for_o the_o people_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v further_o say_v that_o the_o priest_n by_o receivinge_v both_o part_n in_o several_a express_v as_o it_o be_v unto_o the_o eye_n how_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v do_v asunder_o the_o scripture_n and_o ancient_a father_n have_v teach_v we_o otherwise_o that_o not_o any_o gesture_n of_o the_o priest_n but_o the_o very_a ministration_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n and_o the_o whole_a action_n of_o the_o people_n express_v unto_o we_o the_o manner_n and_o order_n of_o christ_n death_n s._n paul_n saithe_v as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v this_o cup_n 11._o you_o shall_v declare_v the_o lord_n death_n until_o he_o come_v and_o this_o s._n paul_n write_v not_o only_o to_o the_o priest_n but_o also_o to_o the_o whole_a congregation_n of_o the_o corinthian_n and_o in_o like_a sort_n write_v s._n augustine_n touchinge_v the_o same_o cum_fw-la frangitur_fw-la hostia_fw-la &_o sanguis_n de_fw-fr calais_n in_o ora_fw-la fidelium_fw-la funditur_fw-la quid_fw-la aliud_fw-la quà m_fw-la dominici_fw-la corporis_fw-la in_o cruse_n immolatio_fw-la frangitur_fw-la eiusque_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la de_fw-la latere_fw-la effusio_fw-la designatur_fw-la when_o the_o oblation_n be_v break_v and_o the_o blood_n from_o the_o cup_n be_v pour_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a what_o thing_n else_o be_v there_o signify_v but_o
the_o offringe_v of_o the_o lord_n body_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o flowinge_n of_o his_o blood_n from_o his_o side_n thus_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o separation_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v represent_v as_o well_o by_o the_o people_n as_o by_o the_o priest_n wherefore_o to_o divise_v a_o difference_n without_o cause_n and_o of_o the_o same_o to_o conclude_v a_o error_n it_o be_v double_a folly_n the_o diversity_n of_o form_n and_o kind_n saithe_n m._n hardinge_n serve_v for_o signification_n only_o and_o have_v no_o further_a use_n ne_o profit_n notwithstanding_o this_o saie_v be_v otherwise_o true_a yet_o the_o issue_n thereof_o seem_v dangerous_a it_o be_v our_o part_n to_o be_v obedient_a and_o not_o to_o discuss_v or_o rectify_v god_n commandment_n and_o to_o say_v any_o thing_n that_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v appoint_v we_o to_o do_v be_v utter_o void_a of_o use_n and_o profit_n as_o for_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v here_o claim_v if_o we_o shall_v demand_v where_o and_o when_o it_o be_v grant_v perhaps_o the_o chartar_n will_v not_o be_v find_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v against_o god_n nor_o to_o control_v any_o his_o ordinance_n neither_o have_v m._n hardinge_n yet_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n within_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n in_o open_a congregation_n and_o assembly_n of_o people_n which_o be_v the_o state_n of_o this_o question_n ever_o use_v any_o such_o kind_n of_o liberty_n in_o these_o word_n m._n hardinge_n have_v privy_o couch_v sundry_a argument_n which_o of_o what_o value_n or_o force_n they_o be_v i_o pray_v thou_o gentle_a reader_n to_o understande_v the_o first_o be_v this_o the_o priest_n consecrate_v the_o sacrament_n therefore_o the_o people_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n the_o second_o be_v this_o the_o priest_n offer_v the_o sacrifice_n and_o represent_v the_o separation_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o people_n to_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n the_o third_o be_v this_o the_o church_n have_v her_o liberty_n ergo_fw-la she_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o christ_n institution_n alas_o how_o sclender_o hang_v these_o thing_n together_o yet_o these_o be_v the_o argument_n that_o as_o it_o be_v suppose_v be_v never_o able_a to_o be_v answer_v m._n hardinge_n the_o .3_o division_n as_o touchinge_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n bibite_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o they_o perteine_v to_o the_o apostle_n only_o and_o to_o their_o successor_n for_o to_o they_o 49_o appear_v only_o he_o give_v commandment_n to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o do_v in_o his_o supper_n ultim_fw-la as_o clement_n saithe_v to_o they_o only_o sai_v do_v this_o in_o my_o remembrance_n he_o give_v commission_n to_o consecrate_v offer_v and_o to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n by_o the_o same_o word_n ordeininge_v they_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n wherefore_o this_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o lie_v people_n neither_o can_v it_o just_o be_v geather_v by_o this_o place_n that_o they_o be_v bind_v of_o necessity_n and_o case_n under_o pain_n of_o deadly_a sin_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n under_o both_o kind_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n when_o i_o read_v these_o word_n of_o m._n hardinge_n i_o be_o strike_v with_o horror_n to_o consider_v the_o terrible_a judgement_n of_o god_n it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v fear_v that_o he_o that_o be_v lead_v away_o of_o this_o sort_n offend_v not_o of_o ignorance_n for_o so_o be_v the_o fault_n the_o more_o pardonable_a but_o against_o the_o manifest_a know_v truth_n and_o against_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o whereas_o christ_n saithe_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o if_o he_o will_v follow_v the_o letter_n the_o word_n be_v plain_a that_o all_o shall_v drink_v if_o he_o will_v leave_v the_o letter_n and_o take_v the_o meaning_n s._n paul_n have_v open_v it_o for_o write_n unto_o the_o whole_a congregation_n at_o corinthe_n 11._o he_o saithe_v thus_o as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n you_o shall_v declare_v the_o lord_n death_n until_o he_o come_v if_o he_o doubt_n s._n paul_n yet_o the_o very_a practice_n and_o continual_a order_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n full_o declare_v what_o christ_n mean_v and_o they_o say_v consuetudo_fw-la est_fw-la optima_fw-la interpres_fw-la legis_fw-la custom_n be_v the_o best_a interpreter_n of_o the_o law_n if_o he_o will_v take_v neither_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n nor_o christ_n meaning_n than_o i_o know_v âot_n how_o to_o deal_v with_o he_o once_o again_o he_o bring_v forth_o clement_a the_o apostle_n fellow_n and_o what_o clement_n uery_o even_o the_o same_o that_o minister_v and_o deliver_v the_o holy_a communion_n to_o the_o faithful_a that_o then_o be_v in_o rome_n under_o both_o kind_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o long_a usage_n of_o that_o church_n even_o as_o christ_n deliver_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n and_o m._n hardinge_n be_v not_o able_a to_o show_v that_o the_o same_o clement_n ever_o minister_v otherwise_o he_o see_v &_o know_v that_o the_o word_n omnes_fw-la be_v against_o he_o the_o meaning_n against_o he_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n against_o he_o his_o own_o clement_n against_o he_o yet_o he_o bear_v his_o countenance_n so_o as_o if_o all_o be_v with_o he_o to_o be_v short_a if_o christ_n when_o he_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o mean_v not_o that_o all_o shall_v drink_v why_o do_v s._n paul_n and_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n expound_v it_o and_o practice_v it_o as_o though_o he_o have_v mean_v so_o and_o if_o he_o mean_v so_o why_o do_v m._n hardinge_n deceive_v the_o world_n and_o say_v he_o mean_v not_o so_o but_o clement_n saithe_v christ_n speak_v these_o word_n do_v this_o in_o my_o remembrance_n only_o unto_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o say_v m._n hardinge_n these_o word_n drink_v you_o all_o pertain_v to_o the_o apostle_n only_o and_o to_o their_o successor_n understande_v good_a reader_n that_o clement_n in_o the_o place_n here_o allege_v speak_v not_o one_o word_n either_o of_o one_o kind_n or_o of_o both_o but_o only_o saithe_v thus_o that_o christ_n appoint_v his_o apostle_n to_o the_o office_n of_o the_o holy_a ministration_n which_o he_o call_v the_o spiritual_a oblation_n therefore_o thou_o may_v see_v hostia_fw-la that_o m._n hardinge_n show_v the_o one_o thing_n for_o a_o other_o and_o of_o the_o same_o concludinge_n what_o he_o like_v can_v seem_v to_o deal_v plain_o the_o argument_n that_o hereof_o be_v geather_v stand_v thus_o clement_n saithe_v that_o christ_n give_v only_o unto_o his_o apostle_n the_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o authority_n to_o offer_v the_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n ergo_fw-la these_o word_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o perteine_a nothing_o to_o the_o people_n here_o be_v a_o very_a faint_a conclusion_n for_o by_o force_n of_o this_o reason_n he_o may_v take_v from_o the_o people_n both_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o well_o as_o one_o and_o so_o leave_v they_o no_o sacrament_n at_o al._n m._n hardinge_n the_o .4_o division_n and_o this_o understand_v they_o which_o above_o one_o hundred_o year_n past_a 50_o custom_n chaunginge_v the_o old_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n of_o receivinge_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n by_o their_o private_a authority_n will_v needs_o usurp_v the_o cup_n also_o for_o seeinge_v themselves_o not_o to_o have_v sufficient_a proufe_v and_o warrant_v for_o their_o dooinge_a 6._o of_o these_o word_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o the_o better_a to_o bolster_v up_o their_o new_a fangle_a attempt_n they_o think_v it_o better_a to_o aliege_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n in_o s._n john_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o which_o word_n for_o all_o that_o our_o new_a master_n of_o forty_o year_n paste_n will_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o spiritual_a and_o not_o of_o the_o sacramental_a eatinge_v as_o it_o may_v be_v and_o be_v take_v for_o both_o of_o the_o doctor_n view_v a_o part_n yet_o in_o all_o that_o chapter_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o cup_n nor_o of_o wine_n at_o al._n wherefore_o they_o that_o cry_v so_o much_o on_o the_o institution_n and_o commandment_n of_o christ_n can_v find_v in_o all_o the_o scripture_n neither_o commandment_n where_o he_o give_v charge_n the_o sarcament_n so_o to_o be_v give_v neither_o so_o much_o as_o any_o example_n where_o christ_n give_v it_o under_o both_o kind_n to_o any_o other_o then_o to_o thapostle_n where_o as_o contrariwise_o it_o may_v be_v show_v of_o our_o part_n
that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v give_v under_o one_o kind_n only_o to_o the_o two_o disciple_n that_o go_v to_o emaus_n 24._o for_o that_o the_o breâde_n which_o christ_n there_o take_v bliss_v brake_n and_o give_v to_o they_o be_v not_o simple_a and_o common_a bread_n but_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o so_o 17._o chrysostome_n 25._o augustine_n lucam_n bede_n and_o 2._o theophylacte_n with_o one_o accord_n do_v witness_n it_o appear_v also_o that_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v use_v at_o jerusalem_n among_o christ_n disciple_n by_o that_o s._n luke_n write_v in_o thacte_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o breakinge_v of_o the_o bread_n if_o m._n jewel_n here_o think_v to_o avoid_v these_o place_n by_o their_o accustom_a figure_n synecdoche_n among_o his_o own_o sect_n happy_o it_o may_v be_v accept_v but_o among_o man_n of_o right_a and_o learned_a judgement_n that_o shift_n will_v seem_v over_o weak_a and_o vain_a now_o to_o conclude_v touchinge_v the_o six_o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n as_o thereof_o they_o can_v bring_v no_o one_o word_n mentioninge_v the_o cup_n or_o wine_n for_o proufe_v of_o their_o both_o kind_n so_o it_o show_v and_o not_o in_o very_o obscure_a wise_a that_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n alone_o be_v sufficient_a whereas_o christ_n say_v qui_fw-la manducat_fw-la panem_fw-la hunc_fw-la vivet_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n in_o these_o word_n m._n hardinge_n charge_v not_o only_o we_o but_o also_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n and_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n with_o great_a oversight_n who_o in_o their_o time_n minister_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n unto_o the_o uulgare_a people_n as_o it_o be_v now_o suppose_a by_o these_o man_n without_o any_o example_n of_o christ_n and_o without_o commission_n touchinge_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n i_o have_v already_o say_v so_o much_o as_o unto_o a_o quiet_a mind_n may_v seem_v sufficient_a yet_o for_o further_a declaration_n i_o will_v demand_v of_o m._n hardinge_n what_o thing_n he_o require_v to_o christ_n institution_n if_o word_n christ_n word_n be_v plain_a if_o example_n christ_n himself_o minister_v in_o both_o kynde_n if_o authority_n christ_n command_v his_o disciple_n and_o in_o they_o all_o other_o minister_n of_o his_o church_n to_o do_v the_o like_a if_o certdiâetie_n of_o his_o meaning_n the_o apostle_n endue_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o practise_v the_o same_o and_o understand_v he_o mean_v so_o if_o continuance_n of_o time_n he_o bid_v the_o same_o to_o be_v continue_v until_o he_o come_v again_o if_o neither_o the_o word_n nor_o example_n nor_o commandment_n of_o christ_n nor_o the_o understanding_n &_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n can_v warrant_v we_o christ_n institution_n alas_o what_o warrant_v then_o have_v they_o that_o be_v utter_o void_a of_o all_o these_o thing_n only_o stay_v themselves_o sophistry_n as_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o best_a of_o that_o side_n by_o the_o simple_a devotion_n of_o the_o people_n when_o christ_n have_v deliver_v both_o kind_n unto_o his_o disciple_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o this_o do_v you_o the_o same_o that_o you_o see_v i_o have_v do_v but_o where_o do_v christ_n ever_o say_v minister_n unto_o yourselves_o one_o way_n and_o a_o other_o way_n unto_o the_o people_n or_o receive_v you_o in_o both_o kind_n and_o let_v all_o the_o rest_n receive_v in_o one_o although_o these_o thing_n be_v plain_a and_o evident_a of_o themselves_o yet_o that_o the_o folly_n of_o these_o man_n may_v the_o better_o appear_v it_o shall_v be_v good_a to_o hear_v the_o report_n of_o one_o of_o their_o own_o doctor_n touchinge_v these_o matter_n one_o gerardus_n lorichius_n canonis_fw-la in_o a_o book_n that_o he_o write_v de_fw-fr missa_fw-la publica_fw-la proroganda_fw-la have_v these_o word_n sunt_fw-la pleudocatholici_fw-la qui_fw-la reformationem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la quoquo_fw-la modo_fw-la remorari_fw-la non_fw-la verentur_fw-la he_o ne_fw-la laicis_fw-la altera_fw-la species_n restituatur_fw-la nullis_fw-la parcunt_fw-la blasphemijs_fw-la dicunt_fw-la enim_fw-la christum_n solis_fw-la apostolis_n dixisse_fw-la bibite_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la omnes_fw-la atqui_fw-la verba_fw-la canonis_fw-la habent_fw-la accipite_fw-la &_o manducate_v ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la hic_fw-la dicant_fw-la oro_fw-la num_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la ad_fw-la solos_fw-la dictum_fw-la sit_fw-la apostolos_fw-la ergo_fw-la laicis_fw-la &_o à _fw-la specie_fw-la panis_fw-la est_fw-la abstinendum_fw-la quod_fw-la dicerââst_fw-la haeresis_fw-la &_o blasphemia_fw-la pestilens_fw-la &_o execrabilis_fw-la consequitur_fw-la ergo_fw-la utrunque_fw-la verbum_fw-la dictum_fw-la esse_fw-la ad_fw-la omnem_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la they_o be_v false_a catholic_n saithe_n this_o man_n that_o be_v not_o ashamed_a by_o all_o mean_n to_o hinder_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n they_z to_o thintent_v the_o other_o kind_n of_o the_o sacrament_n may_v not_o be_v restore_v unto_o the_o say_v people_n spare_v no_o kind_n of_o blasphemy_n for_o they_o say_v that_o christ_n say_v only_o unto_o his_o apostle_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v these_o take_v and_o eat_v you_o all_o of_o this_o here_o i_o beseech_v they_o let_v they_o tell_v i_o whether_o they_o will_v have_v these_o word_n also_o only_o to_o perteine_v unto_o the_o apostle_n then_o must_v the_o lay_v people_n abstain_v from_o the_o other_o kind_n of_o the_o bread_n also_o which_o thing_n to_o say_v be_v a_o heresy_n and_o a_o pestilent_a and_o a_o detestable_a blasphemy_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o each_o of_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v unto_o the_o whole_a church_n thus_o far_o lorichius_n a_o earnest_a defender_n of_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o of_o private_a mass_n lest_o m._n hardinge_n shall_v say_v he_o be_v one_o of_o luther_n scholar_n and_o so_o except_o against_o he_o as_o be_v a_o party_n and_o leo_n sometime_o bishop_n of_o rome_n hear_v of_o certain_a that_o use_v to_o dip_v the_o bread_n in_o the_o wine_n and_o so_o to_o deliver_v it_o to_o the_o people_n have_v no_o way_n to_o reform_v they_o but_o only_o by_o christ_n institution_n for_o thus_o he_o saithe_v omne_fw-la quod_fw-la pro_fw-la complemento_fw-la communionis_fw-la âª_o intinctam_fw-la tradunt_fw-la eucharistiam_fw-la populis_fw-la nec_fw-la hoc_fw-la prolatum_fw-la ex_fw-la euangelio_fw-la testimonium_fw-la receperunt_fw-la whereas_o for_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o communion_n they_o dip_v the_o sacrament_n and_o deluer_n it_o unto_o the_o people_n they_o have_v not_o receive_v this_o witness_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o add_v further_a seorsum_fw-la enim_fw-la panis_n &_o seorsum_fw-la calicis_fw-la commendatio_fw-la memoratur_fw-la for_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o cup_n be_v mention_v asunder_o and_o thus_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v due_a not_o only_o to_o the_o priest_n but_o also_o to_o the_o people_n the_o learned_a man_n of_o bohemia_n sâwe_v they_o can_v have_v no_o hold_n of_o christ_n institution_n and_o therefore_o to_o maintain_v their_o new_a fangle_a attempt_n as_o it_o please_v m._n hardinge_n to_o terâe_v it_o they_o be_v ãâã_d to_o take_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n out_o of_o the_o sixthe_a chapter_n of_o john_n onlesse_a ãâ¦ã_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o but_o these_o word_n in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n saithe_n m._n hardinge_n our_o new_a master_n will_v have_v expound_v of_o the_o spiritual_a not_o of_o the_o sacramental_a eatinge_v of_o the_o bohemians_n i_o can_v see_v why_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v new_a fangle_a their_o request_n be_v none_o other_o but_o that_o they_o may_v continue_v the_o order_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n âª_o which_o thomas_n of_o aquine_n saithe_v have_v continue_v in_o diverse_a church_n from_o the_o apostle_n until_o his_o time_n for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o and_o three_o hundred_o year_n without_o controlment_n and_o it_o may_v il_fw-mi become_v a_o christian_a man_n and_o a_o scholar_n of_o thapostoââque_n see_v to_o call_v the_o dooinge_a of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o disciple_n new_a fangle_a touchinge_v their_o reason_n make_v in_o this_o behalf_n i_o need_v not_o to_o speak_v god_n name_n be_v bliss_v they_o have_v prevail_v with_o the_o best_a learned_a of_o the_o world_n what_o so_o ever_o their_o premise_n seem_v to_o m._n hardinge_n their_o conclusion_n be_v this_o that_o no_o mortal_a creature_n shall_v presume_v to_o disallow_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o immortal_a god_n but_o our_o new_a master_n saithe_n m._n hardinge_n must_v needs_o have_v these_o word_n of_o s._n john_n expound_v of_o the_o spiritual_a eatinge_v if_o it_o be_v either_o the_o violence_n of_o nature_n or_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o catholic_a
doctrine_n that_o drive_v m._n hardinge_n thus_o to_o taunt_n he_o must_v be_v bear_v with_o all_o notwithstanding_o it_o agree_v not_o with_o his_o promise_n as_o touchinge_v the_o understand_v of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sixthe_n of_o s._n john_n they_o be_v not_o all_o new_a master_n that_o have_v so_o take_v they_o for_o to_o leave_v s._n augustine_n origen_n and_o other_o of_o that_o age_n nicolas_n lyra_n 111._o a_o man_n of_o late_a year_n say_v the_o say_a word_n of_o christ_n must_v needs_o be_v take_v spiritual_o and_o none_o otherwise_o thus_o he_o saithe_v ista_fw-la intelligi_fw-la debent_fw-la de_fw-la manducatione_n &_o potatione_fw-la spirituali_fw-la quia_fw-la sequitur_fw-la qui_fw-la manducat_fw-la meam_fw-la carnem_fw-la &_o bibit_fw-la meum_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la in_o i_o manet_fw-la &_o ego_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la quod_fw-la b._n augustinus_n exponens_fw-la ait_fw-la âª_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la manducare_fw-la illam_fw-la escam_fw-la &_o bibere_fw-la illum_fw-la potum_fw-la in_fw-la christo_fw-la manere_fw-la &_o christum_n manentem_fw-la in_o se_fw-la habere_fw-la quod_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o charitate_fw-la christi_fw-la these_o word_n must_v be_v take_v of_o the_o spiritual_a eatinge_v and_o drink_v for_o it_o follow_v he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o which_o thing_n s._n augustine_n expoundinge_a saithe_v thus_o this_o be_v the_o eatinge_v of_o that_o food_n and_o the_o drink_v of_o that_o drink_n for_o a_o man_n to_o dwell_v in_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v christ_n in_o he_o dwellinge_a which_o thing_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o be_v in_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n here_o we_o see_v that_o nicolas_n lyra_n a_o man_n that_o live_v two_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o therefore_o no_o very_a new_a master_n expound_v these_o word_n of_o the_o spiritual_a eatinge_v yet_o m._n hardinge_n saithe_v the_o same_o place_n may_v be_v take_v also_o of_o the_o sacramental_a eatinge_v but_o lyra_n think_v not_o 111._o and_o therefore_o add_v further_o hoc_fw-la verbum_fw-la nihil_fw-la directe_v pertinet_fw-la ad_fw-la sacramentalem_fw-la vel_fw-la corporalem_fw-la manducationem_fw-la nam_fw-la hoc_fw-la verbum_fw-la fuit_fw-la dictum_fw-la diu_fw-la antequam_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la eucharistiae_fw-la esset_fw-la institutum_fw-la exit_fw-la illa_fw-la igitur_fw-la litera_fw-la de_fw-la sacramentali_fw-la communione_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la fieri_fw-la argumentum_fw-la efficax_n these_o word_n pertain_v not_o direct_o unto_o the_o sacramental_a or_o corporal_a eatinge_v for_o it_o be_v speak_v long_o before_o the_o sacrament_n be_v ordain_v therefore_o out_o of_o this_o letter_n there_o can_v be_v make_v any_o good_a argument_n for_o the_o sacramental_a communion_n likewise_o one_o michael_n uaehe_fw-ge one_n of_o late_a year_n lutherum_n a_o man_n of_o m._n hardinge_n own_o side_n toutchinge_v the_o same_o matter_n write_v thus_o infirmum_fw-la est_fw-la argumentum_fw-la quae_fw-la enim_fw-la de_fw-la spirituali_fw-la manducatione_n dicta_fw-la sunt_fw-la ille_fw-la ad_fw-la sacramentalem_fw-la torquet_fw-la this_o say_v he_o be_v but_o a_o weak_a reason_n for_o the_o word_n that_o be_v speak_v of_o spiritual_a eatinge_v he_o appli_v to_o the_o sacramental_a eatinge_v here_o may_v m._n hardinge_n see_v besides_o s._n augustine_n origen_n &_o other_o old_a catholic_a father_n who_o word_n i_o have_v not_o allege_v what_o man_n he_o have_v call_v new_a master_n nicolas_n lyra_n be_v a_o english_a man_n and_o live_v two_o hundred_o year_n before_o luther_n michael_n uaehe_fw-ge be_v of_o late_a year_n and_o write_v namely_o against_o luther_n uere_o if_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v now_o conversante_fw-la in_o the_o world_n onlesse_a they_o will_v forsake_v their_o own_o doctrine_n they_o shall_v be_v call_v new_a master_n to_o as_o well_o as_o other_o and_o not_o withstand_v these_o word_n in_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n be_v speak_v and_o take_v of_o the_o spiritual_a eatinge_v as_o it_o be_v already_o prove_v yet_o be_v they_o oftentimes_o by_o the_o old_a father_n apply_v unto_o the_o sacrament_n but_o undirect_o as_o it_o be_v above_o note_v by_o lyra._n to_o allege_v the_o place_n special_o be_v so_o many_o and_o not_o unknowen_a unto_o the_o learned_a it_o will_v be_v tedious_a christ_n be_v at_o emaus_n and_o the_o disciple_n breakinge_v of_o bread_n at_o jerusalem_n because_o it_o have_v please_v m._n hardinge_n to_o bring_v they_o twice_o shall_v be_v afterward_o answer_v in_o their_o place_n the_o reason_n that_o m._n harding_n have_v here_o geather_v be_v these_o in_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o the_o cup_n or_o wine_n ergo_fw-la the_o people_n may_v receive_v under_o one_o kind_n this_o reason_n be_v very_o weak_a for_o he_o may_v as_o well_o conclude_v of_o the_o same_o word_n ergo_fw-la the_o priest_n may_v receive_v under_o one_o kind_n which_o he_o himself_o say_v be_v against_o christ_n institution_n he_o may_v far_o better_v have_v conclude_v the_o contrary_n the_z lie_z people_n be_v faithful_a &_o godly_a by_o faith_n and_o in_o their_o heart_n do_v in_o deed_n and_o very_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n therefore_o they_o may_v drink_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o âame_n and_o as_o eckius_fw-la a_o doctor_n of_o that_o side_n saithe_v communibus_fw-la the_o people_n drink_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o priest_n therefore_o they_o may_v drink_v in_o their_o own_o person_n as_o well_o and_o without_o danger_n an_o other_o reason_n be_v this_o it_o doothe_v not_o appear_v that_o christ_n ever_o minister_v in_o both_o kind_n but_o only_o to_o his_o disciple_n ergo_fw-la yâ_z people_n may_v receive_v in_o one_o kind_n i_o marvel_v what_o luck_n m._n hardinge_n have_v to_o such_o conclusion_n for_o what_o necessary_a sequel_n can_v there_o be_v either_o from_o thapostle_n to_o the_o people_n or_o from_o both_o kind_n to_o one_o kind_n or_o from_o a_o affirmative_a to_o a_o negative_a the_o sum_n of_o the_o reason_n stand_v thus_o thapostle_n be_v command_v to_o receive_v both_o kind_n ergo_fw-la the_o people_n be_v not_o command_v to_o receive_v both_o kinds_a the_o weakness_n whereof_o be_v evident_a &_o show_v itself_o it_o will_v much_o rather_o &_o better_o follow_v thus_o the_o people_n be_v command_v to_o receive_v as_o thapostle_n receive_v for_o there_o be_v express_v no_o difference_n the_o apostle_n receive_v in_o both_o kind_n ergo_fw-la the_o people_n be_v command_v to_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n and_o thus_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v here_o stout_o avoutch_v that_o we_o have_v neither_o example_n nor_o institution_n yet_o i_o trust_v it_o doothe_v well_o appear_v that_o we_o have_v both_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n that_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n and_o also_o christ_n institution_n that_o bid_v his_o disciple_n to_o do_v the_o same_o m._n hardinge_n the_o .5_o division_n thus_o our_o adversary_n have_v nothing_o to_o bring_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n against_o the_o use_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o ministringe_n the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n and_o yet_o they_o cease_v not_o crieinge_v out_o upon_o the_o breach_n of_o christ_n express_a commandment_n and_o m._n jewel_n for_o his_o part_n in_o his_o first_o answer_n to_o d._n cole_n say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n pronounce_v open_o against_o christ_n himself_o but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v so_o hot_a in_o this_o point_n i_o will_v send_v they_o to_o martin_n luther_n himself_o their_o patriarch_n that_o either_o by_o his_o sobriety_n in_o this_o mater_fw-la they_o may_v be_v somewhat_o cold_v or_o by_o he_o and_o his_o scholar_n inconstancy_n herein_o be_v bring_v to_o be_v asshamed_a of_o themselves_o though_o the_o place_n be_v well_o know_v as_o oftentimes_o cite_v of_o the_o catholic_a writer_n of_o our_o time_n against_o the_o gospeler_n yet_o here_o i_o think_v good_a to_o rehearse_v they_o that_o the_o unlearned_a may_v see_v how_o themselves_o make_v not_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n of_o this_o article_n as_o some_o seem_v to_o bear_v the_o people_n in_o hand_n it_o be_v luther_n write_v to_o they_o of_o bohemiae_n these_o very_a word_n quoniam_fw-la pulchrum_fw-la quidem_fw-la esset_fw-la utraque_fw-la specie_fw-la eucharistiae_fw-la uti_fw-la &_o christus_fw-la hac_fw-la in_o re_fw-la nihil_fw-la tanquam_fw-la necessarium_fw-la praecepit_fw-la praestaret_fw-la pacem_fw-la &_o unitatem_fw-la quam_fw-la christus_fw-la ubique_fw-la praecepit_fw-la sectari_fw-la quà m_fw-la de_fw-la speciebus_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la contendere_fw-la where_o as_o it_o be_v a_o fair_a thing_n say_v he_o to_o use_v both_o kind_n of_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o for_o that_o christ_n herein_o have_v command_v nothing_o as_o necessary_a it_o be_v better_a to_o keep_v peace_n and_o unity_n which_o christ_n have_v every_o where_o charge_v we_o with_o all_o they_o to_o strive_v for_o the_o outward_a kind_n of_o the_o sacrament_n again_o his_o word_n be_v
retinuit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la temerè_fw-la condemnandi_fw-la aut_fw-la inuicem_fw-la iudicandi_fw-la that_o the_o controversy_n for_o the_o one_o or_o both_o kind_n may_v be_v take_v away_o it_o shall_v be_v very_o well_o do_v that_o holy_a church_n make_v it_o free_a to_o receive_v this_o sacrament_n in_o one_o or_o both_o kind_n yet_o under_o such_o condition_n as_o hereby_o no_o occasion_n be_v give_v to_o any_o body_n rash_o to_o condemn_v the_o use_n which_o the_o church_n have_v so_o long_a time_n keapte_v nor_o to_o judge_v one_o a_o other_o sooth_o he_o which_o will_v have_v it_o free_a and_o at_o liberty_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o or_o both_o kind_n and_o hold_v opinion_n that_o the_o old_a custom_n of_o the_o one_o kind_n only_o be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v seem_v plain_o enough_o to_o confess_v that_o nothing_o have_v be_v institute_v or_o command_v of_o christ_n toutchinge_v this_o matter_n as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n thus_o we_o may_v see_v plain_o that_o they_o which_o have_v divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v his_o church_n who_o be_v of_o great_a learning_n and_o judgement_n make_v it_o a_o matter_n indifferent_a as_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n of_o itself_o leave_v to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o the_o sacrament_n be_v minister_v under_o one_o kind_n or_o both_o and_o thus_o much_o have_v be_v confess_v against_o m._n jewel_n and_o his_o sect_n not_o only_o by_o the_o learned_a adversary_n of_o the_o church_n in_o our_o time_n but_o also_o by_o a_o learned_a man_n of_o bohemia_n above_o six_o score_n year_n past_a his_o name_n be_v john_n przyxsam_n of_o who_o write_n some_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o print_n this_o learned_a man_n where_o as_o he_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v the_o use_n of_o both_o kind_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n write_v by_o s._n john_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o at_o length_n utter_v these_o word_n accord_v to_o the_o eloquence_n of_o his_o time_n 19_o veruntamen_fw-la hic_fw-la deum_fw-la timens_fw-la &_o mores_fw-la impios_fw-la aliorum_fw-la praecavens_fw-la fateor_fw-la quòd_fw-la quaslibet_fw-la personas_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la communioni_fw-la fidelium_fw-la sub_fw-la utraque_fw-la specie_fw-la repugnantes_fw-la damnare_fw-la aut_fw-la haerericare_fw-la non_fw-la intendo_fw-la but_o here_o have_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n before_o my_o eye_n and_o be_v well_o ware_a i_o follow_v not_o the_o wicked_a condition_n of_o other_o i_o grant_v that_o what_o personne_n so_o ever_o of_o the_o church_n repine_v against_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a people_n under_o both_o kind_n i_o intend_v not_o to_o condemn_v they_o nor_o to_o hold_v they_o for_o heretic_n but_o if_o it_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v of_o all_o under_o both_o kind_n why_o shall_v he_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n to_o condemn_v those_o that_o withstand_v that_o order_n of_o communion_n seeinge_v that_o who_o so_o ever_o goo_v against_o god_n commandment_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v conden_v therefore_o by_o his_o testimony_n the_o use_n of_o one_o or_o both_o kind_n be_v indifferent_a thus_o we_o be_v able_a to_o allege_v luther_n melancthon_n bucer_n and_o that_o learned_a bohemian_a for_o the_o indifferency_n of_o the_o communion_n to_o be_v minister_v either_o under_o one_o kind_n or_o both_o whereby_o i_o mean_v nor_o that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v so_o leave_v to_o every_o man_n liberty_n as_o he_o that_o list_v may_v require_v both_o kind_n and_o a_o other_o may_v content_v himself_o with_o one_o kind_n not_o so_o every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o follow_v the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o church_n be_v not_o bind_v of_o necessity_n by_o âoddes_n commandment_n to_o minister_v it_o under_o both_o kind_n to_o the_o laity_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o half_a communion_n be_v a_o thing_n indifferent_a he_o bring_v forth_o thauthoritie_n of_o melancthon_n bucer_n &_o a_o certain_a learned_a man_n of_o bohemia_n some_o of_o they_o false_o allege_v &_o some_o without_o any_o allegation_n at_o al._n neither_o do_v he_o bring_v they_o to_o thintent_a to_o take_v they_o for_o his_o author_n &_o to_o follow_v they_o for_o they_o neither_o in_o their_o book_n nor_o in_o the_o order_n of_o their_o church_n ever_o consent_v to_o the_o breach_n of_o christ_n institution_n but_o herein_o he_o bewray_v his_o want_n of_o old_a doctor_n for_o have_v thauthoritie_n of_o they_o he_o will_v never_o have_v allege_v any_o of_o these_o in_o melancthon_n he_o misselike_v much_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o speech_n in_o that_o he_o call_v the_o sacrament_n a_o sign_n which_o word_n as_o he_o saithe_v be_v strange_a and_o not_o the_o accustom_a word_n of_o the_o church_n savinge_v that_o he_o seek_v occasion_n and_o quarrel_n without_o cause_n as_o his_o wont_n be_v otherwise_o he_o know_v that_o a_o sacrament_n have_v be_v call_v a_o sign_n in_o all_o time_n sign_n and_o age_n of_o the_o church_n petrus_n lumbardus_n thus_o define_v a_o sacrament_n 1._o sacramentum_fw-la est_fw-la signum_fw-la rei_fw-la sacrae_fw-la a_o sacrament_n be_v the_o sign_n of_o a_o holy_a thing_n and_o as_o it_o be_v think_v the_o very_a substance_n and_o nature_n of_o a_o thing_n can_v be_v better_a know_v 15._o thân_v by_o the_o definition_n s._n augustine_n say_v signa_fw-la cùm_fw-la ad_fw-la res_fw-la divinas_fw-la adhibentur_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la vocantur_fw-la sign_n when_o they_o be_v apply_v to_o godly_a thing_n be_v call_v sacrament_n and_o again_o write_n of_o the_o difference_n that_o be_v between_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a law_n 45._o and_o of_o the_o new_a he_o saithe_v thus_o in_o signis_fw-la diversis_fw-la eadem_fw-la fides_fw-la the_o sign_n be_v diverse_a the_o faith_n be_v one_o and_o write_n against_o one_o adimantus_n he_o saithe_v non_fw-la dubitavit_fw-la dominus_fw-la dicere_fw-la 12._o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la cùm_fw-la daret_fw-la signum_fw-la corporis_fw-la svi_fw-la the_o lord_n doubt_v not_o to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n likewise_o saithe_v chrysostome_n si_fw-mi mortuus_fw-la jesus_n non_fw-la est_fw-la cvius_fw-la symbolum_fw-la 83._o ac_fw-la signum_fw-la hoc_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la est_fw-la if_o jesus_n die_v not_o who_o token_n and_o who_o sign_n be_v this_o sacrifice_n and_o lest_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v deceive_v in_o the_o meaning_n of_o this_o word_n sign_n 2._o s._n augustine_n himself_o have_v expound_v it_o thus_o signum_fw-la est_fw-la res_fw-la praeter_fw-la speciem_fw-la quam_fw-la ingerit_fw-la sensibus_fw-la aliud_fw-la quiddam_fw-la faciens_fw-la ex_fw-la se_fw-la in_o cognitionem_fw-la venire_fw-la a_o sign_n be_v a_o thing_n that_o besides_o the_o sight_n itself_o which_o it_o offer_v unto_o the_o sense_n est_fw-la cause_v of_o itself_o some_o other_o certain_a thing_n to_o come_v into_o knowledge_n hereby_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o this_o word_n sign_n be_v not_o so_o strange_a as_o m._n hardinge_n will_v have_v it_o seem_v nor_o so_o unaccustomed_a unto_o the_o church_n although_o it_o misselike_a he_o that_o we_o shall_v do_v as_o the_o old_a father_n do_v yet_o he_o may_v geve_v we_o leave_v to_o use_v such_o word_n and_o phrase_n as_o the_o old_a father_n use_v but_o he_o saithe_v melancthon_n and_o bucer_n account_v it_o as_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a in_o deed_n these_o godly_a learned_a man_n when_o they_o see_v that_o through_o the_o malice_n of_o their_o adversary_n they_o can_v not_o obtain_v that_o christ_n institution_n may_v universal_o be_v receive_v yet_o they_o desire_v at_o the_o least_o it_o may_v be_v leafte_o free_a without_o restrainte_fw-fr for_o every_o church_n to_o do_v therein_o as_o they_o shall_v think_v good_a and_o that_o without_o murmur_n or_o offence_n of_o other_o and_o thus_o far_o forth_o their_o desire_n be_v it_o may_v be_v judge_v free_a not_o that_o they_o think_v christ_n have_v not_o ordain_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v minister_v unto_o the_o people_n in_o both_o kind_n or_o that_o in_o itself_o it_o be_v indifferent_a but_o that_o the_o faithful_a of_o god_n may_v indifferent_o and_o free_o use_v it_o without_o controlment_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v judge_v heresy_n to_o do_v as_o christ_n have_v command_v so_o the_o godly_a father_n at_o the_o begin_v when_o they_o can_v not_o persuade_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n with_o their_o people_n to_o receive_v the_o gospel_n yet_o they_o think_v they_o be_v gainer_n and_o give_v god_n thanks_n when_o they_o may_v have_v place_n and_o liberty_n for_o themselves_o free_o and_o with_o quiet_a conscience_n to_o meet_v together_o and_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n this_o liberty_n m._n hardinge_n can_v like_v
these_o both_o be_v m._n hardinge_n premise_n sacrilege_n hereof_o it_o must_v necessary_o follow_v and_o can_v not_o be_v avoid_v that_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n commit_v sacrilege_n but_o what_o will_v not_o these_o man_n grant_v to_o win_v their_o purpose_n the_o weight_n of_o m._n hardinge_n argument_n be_v take_v as_o they_o name_v it_o in_o school_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiuè_fw-fr and_o onlesse_a it_o be_v in_o consideration_n of_o some_o other_o circumstance_n it_o be_v so_o simple_a that_o a_o very_a child_n may_v soon_o answer_v it_o for_o as_o he_o saithe_v here_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v but_o of_o breakinge_v of_o bread_n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v no_o cup_n so_o may_v he_o also_o say_v there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v but_o of_o breakinge_v of_o bread_n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v not_o christ_n body_n 46._o or_o thus_o jacob_n go_v down_o into_o egypte_n with_o three_o score_n and_o ten_o soul_n ergo_fw-la in_o his_o company_n he_o have_v no_o body_n certain_o as_o the_o soul_n in_o that_o place_n import_v the_o whole_a man_n even_o so_o in_o the_o other_o place_n the_o breakinge_v of_o bread_n import_v the_o whole_a ministration_n as_o for_o the_o breakinge_v of_o bread_n in_o the_o .27_o of_o the_o act_n which_o place_n as_o it_o be_v avoutch_v chrysostome_n understand_v of_o the_o sacrament_n very_o m._n harding_n be_v therein_o much_o overséene_a for_o the_o text_n be_v clear_a if_o s._n paul_n give_v the_o sacrament_n âª_o be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o the_o ship_n he_o give_v it_o only_o unto_o infidel_n that_o know_v not_o christ_n chrysostome_n and_o chrysostom_n exposition_n even_o in_o the_o same_o place_n be_v plain_a to_o the_o contrary_n for_o thus_o he_o enlarge_v s._n paul_n word_n that_o he_o speak_v to_o the_o mariner_n obsecro_fw-la vos_fw-la ut_fw-la sumatis_fw-la cibum_fw-la hoc_fw-la enim_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la vestram_fw-la fuerit_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la ne_fw-la forsan_fw-la fame_n pereatis_fw-la cibum_fw-la sumite_fw-la i_o pray_v you_o take_v some_o sustenance_n it_o be_v behooveful_a for_o you_o that_o you_o so_o do_v that_o be_v to_o say_v take_v some_o meat_n jest_n perhaps_o you_o die_v for_o hunger_n now_o let_v m._n harding_n either_o say_v these_o word_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o confess_v that_o he_o have_v make_v untrue_a report_n of_o his_o doctor_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .14_o division_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v maruel_v at_o all_o be_v it_o s._n paul_n deliver_v to_o the_o corinthian_n thinstitution_n of_o our_o lord_n supper_n under_o both_o kind_n that_o yet_o upon_o occasion_n give_v and_o when_o condition_n of_o time_n so_o require_v 58_o so_o he_o minister_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_a sith_o that_o without_o doubt_n he_o take_v that_o holy_a mystery_n under_o one_o kind_a 10._o for_o the_o whole_a sacrament_n as_o we_o perceive_v by_o his_o word_n where_o he_o saithe_v vnus_fw-la panis_fw-la &_o unum_fw-la corpus_fw-la multi_fw-la sumus_fw-la omnes_fw-la qui_fw-la de_fw-la uno_fw-la pane_fw-la participamus_fw-la one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n we_o be_v many_o be_v all_o that_o do_v participate_v of_o one_o bread_n 59_o blood_n where_o he_o speak_v nothing_o of_o the_o cup_n and_o likewise_o by_o his_o word_n where_o he_o speak_v disiunctive_o as_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o true_a latin_a text_n have_v quicunque_fw-la manducaverit_fw-la panem_fw-la vel_fw-la biberit_fw-la calicem_fw-la domini_fw-la indigné_fw-fr reus_fw-la erit_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la domini_fw-la who_o so_o ever_o eat_v the_o bread_n or_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o our_o lord_n unwoorthe_o he_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n whereon_o depend_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o contrary_a that_o who_o so_o ever_o eat_v this_o bread_n worthy_o or_o drink_v this_o cup_n worthy_o he_o eat_v and_o drink_v righteousness_n and_o life_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_v saithe_n m._n hardinge_n though_o s._n paul_n minister_v sometime_o in_o one_o kind_a but_o it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v maruel_v that_o any_o christian_a man_n dare_v ever_o thus_o bold_o to_o publish_v open_a error_n under_o the_o name_n of_o s._n paul_n what_o will_v not_o these_o man_n take_v in_o handâ_n to_o prove_v that_o dare_v thus_o to_o allege_v s._n paul_n himself_o against_o himself_o and_o that_o without_o any_o testimony_n or_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n yes_o marry_o saiethe_v m._n harding_n s._n paul_n saithe_v we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n and_o speak_v nothing_o of_o the_o cup_n sacrilege_n here_o by_o the_o way_n m._n hardinge_n charge_v s._n paul_n with_o manifest_a sacrilege_n for_o it_o be_v already_o confess_v by_o all_o they_o of_o that_o side_n that_o it_o be_v sacrilege_n if_o a_o priest_n such_o as_o s._n paul_n be_v do_v minister_n and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o kind_a but_o he_o say_v there_o be_v nothing_o speak_v of_o the_o cup_n what_o may_v we_o think_v hereof_o whether_o be_v this_o man_n himself_o blind_a or_o think_v he_o all_o other_o to_o be_v blind_a be_v there_o nothing_o there_o speak_v of_o the_o cup_n o_o good_a christian_a reader_n mark_v the_o dealing_v of_o this_o man_n and_o beware_v of_o he_o onlesse_a thou_o consider_v well_o the_o place_n that_o he_o allege_v he_o may_v soon_o deceive_v thou_o thus_o lie_v s._n paul_n word_n word_n the_o cup_n of_o the_o blissinge_a which_o we_o bliss_n be_v it_o not_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o bread_n that_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n all_o that_o be_v partaker_n of_o one_o bread_n here_o s._n paul_n distinct_o name_v both_o part_n together_o and_o the_o cup_n before_o the_o bread_n yet_o saithe_n m._n harding_n there_o be_v nothing_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o cup_n if_o he_o have_v deal_v faithful_o herein_o thou_o may_v trust_v he_o further_o for_o the_o rest_n uere_o s._n hierome_n note_v it_o thus_o 10._o ideo_fw-la de_fw-fr calais_n primum_fw-la dixit_fw-la ut_fw-la posset_n postea_fw-la de_fw-fr pane_n latiùs_fw-la disputare_fw-la therefore_o s._n paul_n speak_v first_o of_o the_o cup_n that_o he_o may_v afterward_o entreat_v more_o at_o large_a of_o the_o bread_n further_o saithe_n m._n hardinge_n s._n paul_n use_v a_o disiunctive_a as_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o greek_a and_o also_o by_o the_o true_a latin_a text_n such_o diligence_n and_o circumspection_n in_o searchinge_v the_o scripture_n for_o defence_n of_o a_o truth_n be_v much_o to_o be_v commend_v for_o there_o may_v be_v oftentimes_o great_a weight_n in_o one_o letter_n as_z appeareth_z by_o sundry_a disputation_n between_o the_o christian_n and_o the_o arrian_n but_o this_o man_n seek_v so_o narrow_o only_o to_o find_v some_o covert_a for_o his_o error_n s._n hierome_n anselmus_n haimo_n and_o many_o other_o both_o in_o the_o text_n and_o in_o thexposition_n of_o the_o same_o place_n use_v the_o copulative_a not_o withstand_v to_o grant_n m._n hardinge_n his_o disjunctive_a yet_o if_o he_o be_v so_o skilful_a in_o the_o digeste_n as_o in_o other_o place_n of_o his_o book_n he_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v he_o may_v soon_o remember_v that_o the_o very_a discretion_n of_o the_o law_n âath_v determine_v that_o sometime_o disiunctive_n stand_v in_o steed_n of_o copulative_n sometime_o copulative_n in_o steed_n of_o disâunctives_n significatione_n saepe_fw-la ita_fw-la comparatum_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la &_o coniuncta_fw-la pro_fw-la disâunctis_fw-la accipiantur_fw-la &_o disâuncta_fw-la pro_fw-la coniunctis_fw-la but_o if_o m._n hardinge_n have_v so_o good_a eye_n to_o one_o little_a disjunctive_a and_o mean_v upright_o why_o do_v he_o so_o blind_o pass_v by_o so_o many_o copulative_n in_o the_o self_n same_o place_n altogether_o ãâã_d for_o s._n paul_n saithe_v as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n and_o again_o let_v a_o man_n examine_v himself_o and_o so_o eat_v of_o that_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o thât_a cup_n and_o again_o he_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v unwoorthe_o eat_v and_o drink_v his_o own_o damnation_n here_o be_v four_o copulative_n together_o and_o by_o these_o it_o be_v good_a reason_n that_o m._n hardinge_n shall_v expound_v his_o disiunctive_a special_o for_o that_o s._n paul_n cup_n recordinge_v thinstitution_n use_v a_o copulative_a and_o the_o order_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o thexposition_n of_o s._n hierome_n and_o other_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o same_o praxâam_n in_o such_o case_n tertullian_n have_v give_v a_o good_a rule_n oporâet_fw-la secundum_fw-la plura_fw-la intelligi_fw-la pauciora_fw-la say_fw-la proprium_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la omnium_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la nam_fw-la quia_fw-la pauca_fw-la sunt_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o sylua_fw-la inveniri_fw-la possunt_fw-la pauca_fw-la adversus_fw-la
the_o construction_n of_o the_o gloze_v there_o write_v closa_n the_o word_n thereof_o be_v these_o there_o be_v certain_a priest_n that_o consecrate_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o due_a order_n and_o receive_v the_o body_n but_o abstein_v from_o the_o blood_n against_o they_o gelasius_n write_v this_o gheasse_n of_o that_o gloser_n for_o many_o good_a cause_n seem_v unlikely_a for_o first_o it_o can_v be_v show_v by_o any_o story_n neither_o where_o nor_o when_o any_o such_o priest_n be_v that_o so_o abstein_v &_o again_o gelasius_n seem_v to_o write_v of_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v teach_v not_o of_o they_o that_o shall_v teach_v of_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v remove_v from_o the_o sacrament_n not_o of_o the_o priest_n that_o shall_v remove_v they_o of_o the_o sacrilege_n &_o wickedness_n of_o the_o fact_n not_o of_o the_o difference_n of_o any_o person_n but_o the_o gloze_v saithe_n notwithstanding_o these_o priest_n consecrate_a both_o the_o body_n and_o the_o blood_n and_o receive_v the_o body_n and_o abstein_v from_o the_o blood_n here_o will_v i_o âaine_o learn_v of_o d._n cole_n what_o then_o become_v of_o the_o cup_n the_o priest_n drink_v it_o not_o that_o be_v certain_a for_o the_o gloze_v saithe_v so_o again_o the_o people_n drink_v it_o not_o for_o so_o saithe_v the_o gloze_v also_o and_o be_v it_o true_a or_o false_a it_o must_v be_v defend_v then_o must_v it_o needs_o follow_v that_o christ_n blood_n be_v consecrate_v to_o be_v cast_v away_o d._n cole_n may_v have_v foresee_v that_o this_o gloze_v will_v soon_o be_v take_v against_o himself_o now_o let_v we_o see_v of_o this_o very_a self_n gloze_v what_o may_v be_v conclude_v of_o our_o side_n the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n blood_n be_v not_o throw_v away_o the_o priest_n receive_v it_o not_o ergo_fw-la it_o follow_v of_o very_o fine_a force_n it_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o people_n thus_o d._n cole_n seek_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o people_n receive_v not_o in_o both_o kind_n himself_o unawares_o necessary_o proove_v that_o the_o people_n receive_v in_o both_o kind_n wherefore_o m._n hardinge_n conjecture_n carry_v more_o substance_n of_o truth_n for_o the_o very_a story_n and_o conference_n of_o time_n will_v soon_o geve_v the_o advise_a reader_n to_o understande_v that_o gelasius_n write_v this_o decree_n against_o the_o manichee_n thus_o much_o therefore_o have_v m._n harding_n get_v hereby_o communion_n that_o now_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o first_o author_n of_o his_o half_a communion_n be_v a_o sort_n of_o heretic_n they_o hold_v that_o christ_n never_o receive_v flesh_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n neither_o be_v bear_v nor_o suffer_v nor_o die_v nor_o arise_v again_o which_o error_n be_v manifest_o convince_v by_o the_o sacrament_n for_o they_o be_v sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n therefore_o who_o so_o receive_v the_o same_o confess_v thereby_o that_o christ_n of_o the_o virgin_n receive_v both_o body_n and_o blood_n so_o saithe_v s._n chrysostome_n 4._o si_fw-mi mortuus_fw-la christus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la âuius_fw-la symbolum_n &_o signum_fw-la hoc_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la est_fw-la if_o christ_n die_v not_o in_o deed_n tell_v i_o then_o who_o token_n or_o who_o sign_n be_v this_o sacrament_n tertullian_n also_o by_o a_o like_a argument_n take_v of_o the_o sacrament_n reprove_v martion_n that_o hold_v that_o christ_n have_v no_o body_n but_o only_o a_o show_n and_o a_o fantasy_n of_o a_o body_n christus_fw-la acceptum_fw-la panem_fw-la &_o distributum_fw-la discipulis_fw-la corpus_fw-la suum_fw-la illum_fw-la fecit_fw-la dicendo_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la figura_fw-la corporis_fw-la mei_fw-la figura_fw-la autem_fw-la non_fw-la esset_fw-la nisi_fw-la veritatis_fw-la esset_fw-la corpus_fw-la caeterum_fw-la vacua_fw-la res_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la phantasma_n figuram_fw-la capere_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la christ_n have_v receive_v the_o bread_n and_o gevinge_v the_o same_o to_o his_o disciple_n make_v it_o his_o body_n saie_v this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n but_o it_o can_v not_o be_v a_o figure_n onlesse_a there_o be_v a_o body_n of_o a_o truth_n for_o a_o void_a thing_n as_o be_v a_o fantasy_n can_v receive_v no_o figure_n at_o al._n thus_o the_o sacrament_n do_v plain_o testify_v that_o christ_n receive_v not_o a_o fantasy_n or_o show_v of_o a_o body_n but_o a_o very_a body_n in_o deed_n therefore_o the_o manichee_n abstein_v from_o the_o holy_a cup_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o leo_n notwithstanding_o s._n augustine_n in_o one_o place_n 14._o write_n namely_o against_o the_o manichee_n seem_v to_o signify_v the_o contrary_n these_o be_v his_o word_n sacramentum_fw-la panis_n &_o calicis_fw-la ita_fw-la laudatis_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o âo_o nobis_fw-la pares_fw-la esse_fw-la volueritis_fw-la you_o so_o commend_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o of_o the_o cup_n that_o therein_o you_o will_v make_v yourselves_o equal_a with_o us._n neither_o be_v they_o in_o deed_n able_a to_o show_v any_o simple_a cause_n why_o they_o shall_v more_o shun_v the_o one_o portion_n than_o the_o other_o for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o bread_n no_o less_o consounded_a their_o error_n than_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o as_o they_o think_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v no_o body_n but_o only_o a_o fantasy_n so_o they_o likewise_o think_v that_o christ_n blood_n be_v no_o natural_a blood_n but_o only_o a_o fantasy_n but_o if_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v leo_n or_o augustine_n that_o christ_n have_v one_o body_n how_o much_o less_o will_v they_o believe_v m._n hardinge_n that_o christ_n have_v two_o body_n the_o one_o in_o the_o bread_n the_o other_o in_o the_o cup_n and_o each_o whole_o in_o the_o other_o m._n hardinge_n the_o .31_o division_n and_o therefore_o m._n jewel_n do_v we_o great_a wrong_n in_o wrest_v this_o canon_n against_o we_o for_o as_o much_o as_o we_o do_v not_o divide_v this_o divine_a mystery_n but_o believe_v steadfast_o with_o heart_n and_o confess_v open_o with_o mouth_n that_o under_o each_o kind_n the_o very_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o whole_a christ_n himself_o be_v present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n 63_o so_o even_o as_o gelasius_n believe_v upon_o this_o occasion_n in_o the_o party_n of_o italy_n where_o the_o manichee_n utter_v their_o poison_n the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n be_v restore_v and_o command_v to_o be_v use_v again_o whereas_o before_o 64_o no_o of_o some_o the_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v under_o one_o kind_n and_o of_o some_o under_o both_o kind_n kind_a else_o if_o the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n have_v be_v take_v for_o a_o necessary_a institution_n and_o commandment_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o general_o and_o inviolable_o observe_v every_o where_o and_o always_o without_o exception_n what_o need_v gelasius_n to_o make_v such_o a_o ordinance_n of_o receivinge_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n the_o cause_n whereof_o by_o this_o parenthesis_n quoniam_fw-la nescio_fw-la qua_fw-la superstitione_n docentur_fw-la adstringi_fw-la plain_o express_v again_o if_o it_o have_v be_v so_o inviolable_o observe_v of_o all_o until_o that_o time_n than_o the_o manichee_n can_v not_o have_v cover_v and_o cloak_v their_o infâlclitie_n as_o leo_n say_v by_o the_o receivinge_n the_o communion_n with_o other_o catholic_a people_n under_o one_o kind_a for_o while_o the_o catholic_n go_v from_o church_n content_v with_o the_o only_a form_n of_o bread_n it_o be_v uncertain_a whither_o he_o that_o come_v to_o receive_v be_v a_o manichee_n or_o a_o catholic_a but_o after_o that_o for_o discrieinge_v of_o they_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o people_n shall_v not_o forbear_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n any_o more_o the_o good_a catholic_a folk_n so_o receive_v and_o the_o manichee_n by_o their_o refusal_n of_o the_o cup_n bewray_v themselves_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_a use_v before_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o leo_n and_o gelasius_n be_v forbid_v to_o the_o âª_o intent_n thereby_o the_o manichee_n heresy_n may_v the_o better_o be_v espy_v root_v out_o and_o clean_o abolish_v thus_o because_o we_o do_v not_o divide_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n but_o acknowledge_v confess_v and_o teach_v that_o christ_n take_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n very_a flesh_n and_o very_a blood_n in_o deed_n and_o be_v a_o whole_a and_o perfect_a man_n as_o also_o god_n and_o deliver_v the_o same_o whole_a flesh_n to_o death_n for_o our_o redemption_n and_o rise_v again_o in_o the_o same_o for_o our_o justification_n and_o geve_v the_o same_o to_o we_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o it_o in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n to_o life_n everlasting_a that_o decree_n of_o gelasius_n can_v not_o seem_v against_o we_o just_o to_o be_v allege_v much_o less_o may_v he_o seem_v to_o say_v or_o mean_v that_o to_o minister_v the_o communion_n
year_n pasâe_n seeinge_v the_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n either_o pertain_v not_o to_o this_o purpose_n or_o if_o it_o be_v so_o grant_v for_o the_o diversity_n of_o state_n of_o that_o and_o of_o this_o our_o time_n it_o permitâeth_v a_o diversity_n of_o observation_n in_o this_o behalf_n together_o though_o some_o likeness_n and_o resemblance_n yet_o reserve_v seeinge_v great_a profit_n come_v to_o the_o faithful_a people_n have_v it_o so_o as_o they_o understande_v it_o not_o final_o seeinge_v the_o example_n rehearse_v herein_o to_o be_v follow_v be_v of_o small_a authority_n in_o respect_n either_o of_o antiquity_n or_o of_o true_a religion_n as_o the_o bold_a assertion_n of_o m._n jewel_n be_v plain_o disprove_v so_o the_o old_a order_n of_o the_o latin_a service_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n whereof_o england_n be_v a_o province_n be_v not_o rash_o to_o be_v condemn_v special_o whereas_o 91_o latin_v be_v first_o commit_v to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n of_o our_o country_n and_o the_o first_o preacher_n of_o the_o faith_n here_o it_o have_v be_v auctorise_v by_o continuance_n almost_o of_o a_o thousand_o year_n without_o control_n or_o gain_v saieinge_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o wealth_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o procuringe_v of_o help_v from_o heaven_n always_o to_o this_o land_n and_o to_o add_v hereunto_o this_o much_o last_o of_o all_o though_o it_o may_v be_v grant_v that_o it_o be_v good_a the_o service_n be_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n as_o in_o english_a for_o our_o country_n of_o england_n yet_o doubteles_o good_a man_n and_o zealous_a keeper_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n will_v never_o allow_v the_o service_n devise_v in_o king_n edward_n time_n now_o restore_v again_o not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o tongue_n it_o be_v in_o as_o for_o the_o order_n itself_o and_o disposition_n of_o it_o lack_v some_o thing_n necessary_a and_o have_v some_o other_o thing_n 92_o faith_n repugnant_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n here_o m._n hardinge_n it_o appear_v you_o begin_v to_o mislike_v your_o own_o dealing_v that_o after_o so_o many_o word_n and_o so_o great_a a_o countenance_n of_o learning_n you_o shall_v be_v find_v so_o naked_o and_o so_o unsensible_o to_o deceive_v the_o people_n and_o therefore_o have_v no_o manner_n authority_n of_o ancient_a council_n or_o doctor_n to_o allege_v against_o the_o english_a tongue_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n yet_o jest_n in_o the_o end_n have_v say_v so_o much_o you_o shall_v seem_v to_o say_v nothing_o you_o begin_v to_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o order_n of_o our_o service_n and_o without_o any_o manner_n of_o proufe_v you_o say_v there_o be_v many_o thing_n therein_o contain_v contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o so_o contrary_a to_o your_o own_o knowledge_n you_o maintain_v one_o untrueth_n by_o a_o other_o you_o know_v that_o we_o serve_v god_n accord_v to_o his_o holy_a word_n and_o the_o order_n of_o his_o primitive_a church_n apologetico_fw-la for_o as_o tertullian_n saithe_v the_o christian_a people_n do_v in_o his_o time_n coimus_fw-la ad_fw-la divinarum_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la commemorationem_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la praesentium_fw-la temporum_fw-la qualitas_fw-la aut_fw-la praemonere_fw-la cogit_fw-la aut_fw-la recognoscere_fw-la certè_fw-la fidem_fw-la sanctis_fw-la voââbus_fw-la pascimus_fw-la spem_fw-la erigimus_fw-la fiduciam_fw-la figimus_fw-la we_o meet_v together_o to_o hear_v the_o rehearshal_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n if_o the_o state_n of_o the_o present_a time_n do_v force_v we_o either_o to_o forewarn_v any_o thing_n or_o else_o to_o call_v any_o thing_n to_o remembrance_n very_o we_o feed_v our_o faith_n with_o those_o holy_a word_n we_o confirm_v our_o hope_n we_o assure_v our_o trust_n we_o minister_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n in_o pure_a and_o reverend_a sort_n we_o baptise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o son_n &_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n from_o the_o holy_a table_n we_o make_v our_o humble_a confession_n and_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n and_o pray_v all_o together_o with_o one_o heart_n and_o one_o voice_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n and_o special_o we_o pray_v for_o you_o and_o for_o such_o other_o that_o you_o may_v consider_v from_o whence_o you_o be_v fall_v and_o repent_v yourselves_o and_o return_v to_o god_n we_o excommunicate_v open_a offender_n we_o receive_v again_o they_o that_o show_v themselves_o penitent_a we_o instruct_v our_o youth_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n we_o make_v collection_n and_o provide_v charitable_o for_o the_o poor_a of_o all_o these_o thing_n what_o one_o thing_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n 1._o o_o m._n hardinge_n it_o be_v write_v the_o mouth_n that_o lie_v destroy_v the_o soul_n 12._o and_o christ_n saithe_v the_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v never_o be_v forgeven_v neither_o in_o this_o life_n nor_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v now_o good_a christian_a reader_n for_o the_o better_a content_v of_o thy_o mind_n i_o beseech_v thou_o to_o look_v back_o and_o to_o consider_v the_o whole_a substance_n of_o all_o that_o m._n hardinge_n have_v lay_v in_o for_o proufe_v of_o this_o article_n what_o weight_n it_o bear_v and_o how_o well_o it_o serve_v to_o his_o purpose_n he_o have_v entreat_v large_o of_o sing_v in_o the_o quire_n at_o what_o time_n and_o where_o it_o first_o begin_v and_o likewise_o have_v prove_v by_o a_o great_a long_a discourse_n of_o situation_n of_o country_n and_o diversity_n of_o tongue_n that_o neither_o all_o the_o east_n part_n of_o the_o world_n understand_v the_o greek_a nor_o all_o the_o people_n of_o aphrica_n mauritania_n spain_n and_o france_n understand_v the_o latin_a which_o labour_n in_o this_o case_n be_v nothing_o needful_a but_o that_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o east_n part_n have_v their_o service_n in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n and_o that_o all_o the_o people_n of_o aphrica_n mauritania_n spain_n and_o france_n have_v their_o service_n in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n which_o thing_n only_o stand_v in_o question_n and_o therefore_o be_v only_o to_o be_v prove_v he_o have_v hitherto_o utter_o leave_v unproove_v touchinge_v the_o public_a service_n within_o this_o ilelande_n the_o story_n of_o augustine_n of_o rome_n and_o edda_n and_o putta_n and_o other_o poete_n and_o sing_v man_n as_o i_o have_v show_v stand_v he_o in_o small_a steed_n contrary_n to_o his_o own_o knowledge_n he_o say_v that_o the_o fouretéenth_fw-mi chapter_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n can_v necessary_o be_v apply_v to_o this_o purpose_n and_o further_o he_o say_v that_o even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o priest_n evermore_o make_v his_o prayer_n in_o the_o quire_n far_o of_o from_o the_o hear_v of_o the_o people_n that_o the_o ignorant_a people_n understand_v the_o latin_a tongue_n although_o not_o in_o most_o exact_v wise_a or_o perfect_o that_o they_o be_v now_o better_o instruct_v in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n than_o they_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o now_o to_o be_v teach_v by_o gesture_n and_o ceremony_n and_o that_o they_o have_v great_a profit_n by_o hear_v their_o service_n although_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o hear_v again_o he_o say_v that_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a be_v learn_v tongue_n and_o therefore_o all_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n aught_o to_o be_v minister_v in_o one_o of_o they_o that_o all_o the_o psalm_n and_o all_o other_o scripture_n be_v hard_a and_o far_o pass_v the_o capacity_n of_o the_o people_n that_o understand_v of_o the_o matter_n cause_v the_o mind_n to_o wander_v and_o to_o be_v short_a that_o prayer_n in_o the_o common_a tongue_n that_o evermore_o breed_v schism_n and_o division_n in_o the_o church_n he_o have_v open_o falsify_v strabo_n justinian_n origen_n chrysostome_n and_o other_o and_o have_v force_v they_o to_o say_v the_o thing_n they_o never_o mean_v this_o be_v the_o whole_a summarie_n of_o all_o that_o he_o have_v to_o say_v hereof_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o conclude_v that_o within_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n the_o common_a service_n be_v minister_v open_o in_o a_o tongue_n unknowen_a unto_o the_o people_n albeit_o he_o have_v hitherto_o allege_v neither_o scripture_n nor_o council_n nor_o decree_n nor_o doctor_n nor_o example_n or_o practise_v of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o prove_v the_o same_o of_o the_o other_o side_n thom._n it_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v of_o our_o part_n that_o the_o fouretienth_fw-mi chapter_n to_o the_o corinthian_n must_v of_o necessity_n belong_v to_o the_o use_n of_o common_a prayer_n and_o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o service_n be_v every_o
who_o at_o antioch_n be_v in_o argument_n and_o contention_n concern_v live_a after_o moses_n law_n much_o more_o we_o who_o be_v but_o small_a and_o vile_a shall_v run_v unto_o your_o throne_n apostolic_a that_o of_o you_o we_o may_v have_v salve_n for_o the_o sore_n of_o the_o chââches_n there_o follow_v these_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d id_fw-la est_fw-la per_fw-la omne_fw-la enim_fw-la vobis_fw-la convenit_fw-la primas_fw-la tenere_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o in_o all_o thing_n perteininge_v to_o faith_n or_o religion_n so_o he_o mean_v it_o be_v meet_v that_o you_o have_v the_o chief_a doing_n or_o that_o you_o have_v the_o primacy_n for_o your_o high_a seat_n or_o throne_n be_v endue_v with_o many_o prerogative_n and_o privilege_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n here_o may_v i_o say_v 38._o that_o this_o theodorât_n be_v a_o deadly_a enemy_n of_o s._n cyrillus_n and_o a_o nestorian_a heretic_n and_o condenm_v by_o that_o name_n in_o the_o general_n council_n of_o constantinople_n as_o appear_v by_o euagrius_n nicephorus_n and_o other_o uery_o although_o he_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n by_o the_o authority_n and_o favour_n of_o the_o emperor_n martianus_n yet_o the_o byshoppe_n of_o illyricum_n egypte_n and_o palestine_n cry_v out_o against_o he_o 27._o fides_n perit_fw-la istum_fw-la canon_n eijciunt_fw-la mitte_fw-la hunc_fw-la foâas_fw-la magistrum_fw-la nestorij_fw-la nolite_fw-la istum_fw-la dicere_fw-la episcopum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la episcopus_fw-la impugnatorem_fw-la dei_fw-la foras_fw-la mitte_fw-la 1._o haereticum_fw-la foras_fw-la mitte_fw-la judaeum_n foras_fw-la mitte_fw-la the_o faith_n be_v lose_v this_o man_n the_o canon_n throw_v out_o out_o with_o this_o fellow_n out_o with_o nestorius_n schoolmaster_n call_v he_o not_o bishop_n he_o be_v no_o bishop_n out_o with_o he_o that_o fight_v against_o god_n out_o with_o this_o heretic_n out_o with_o this_o jewe._n but_o i_o will_v not_o use_v this_o advantage_n i_o judge_v rather_o that_o this_o theodoretus_n as_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o deep_a learning_n and_o great_a renown_n so_o he_o be_v also_o a_o careful_a and_o godly_a bishop_n as_o for_o the_o nestorian_a heresy_n he_o defy_v it_o in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n and_o open_o pronounce_v 8._o anathema_n nestorio_n accurse_a be_v nestorius_n in_o these_o word_n that_o m._n hardinge_n have_v here_o allege_v he_o say_v nothing_o that_o of_o our_o part_n be_v deny_v certain_o here_o be_v not_o one_o word_n neither_o of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o of_o universal_a bishop_n but_o if_o theodoretus_n think_v s._n paul_n go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n either_o to_o visit_v peter_n as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o m._n hardinge_n seem_v to_o gheasse_v or_o else_o to_o be_v better_o resolve_v of_o his_o doctrine_n as_o stand_v in_o some_o doubt_n whether_o he_o have_v thitherto_o preach_v the_o truth_n or_o no_o then_o do_v he_o quite_o overthrow_v s._n paul_n whole_a meaning_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o s._n paul_n know_v not_o peter_n for_o his_o head_n but_o contrary_a wise_n take_v he_o as_o his_o equal_a 2._o for_o thus_o he_o say_v videbant_fw-la mihi_fw-la concreditum_fw-la esse_fw-la euangelium_fw-la praeputij_fw-la sicut_fw-la petro_fw-la circuncisionis_fw-la they_o see_v that_o i_o be_v put_v in_o trust_n with_o the_o gospel_n over_o the_o heathen_n ãâã_d even_o as_o peter_n be_v over_o the_o jew_n and_o again_o james_n peter_n and_o john_n that_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o pillar_n give_v unto_o i_o and_o bârnabas_n the_o right_a hand_n of_o fellowship_n here_o we_o see_v between_o peter_n and_o paul_n a_o covenante_n of_o equality_n and_o neither_o superiority_n nor_o subjection_n and_o therefore_o s._n ambrose_n say_v 66._o as_o it_o be_v before_o note_v inter_fw-la petrum_fw-la &_o paulum_fw-la quis_fw-la cvi_fw-la praeponatur_fw-la incertum_fw-la est_fw-la between_o peter_n and_o paul_n whether_o ought_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o other_o i_o can_v not_o tell_v neither_o go_v he_o up_o 15._o to_o be_v better_o inform_v of_o the_o truth_n as_o be_v doubtful_a of_o his_o own_o doctrine_n al_n his_o reasoninge_a and_o the_o whole_a drift_n of_o that_o ãâã_d be_v to_o the_o contrary_n 1._o for_o thus_o lie_v his_o word_n i_o never_o ãâã_d with_o fleâshe_n and_o blood_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o any_o man_n neither_o do_v i_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o they_o ãâã_d have_v be_v apostle_n before_o i_o i_o receive_v not_o the_o gospel_n that_o i_o have_v preach_v of_o any_o man_n but_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n if_o any_o preach_v unto_o you_o any_o other_o gospel_n then_o that_o i_o have_v preach_v accursed_a be_v he_o 2._o they_o that_o be_v in_o chief_a regard_n emonge_v the_o apostle_n touchinge_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n add_v nothing_o unto_o i_o i_o withstand_v peter_n even_o in_o the_o face_n and_o speak_v unto_o he_o before_o all_o the_o people_n for_o he_o walk_v not_o upright_o but_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v blame_v hereby_o it_o may_v sufficient_o appear_v that_o s._n paul_n goeinge_v to_o jerusalem_n be_v not_o to_o bring_v from_o peter_n a_o determination_n of_o any_o matter_n of_o truth_n that_o laâ_n in_o question_n as_o it_o be_v here_o suppose_a ãâã_d and_o therefore_o s._n hierome_n say_v ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la ivit_fw-la hierosoly_n man_n ut_fw-la videret_fw-la apostolum_n petrum_fw-la non_fw-la discendi_fw-la study_v qui_fw-la &_o ipse_fw-la eundem_fw-la praedicaâoâs_fw-la habereâ_n authorem_fw-la sed_fw-la honoris_fw-la priori_fw-la apostolo_n deferendi_fw-la paul_n go_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o intent_n to_o see_v peter_n the_o apostle_n not_o to_o learn_v any_o thing_n of_o he_o as_o have_v the_o same_o author_n of_o his_o preachinge_a that_n peter_n have_v âut_v to_o show_v reverence_n unto_o he_o thât_o have_v be_v apostle_n before_o hâm_n and_o again_o 2._o proptereà _fw-la quindecim_fw-la ponit_fw-la dies_fw-la ut_fw-la ostendat_fw-la non_fw-la fuisse_fw-la grande_fw-fr tempus_fw-la quo_fw-la poâuerit_fw-la aliquid_fw-la à _fw-la petro_n discere_fw-la ut_fw-la ad_fw-la illum_fw-la sensum_fw-la a_o quo_fw-la coepit_fw-la cuncta_fw-la referantur_fw-la se_fw-la non_fw-la ab_fw-la homine_fw-la doctum_fw-la esse_fw-la sed_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la therefore_o he_o name_v fifteen_o day_n to_o show_v thât_v he_o have_v no_o long_a time_n that_o he_o may_v learn_v any_o thing_n of_o peter_n to_o the_o intent_n to_o drive_v all_o his_o word_n to_o that_o sense_n wherewith_o he_o begin_v that_o he_o be_v tâught_v not_o by_o man_n but_o by_o god_n likewise_o say_v hugo_n cardinalis_fw-la a_o barbarous_a writer_n 1._o secundum_fw-la literam_fw-la âstruimur_fw-la de_fw-la mutua_fw-la dilectione_n quam_fw-la deberent_fw-la habere_fw-la praedicatores_fw-la &_o doctores_fw-la quia_fw-la paulus_n venit_fw-la videre_fw-la petrum_fw-la quoniam_fw-la bona_fw-la audierat_fw-la de_fw-la eius_fw-la doctrina_fw-la accord_v to_o the_o lâtter_n we_o be_v here_o instruct_v of_o mutual_a love_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v between_o all_o preacher_n and_o doctor_n for_o paul_n go_v to_o visit_v peter_n because_o he_o have_v hear_v good_a of_o his_o doctrine_n but_o what_o can_v be_v so_o plain_a as_o that_o be_v write_v by_o chrysostome_n touchinge_v the_o same_o his_o word_n be_v these_o 2._o paulus_n nihil_fw-la opus_fw-la habebat_fw-la petro_n nec_fw-la eius_fw-la egebat_fw-la voce_fw-la sed_fw-la honoâe_fw-la par_fw-fr erat_fw-la illâ_n nihil_fw-la enim_fw-la hîc_fw-la dicam_fw-la amplius_fw-la pauâe_o have_v no_o need_n of_o peter_n neither_o need_v he_o to_o be_v teach_v at_o his_o mouth_n but_o he_o be_v equal_a to_o he_o in_o honour_n i_o will_v say_v no_o more_o and_o immediate_o after_o sicut_fw-la nunc_fw-la multi_fw-la fratrum_fw-la nostrorum_fw-la ad_fw-la viros_fw-la sanctos_fw-la proficiscunturââodem_fw-la affectu_fw-la tunc_fw-la paulus_n ad_fw-la petrum_fw-la profectus_fw-la est_fw-la like_a as_o now_o a_o day_n many_o of_o our_o brethren_n go_v to_o holy_a man_n so_o then_o with_o like_a affection_n go_v paul_n unto_o peter_n as_o for_o the_o rest_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v a_o estimation_n and_o a_o credit_n and_o a_o prerogative_n before_o other_o it_o be_v not_o deny_v for_o of_o the_o four_o patriarch_n he_o have_v the_o first_o place_n both_o in_o council_n and_o out_o of_o council_n and_o therefore_o the_o great_a authority_n &_o direction_n of_o matter_n in_o all_o assembly_n and_o this_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o have_v the_o first_o or_o high_a room_n and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o dignity_n or_o privilege_v which_o word_n m._n hardinge_n have_v note_v in_o the_o margin_n here_o m._n hardinge_n seem_v to_o reason_n thus_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v a_o privilege_n or_o dignity_n above_o other_o ergo_fw-la he_o be_v a_o universal_a bishop_n this_o argument_n conclude_v a_o genere_fw-la ad_fw-la speciem_fw-la affirmatiuè_fw-fr and_o as_o m._n hardinge_n know_v be_v never_o allow_v in_o any_o school_n likewise_o he_o seem_v to_o say_v paul_n go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o
shall_v walk_v over_o the_o asp_z and_o the_o cockatrice_n then_o he_o be_v content_a that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v be_v call_v procurator_n ecclesiae_fw-la romanae_fw-la the_o proctoure_n or_o steward_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n evidenter_fw-la then_o as_o if_o have_v be_v nabucodonozor_n or_o alexander_n or_o antiochus_n or_o domitian_n he_o claim_v unto_o himself_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o almighty_a god_n and_o say_v further_o that_o be_v god_n he_o may_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o any_o mortal_a man_n inter_fw-la then_o he_o suffer_v man_n to_o say_v dominus_fw-la deus_fw-la noster_fw-la papa_n our_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n julio_n tu_fw-la es_fw-la omne_fw-la &_o super_fw-la omne_fw-la thou_o be_v all_o and_o above_o al._n all_o power_n be_v give_v unto_o thou_o as_o well_o in_o heaven_n as_o in_o earth_n i_o leave_v the_o miserable_a spoil_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o loosinge_v of_o sundry_a great_a country_n and_o nation_n that_o sometime_o be_v christen_v the_o weakeninge_v of_o the_o faith_n the_o encourraginge_v of_o the_o turk_n the_o ignorance_n and_o blindenes_n of_o the_o people_n these_o &_o other_o like_a be_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o pope_n universal_a power_n will_v to_o god_n he_o be_v in_o deed_n that_o he_o will_v so_o fain_o be_v call_v &_o will_v show_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o particular_a church_n to_o be_v christ_n vicar_n &_o the_o 4._o dispenser_n of_o god_n mystery_n then_o shall_v godly_a man_n have_v less_o cause_n to_o complain_v against_o he_o as_o now_o although_o that_o he_o claim_v be_v his_o very_a right_n yet_o by_o his_o own_o judgement_n he_o be_v worthy_a to_o loose_v it_o privilegium_fw-la for_o pope_n gregory_n say_v privilegium_fw-la meretur_fw-la amittere_fw-la qui_fw-la abutitur_fw-la potestate_fw-la he_o that_o abuse_v his_o authority_n be_v worthy_a to_o loose_v his_o privilege_n and_o pope_n syluerius_n say_v decet_fw-la etiam_fw-la quod_fw-la habuit_fw-la amittat_fw-la qui_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la accepit_fw-la usurpat_fw-la he_o that_o usurp_v that_o he_o receive_v not_o let_v he_o loose_v that_o he_o have_v now_o brief_o to_o lay_v abroad_o the_o whole_a content_n of_o this_o article_n first_o m._n hardinge_n have_v witting_o allege_v such_o testimony_n under_o the_o name_n of_o anacletus_fw-la athanasius_n and_o other_o holy_a father_n as_o he_o himself_o know_v undoubted_o to_o be_v forge_v and_o with_o manifest_a absurdity_n and_o contradiction_n do_v betray_v themselves_o and_o have_v no_o manner_n colour_n or_o show_v of_o truth_n he_o have_v make_v his_o claim_n by_o certain_a canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o yet_o he_o know_v that_o neither_o there_o be_v nor_o never_o be_v any_o such_o canon_n to_o be_v find_v he_o have_v dismember_v and_o mangle_a s._n gregory_n word_n and_o contrary_a to_o his_o own_o knowledge_n he_o have_v cut_v they_o of_o in_o the_o midst_n the_o better_a to_o beguile_v his_o reader_n he_o have_v violent_o and_o perforce_o draw_v and_o rackte_n the_o old_a godly_a father_n ireneus_fw-la cyprian_n ambrose_n cyrillus_n augustine_n theodoretus_n hierome_n and_o other_o contrary_a to_o their_o own_o sense_n and_o meaning_n touchinge_v appeal_n to_o rome_n the_o government_n of_o the_o east_n part_n of_o the_o world_n excommunication_n approbation_n of_o order_n allowance_n of_o council_n restitution_n and_o reconciliation_n he_o have_v open_o misreport_v the_o whole_a universal_a order_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o church_n all_o this_o notwithstanding_o he_o have_v as_o yet_o find_v neither_o of_o these_o two_o glorious_a title_n that_o he_o have_v so_o narrow_o seek_v for_o notwithstanding_o great_a pain_n take_v and_o great_a promise_n and_o vaunt_n make_v touchinge_v the_o same_o therefore_o to_o conclude_v i_o must_v subscribe_v and_o rescribe_v even_o as_o before_o that_o albeit_o m._n hardinge_n have_v travail_v painful_o herein_o both_o by_o himself_o and_o also_o with_o conference_n of_o his_o friend_n yet_o can_v he_o hitherto_o find_v neither_o in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o in_o the_o old_a council_n nor_o in_o any_o one_o of_o all_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a father_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n within_o the_o space_n of_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n be_v ever_o entitle_v either_o the_o universal_a bishop_n or_o the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n finis_fw-la the_o fifthe_o article_n of_o real_a presence_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n or_o that_o the_o people_n be_v then_o teach_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v real_o substantial_o corporal_o carnal_o or_o natural_o in_o the_o sacrament_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .1_o division_n 126_o teach_v christen_v people_n have_v ever_o be_v teach_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o unspeakable_a work_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v present_a in_o this_o most_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o that_o very_o and_o in_o deed_n this_o doctrine_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o christ_n âª_o which_o he_o utter_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n express_v by_o the_o evangelist_n aâd_v by_o s._n paul_n as_o they_o be_v at_o supper_n say_v matthew_n jesus_n take_v bread_n and_o bliss_v it_o and_o break_v it_o ãâã_d and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n and_o say_v take_v you_o eat_v you_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o take_v the_o cup_n he_o give_v thanks_n and_o give_v it_o to_o they_o saieinge_v drink_n you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o in_o remission_n of_o sin_n with_o like_a word_n almost_o mark_v 14_o luke_n and_o paul_n do_v describe_v this_o divine_a institution_n neither_o say_v our_o lord_n only_o 22._o this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o least_o some_o shall_v doubt_n how_o his_o word_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v 11._o for_o a_o plain_a declaration_n of_o they_o he_o add_v this_o further_a which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o likewise_o of_o the_o cup_n he_o say_v not_o only_o ãâã_d this_o be_v my_o blood_n but_o also_o as_o it_o be_v to_o put_v it_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o now_o as_o faithful_a people_n do_v believe_v that_o christ_n give_v not_o a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n but_o his_o own_o true_a and_o very_a body_n in_o substance_n and_o likewise_o not_o a_o figure_n of_o his_o blood_n but_o his_o very_a precious_a blood_n itself_o at_o his_o passion_n and_o death_n on_o the_o cross_n for_o our_o redemption_n so_o they_o believe_v also_o that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n admit_v no_o other_o understand_v but_o that_o he_o geve_v unto_o we_o in_o these_o holy_a mystery_n his_o self_n same_o body_n and_o his_o self_n same_o blood_n in_o truth_n of_o substance_n âª_o which_o be_v crucify_v and_o sheadde_a forth_o for_o us._n thus_o to_o the_o humble_a believer_n scripture_n itself_o minister_v sufficient_a argument_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n against_o the_o sacramentary_n who_o hold_v opinion_n that_o it_o be_v there_o but_o in_o a_o figure_n sign_n or_o token_n 127_o doctrine_n only_o the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n i_o know_v not_o well_o whether_o m._n hardinge_n do_v this_o of_o purpose_n or_o else_o it_o be_v his_o manner_n of_o write_n but_o this_o i_o see_v that_o be_v demand_v of_o one_o thing_n he_o always_o turn_v his_o answer_n to_o a_o other_o the_o question_n be_v here_o move_v whether_o christ_n body_n be_v real_o and_o corporal_o in_o the_o sacrament_n his_o answer_n be_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v join_v and_o unite_v real_o and_o corporal_o unto_o we_o and_o herein_o he_o bestow_v his_o whole_a treaty_n and_o answer_v not_o one_o word_n unto_o the_o question_n in_o the_o former_a article_n he_o be_v able_a to_o allege_v some_o forge_a authority_n some_o contrefeite_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n some_o word_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n although_o mistake_v some_o show_n of_o natural_a &_o worldly_a reason_n or_o at_o the_o jest_n wise_a some_o colour_n or_o shift_v of_o word_n but_o in_o this_o matter_n for_o directe_v proufe_v he_o be_v able_a to_o allege_v nothing_o no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o help_v and_o drift_n of_o natural_a reason_n where_o he_o say_v christian_a people_n have_v ever_o be_v thus_o teach_v from_o the_o begin_v it_o be_v great_a marvel_v that_o either_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o teach_v without_o a_o teacher_n or_o they_o teacher_n shall_v thus_o instruct_v they_o without_o word_n or_o such_o word_n shall_v be_v speak_v and_o never_o write_v uery_o m._n hardinge_n by_o his_o silence_n and_o want_v herein_o sécrete_o confess_v that_o theisâ_n word_n real_o carnal_o &c._a &c._a in_o this_o mater_fw-la of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v
never_o use_v of_o any_o ancient_a writer_n for_o if_o they_o be_v either_o he_o or_o his_o félowe_n will_v have_v find_v they_o but_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n and_o to_o put_v the_o matter_n out_o of_o doubt_n side_n he_o add_v which_o be_v give_v for_o yowe_o which_o shall_v be_v sheadde_a for_o yowe_o hereupon_o m._n harding_n found_v his_o carnal_a presence_n notwithstanding_o christ_n himself_o use_v not_o any_o of_o these_o word_n nor_o any_o other_o word_n leadinge_n thereunto_o and_o d._n fisher_n sometime_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n a_o famous_a man_n of_o m._n hardinge_n side_n say_v express_o that_o this_o sense_n can_v in_o any_o wise_a be_v geather_v of_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o christ._n for_o thus_o he_o write_v âª_o hactenus_fw-la matthaeus_n qui_fw-la &_o solus_fw-la testamenti_fw-la novi_fw-la meminit_fw-la neque_fw-la ullum_fw-la hic_fw-la verbum_fw-la positum_fw-la est_fw-la o._n quo_fw-la probetur_fw-la in_fw-la nostra_fw-la missa_fw-la veram_fw-la fieri_fw-la carnis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la christi_fw-la praesentiam_fw-la hitherto_o s._n matthew_n who_o only_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o word_n here_o write_v whereby_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v that_o in_o our_o mass_n be_v make_v the_o very_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o further_o he_o avouch_v it_o thus_o non_fw-la potest_fw-la igitur_fw-la per_fw-la ullam_fw-la scripturam_fw-la probari_fw-la therefore_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o any_o scripture_n here_o we_o see_v great_a variety_n of_o judgement_n in_o m._n hardinge_n own_o side_n and_o that_o in_o matter_n of_o great_a weight_n m._n hardinge_n think_v his_o carnal_a presence_n be_v prove_v sufficient_o by_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n d._n fisher_n contrary_a wise_n say_v it_o can_v be_v prove_v neither_o by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n nor_o by_o any_o other_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v ever_o think_v m._n fisher_n be_v as_o learned_a in_o every_o respect_n as_o m._n hardinge_n and_o albeit_o m._n hardinge_n lie_v such_o hold_n upon_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o if_o they_o be_v so_o plain_a yet_o other_o of_o his_o friend_n by_o their_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a construction_n touchinge_v the_o same_o have_v make_v they_o somewhat_o dark_a and_o doubteful_a and_o can_v yet_o thorough_o agree_v upon_o they_o some_o of_o they_o say_v christ_n natural_a body_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n how_o be_v it_o not_o natural_o some_o other_o say_v eucharist_n it_o be_v there_o both_o natural_o and_o also_o sensible_o gardinerus_n some_o of_o they_o say_v precise_o never_o man_n use_v either_o of_o these_o two_o term_n naturally_n or_o sensible_o in_o this_o case_n of_o christ_n presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o other_o of_o they_o put_v the_o matter_n out_o of_o doubt_n and_o say_v christ_n be_v there_o present_a naturally_n 6._o and_o in_o the_o council_n hold_v in_o rome_n under_o pope_n nicolas_n 2._o it_o be_v determine_v and_o berengarius_fw-la force_v to_o subscribe_v that_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n sensible_o or_o as_o they_o theââ_n gross_o utter_v it_o in_o latin_a sensualiter_fw-la some_o of_o they_o say_v christ_n body_n be_v not_o divide_v or_o break_v in_o the_o sacrament_n 15._o but_o only_o the_o accident_n but_o pope_n nicolas_n with_o his_o whole_a council_n say_v christ_n body_n itself_o be_v touch_v with_o finger_n and_o divide_v and_o break_v and_o rend_v with_o tooth_n and_o not_o only_o the_o accident_n thus_o to_o leave_v other_o more_o contrariety_n it_o be_v plain_a hereby_o that_o the_o best_a learned_a of_o that_o side_n be_v not_o yet_o full_o agree_v upon_o the_o sense_n of_o christ_n word_n notwithstanding_o their_o suitor_n and_o well_o willer_n be_v otherwise_o persuade_v of_o they_o atteri_fw-la and_o do_v m._n hardinge_n believe_v that_o christian_a people_n be_v thorough_o resolve_v herein_o when_o their_o doctor_n and_o teacher_n be_v not_o resolve_v or_o that_o the_o scholar_n be_v better_o instruct_v than_o their_o master_n now_o if_o this_o article_n can_v be_v prove_v neither_o by_o any_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o d._n fisher_n say_v and_o as_o it_o further_o appear_v by_o the_o dissension_n of_o the_o teacher_n nor_o by_o any_o one_o of_o all_o the_o old_a doctor_n &_o father_n as_o m._n hardinge_n graunf_v by_o his_o silence_n then_o may_v godly_a and_o catholic_a christian_a people_n well_o stay_v their_o judgement_n and_o stand_v in_o doubt_n of_o this_o carnal_a and_o fleashe_o presence_n in_o deed_n the_o question_n bitweene_n we_o this_o day_n be_v not_o of_o the_o letter_n or_o syllable_n of_o christ_n word_n for_o they_o be_v know_v and_o confess_v of_o either_o party_n but_o only_o of_o the_o sense_n and_o mean_v of_o his_o word_n 1._o which_o as_o s._n hierome_n say_v be_v the_o very_a pith_n âª_o and_o substance_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o law_n ãâã_d self_n say_v in_o fraudem_fw-la legis_fw-la facit_fw-la qui_fw-la saluis_fw-la verbis_fw-la legis_fw-la sententiam_fw-la eius_fw-la circumuâriââ_n he_o commit_v fraud_n against_o the_o law_n that_o savinge_v the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n overthrow_v the_o meaning_n 4._o and_o s._n augustine_n seem_v herein_o to_o find_v fault_n with_o certain_a in_o his_o time_n his_o word_n be_v these_o cu_z in_o unam_fw-la partâm_fw-la procliviter_n ire_n coâperint_fw-la non_fw-la cespiciunt_fw-la divinae_fw-la authoritatis_fw-la alia_fw-la testimonia_fw-la quibus_fw-la possint_fw-la ab_fw-la illa_fw-la intention_n revocari_fw-la &_o in_o ea_fw-la quae_fw-la ex_fw-la utrisque_fw-la temperate_a est_fw-la veritate_fw-la ac_fw-la moderatione_n consistere_fw-la figure_n when_o they_o once_o begin_v to_o run_v headlong_o of_o one_o side_n they_o never_o consider_v other_o testimony_n of_o divine_a authority_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v withdraw_v from_o their_o purpose_n and_o so_o may_v rest_n in_o that_o truth_n and_o measure_n that_o be_v temper_v and_o tune_v of_o both_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o m._n hardinge_n say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o christ_n word_n that_o his_o body_n be_v in_o such_o gross_a sort_n real_o and_o fleashe_o in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o onlesse_a christ_n mean_v so_o he_o mean_v nothing_o it_o be_v great_a wonder_n that_o none_o of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n no_o not_o one_o can_v ever_o see_v it_o or_o if_o they_o see_v it_o yet_o be_v so_o eloquent_a lack_v word_n and_o be_v never_o able_a to_o express_v it_o but_o he_o say_v it_o be_v no_o bare_a figure_n as_o the_o sacramentary_n hold_v opinion_n and_o therefore_o he_o think_v he_o may_v conclude_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v real_o present_a so_o may_v he_o also_o say_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n be_v no_o bare_a figure_n therefore_o christ_n be_v therein_o real_o present_v certain_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o rock_n in_o the_o wilderness_n write_v thus_o 57_o hinc_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la petra_n erat_fw-la christus_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la dixit_fw-la petra_n significat_fw-la christum_n sed_fw-la tanquam_fw-la hoc_fw-la esset_fw-la quod_fw-la utique_fw-la per_fw-la substantiam_fw-la non_fw-la hoc_fw-la erat_fw-la sed_fw-la per_fw-la significationem_fw-la therefore_o it_o be_v write_v the_o rock_n be_v christ._n for_o s._n paul_n say_v not_o the_o rock_n signify_v christ_n but_o as_o though_o it_o have_v be_v christ_n in_o deed_n where_o as_o it_o be_v not_o christ_n in_o substance_n but_o by_o way_n of_o signification_n or_o by_o a_o figure_n s._n paul_n say_v not_o 10._o the_o rock_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o rock_n be_v christ._n and_o s._n basile_n in_o like_a sort_n saithe_v âª_o christus_fw-la re_fw-la vera_fw-la âetra_fw-la estimmobilis_fw-la &_o inconcussa_fw-la christ_n in_o deed_n be_v the_o sure_a and_o the_o firm_a rock_n yet_o i_o trow_v m._n hardinge_n will_v not_o therefore_o say_v christ_n be_v real_o or_o carnal_o in_o the_o rock_n neither_o can_v i_o think_v m._n hardinge_n be_v such_o a_o deadly_a enemy_n unto_o figure_n as_o he_o will_v now_o seem_v to_o be_v for_o he_o himself_o in_o these_o few_o word_n of_o christ_n touchinge_v the_o institution_n of_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v show_v here_o after_o more_o at_o large_a be_v fain_o to_o seek_v help_v of_o sixteen_o or_o more_o sundry_a figure_n and_o the_o same_o so_o strange_a so_o gross_a and_o so_o insensible_a that_o neither_o s._n augustine_n nor_o s._n hierome_n nor_o any_o other_o old_a divine_a ever_o know_v they_o nor_o any_o good_a grammarian_n will_v allow_v they_o so_o many_o and_o such_o figure_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o divise_v and_o use_v to_o maintain_v the_o falsehood_n but_o for_o we_o in_o defence_n of_o the_o truth_n it_o may_v not_o be_v lawful_a to_o use_v one_o uery_o the_o old_a catholic_a father_n be_v
spiritualis_fw-la quo_fw-la uncti_fw-la sumus_fw-la er_fw-mi hoc_fw-la est_fw-la bibere_fw-la jesu_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la participem_fw-la esse_fw-la incorruptionis_fw-la domini_fw-la there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o christ_n blood_n the_o one_o fleash_o where_o with_o we_o be_v redeem_v the_o other_o spiritual_a wherewith_o we_o be_v anoint_v and_o this_o be_v the_o drink_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v partaker_n of_o his_o immortality_n 8._o in_o like_a sort_n s._n augustine_n saithe_v judas_n christum_n carnalem_fw-la tradidit_fw-la tu_fw-la spiritualem_fw-la furens_fw-la euangelium_fw-la sanctum_fw-la flammis_fw-la sacrilegis_fw-la tradidisti_fw-la judas_n betray_v christ_n carnal_a but_o thou_o have_v betray_v christ_n spiritual_a for_o in_o thy_o fury_n thou_o betray_v the_o holy_a gospel_n to_o be_v burn_v in_o wicked_a fiere_fw-la here_o s._n augustine_n call_v christ_n spiritual_a for_o that_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o betraie_v be_v spiritual_a likewise_o that_o ancient_a father_n clemens_n call_v christ_n blood_n spiritual_a not_o in_o respect_n of_o difference_n in_o itself_o but_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o spiritual_a receive_n and_o i_o think_v m._n harding_n will_v not_o deny_v but_o these_o word_n of_o clemens_n &_o augustine_n agree_v so_o near_o both_o in_o sense_n &_o phrase_n with_o the_o word_n of_o hierome_n may_v stand_v for_o sufficient_a exposition_n to_o the_o same_o certain_o as_o christ_n blood_n be_v not_o real_o or_o bloody_o present_v to_o anoint_v we_o so_o be_v it_o not_o real_o or_o bloody_o present_v to_o nourish_v us._n for_o this_o nourishinge_v and_o this_o annointinge_v be_v both_o spiritual_a and_o therefore_o the_o old_a learned_a father_n athanasius_n write_v thus_o sanctum_fw-la quomodò_fw-la unum_fw-la unius_fw-la hominis_fw-la corpus_fw-la vniverso_fw-la mundo_fw-la sufficeâet_fw-la quod_fw-la tanquam_fw-la in_o illorum_fw-la cogitationibus_fw-la versatum_fw-la christus_fw-la commemorate_fw-la a_o quibus_fw-la cogitationibus_fw-la ut_fw-la eos_fw-la avocaret_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la paulò_fw-la antè_fw-la svi_fw-la descensus_fw-la è_fw-la coelis_fw-la ita_fw-la nunc_fw-la reditus_fw-la svi_fw-la in_o coelum_fw-la mentionem_fw-la facit_fw-la the_o capernaite_n demand_v how_o one_o body_n of_o one_o man_n may_v suffice_v the_o whole_a world_n which_o thing_n as_o be_v in_o their_o cogitation_n christ_n call_v to_o remembrance_n to_o remove_v they_o from_o which_o cogitation_n of_o gross_a and_o fleashe_o eatinge_v as_o he_o before_o make_v mention_n of_o his_o come_n down_o from_o heaven_n so_o now_o likewise_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o his_o repair_n again_o into_o heaven_n to_o conclude_v once_o again_o gentle_a reader_n i_o must_v do_v thou_o to_o remember_v that_o s._n hierome_n in_o this_o whole_a place_n never_o speak_v one_o word_n neither_o of_o any_o real_a or_o fleashe_o presence_n nor_o of_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o notwithstanding_o m._n hardinge_n as_o though_o s._n hierome_n have_v plain_o and_o undoubted_o speak_v of_o both_o hereof_o geather_v his_o reason_n thus_o s._n hierome_n saithe_v we_o eat_v not_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v crucify_a ergo_fw-la christ_n flesh_n be_v real_o and_o fleash_o in_o the_o sacrament_n this_o argument_n be_v evident_a to_o the_o eye_n and_o need_v no_o answer_n his_o reason_n will_v better_o have_v frame_v thus_o s._n hierome_n saithe_v we_o can_v not_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v crucify_a ergo_fw-la we_o can_v real_o and_o carnal_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n whereof_o it_o must_v necessary_o follow_v even_o by_o the_o authority_n that_o m._n hardinge_n have_v here_o allege_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o real_o and_o fleash_o in_o the_o sacrament_n such_o relief_n have_v m._n hardinge_n find_v in_o these_o word_n of_o s._n hierome_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .8_o division_n now_o whereas_o m._n jewel_n deni_v that_o christian_a people_n be_v of_o old_a time_n teach_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v real_o substantial_o corporal_o carnal_o or_o natural_o in_o the_o sacrament_n i_o do_v plain_o affirm_v the_o contrary_n yet_o i_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o learned_a father_n 135_o so_o which_o have_v so_o teach_v will_v not_o thereby_o seem_v to_o make_v it_o here_o outward_o sensible_a or_o perceptible_a for_o they_o confess_v all_o with_o s._n chrysostome_n antioch_n that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v here_o give_v we_o be_v not_o sensible_a but_o that_o under_o visible_a sign_n invisible_a thing_n be_v deliver_v unto_o us._n but_o they_o think_v good_a afore_o to_o use_v the_o aforesaid_a term_n to_o put_v away_o all_o doubt_n of_o the_o be_v of_o his_o very_a body_n in_o these_o holy_a mystery_n and_o to_o exclude_v the_o only_a imagination_n fantasy_n figure_n sign_n token_n virtue_n or_o signification_n thereof_o for_o in_o such_o wise_a the_o sacramentary_n have_v utter_v their_o doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n as_o they_o may_v seem_v by_o their_o manner_n of_o speak_v and_o write_n here_o to_o represent_v our_o lord_n body_n only_o in_o deed_n be_v absent_a as_o king_n oftentimes_o be_v represent_v in_o a_o tragedy_n or_o mean_a person_n in_o a_o comedy_n very_o the_o manner_n and_o way_n by_o which_o it_o be_v here_o present_a and_o give_v to_o we_o and_o receive_v of_o we_o be_v secret_a not_o human_a ne_o natural_a true_a for_o all_o that_o and_o we_o do_v not_o attain_v it_o by_o sense_n reason_n or_o nature_n but_o by_o faith_n for_o which_o cause_n we_o do_v not_o over_o base_o consider_v and_o attend_v the_o visible_a element_n but_o as_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a faith_n liftinge_v up_o our_o mind_n and_o spirit_n ãâã_d we_o behold_v by_o faith_n on_o that_o holy_a table_n put_v and_o lay_v so_o for_o the_o better_a signification_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n their_o term_n sound_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o here_o say_v they_o we_o receive_v his_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v to_o say_v very_o and_o in_o deed_n which_o be_v no_o otherwise_o nor_o less_o than_o this_o term_n really_n import_v the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n here_o m._n harding_n once_o again_o as_o before_o will_v teach_v we_o what_o the_o old_a father_n mean_v by_o those_o word_n that_o they_o never_o utter_v i_o trow_v he_o have_v some_o privy_a divination_n that_o thus_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o know_v what_o man_n mean_v before_o they_o speak_v cicero_n 2._o say_v peritum_fw-la esse_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la eum_fw-la qui_fw-la silentium_fw-la quid_fw-la sit_fw-la intelligat_fw-la it_o must_v needs_o be_v some_o cunning_a fellow_n that_o understand_v what_o silence_n mean_v and_o know_v what_o they_o speak_v that_o speak_v nothing_o he_o say_v the_o father_n thought_n good_a to_o use_v the_o aforesaid_a term_n to_o put_v away_o all_o doubt_n of_o the_o be_v of_o christ_n very_a body_n in_o these_o holy_a mystery_n uery_o this_o be_v a_o marvellous_a boldness_n so_o often_o and_o with_o such_o confidence_n and_o countenance_n to_o say_v the_o old_a father_n use_v these_o term_n and_o yet_o not_o once_o to_o show_v any_o one_o of_o they_o all_o that_o ever_o use_v they_o it_o may_v be_v think_v that_o he_o have_v either_o to_o great_a affiance_n in_o himself_o or_o to_o little_a regard_n unto_o his_o reader_n as_o for_o this_o vain_a muster_n of_o the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n hilary_n gregory_n nyssene_n and_o cyril_n as_o it_o shall_v appear_v by_o the_o view_n it_o healp_v he_o nothing_o the_o sacramentary_n say_v m._n hardinge_n utter_v their_o doctrine_n by_o these_o term_n figure_n sign_n token_n signification_n and_o virtue_n i_o may_v not_o answer_v this_o discourtesy_n of_o talk_n with_o like_a discourtesy_n only_o i_o will_v say_v of_o these_o man_n 36._o as_o s._n augustine_n sometime_o say_v of_o the_o arian_n cum_fw-la se_fw-la tanta_fw-la voragine_fw-la impietatis_fw-la immergant_fw-la nos_fw-la tanquam_fw-la opprobrio_fw-la novi_fw-la nominis_fw-la homousianos_fw-la vocant_fw-la quia_fw-la contra_fw-la illorum_fw-la errorem_fw-la homoousion_n defendimus_fw-la where_o as_o they_o have_v drown_v themselves_o in_o such_o a_o dungeon_n of_o wickedness_n now_o they_o call_v we_o homousians_n to_o reproach_n we_o with_o a_o new_a name_n because_o we_o defend_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n against_o their_o error_n but_o if_o they_o be_v all_o sacramentary_n that_o use_v these_o term_n then_o must_v s._n augustine_n s._n hierome_n s._n chrysostome_n s._n ambrose_n and_o all_o other_o the_o holy_a father_n that_o use_v the_o same_o needs_o be_v condemn_v for_o sacramentary_n but_o if_o they_o be_v sacramentary_n that_o shameful_o abuse_v and_o corrupt_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n then_o may_v m._n hardinge_n and_o his_o friend_n right_o be_v call_v sacramentary_n m._n harding_n add_v chrysostome_n say_v in_o visible_a sign_n thing_n invisible_a be_v deliver_v ergo_fw-la the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o and_o fleashe_o in_o the_o sacrament_n first_o if_o m._n
hardinge_n have_v well_o consider_v that_o whole_a homily_n happy_o he_o will_v have_v charge_v chrysostome_n himself_o with_o his_o sacramentarie_a quarrel_n as_o now_o he_o doothe_v other_o for_o 83._o touchinge_v the_o sacrament_n chrysostome_n even_o there_o write_v thus_o quando_fw-la dicunt_fw-la unde_fw-la patet_fw-la christum_n fuisse_fw-la immolatum_fw-la haec_fw-la afferentes_fw-la mysteria_fw-la ora_fw-la ipsorum_fw-la consuimus_fw-la si_fw-mi enim_fw-la mortuus_fw-la jesus_n non_fw-la est_fw-la cvius_fw-la symbolum_n ac_fw-la signum_fw-la hoc_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la est_fw-la when_o they_o say_v how_o may_v we_o know_v that_o christ_n be_v offer_v bring_v forth_o these_o mystery_n we_o stop_v their_o mouth_n for_o if_o christ_n die_v not_o who_o sign_n and_o token_n be_v this_o sacrifice_n but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o matter_n o_o how_o light_a occasion_n these_o man_n take_v to_o deceive_v the_o simple_a m._n hardinge_n know_v that_o chrysostome_n speak_v not_o these_o word_n only_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o also_o general_o of_o all_o other_o mystery_n for_o he_o add_v immediate_o sic_fw-la &_o in_fw-la baptismo_fw-la per_fw-la aquam_fw-la quae_fw-la res_fw-la sensibilis_fw-la est_fw-la donum_fw-la illud_fw-la conceditur_fw-la quod_fw-la autem_fw-la in_o ea_fw-la conficitur_fw-la regeneratio_fw-la scilicet_fw-la &_o renovatio_fw-la intelligibile_fw-la quiddam_fw-la est_fw-la even_o so_o in_o baptism_n the_o gift_n be_v grant_v by_o water_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n sensible_n but_o the_o regeneration_n and_o renovation_n that_o therein_o be_v wrought_v be_v a_o thing_n spiritual_n wherefore_o if_o m._n hardinge_n upon_o occasion_n of_o these_o word_n will_v force_v his_o real_a and_o fleashe_o presence_n in_o the_o one_o sacrament_n he_o must_v likewise_o force_v the_o same_o in_o the_o other_o and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o these_o two_o sacrament_n be_v both_o of_o force_n like_o these_o man_n to_o avance_v their_o fantasy_n in_o the_o one_o by_o comparison_n so_o much_o abase_v the_o other_o &_o special_o for_o yâ_z better_o open_n of_o chrysostom_n mind_n i_o think_v it_o good_a brief_o &_o by_o the_o way_n ãâã_d somewhat_o to_o touch_v what_o the_o old_a catholic_a father_n have_v write_v of_o god_n invisible_a work_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n dionysius_n 1._o general_o of_o all_o mystery_n write_v thus_o angeli_fw-la deum_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o angel_n be_v creature_n spiritual_a so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o behold_v god_n and_o his_o godly_a power_n but_o we_o be_v leadde_a as_o we_o may_v 7._o by_o sensible_a outward_a token_n which_o he_o call_v image_n unto_o the_o contemplation_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n the_o father_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a say_v thus_o baptism_n must_v be_v consider_v not_o with_o our_o bodily_a eye_n but_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o mind_n thou_o see_v the_o water_n think_v thou_o of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n video_fw-la that_o in_o the_o water_n be_v hide_v think_v thou_o that_o the_o water_n be_v full_a of_o heavenly_a fire_n and_o of_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n chrysostome_n speak_v likewise_o of_o baptism_n say_v thus_o ego_fw-la non_fw-la aspectu_fw-la iudico_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la videntur_fw-la sed_fw-la mentis_fw-la oculis_fw-la etc._n etc._n baptismate_fw-la the_o thing_n that_o i_o see_v i_o judge_v not_o by_o sight_n but_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o my_o mind_n the_o heathen_a when_o he_o hear_v the_o water_n of_o baptism_n take_v it_o only_o for_o plain_a water_n but_o i_o see_v not_o simple_o or_o bare_o that_o i_o see_v i_o see_v the_o clensinge_v of_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n so_o likewise_o say_v nazianzenus_n ãâã_d mysterium_fw-la baptismi_fw-la maius_fw-la est_fw-la quà m_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la videntar_fw-la the_o mystery_n of_o baptism_n be_v great_a than_o it_o appear_v to_o the_o eye_n so_o s._n ambrose_n aliud_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la visibiliter_fw-la agitur_fw-la aliud_fw-la quod_fw-la inuisibiliter_fw-la celebratur_fw-la in_o baptism_n there_o be_v one_o thing_n do_v visible_o to_o the_o eye_n a_o other_o thing_n be_v wrought_v invisible_o to_o the_o mind_n again_o he_o say_v 11._o ne_o solis_fw-la corporis_fw-la tui_fw-la oculis_fw-la credas_fw-la magis_fw-la videtur_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la videtur_fw-la etc._n etc._n believe_v not_o only_o thy_o bodily_a eye_n in_o this_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o see_v be_v better_a see_v the_o thing_n that_o thou_o see_v be_v corruptible_a the_o thing_n that_o thou_o see_v not_o be_v for_o ever_o 3._o to_o be_v short_a in_o consideration_n of_o these_o invisible_a effect_n tertullian_n say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v down_o and_o hallow_v the_o water_n s._n basile_n say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v there_o set_v open_a chrysostome_n say_v god_n himself_o in_o baptism_n baptismo_fw-la by_o his_o invisible_a power_n hold_v thy_o head_n s._n ambrose_n say_v the_o water_n have_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n in_o it_o be_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o trinity_n s._n bernarde_n say_v lavemur_fw-la in_o sanguine_a eius_fw-la let_v we_o be_v wassh_v in_o his_o blood_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o thus_o many_o ancient_a father_n it_o be_v plain_a 51._o that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n by_o the_o sensible_a sign_n of_o water_n the_o invisible_a grace_n of_o god_n be_v give_v unto_o us._n 5._o wherefore_o as_o m._n hardinge_n by_o force_n of_o chrysostom_n word_n proove_v his_o fleash_o presence_n in_o the_o one_o sacrament_n so_o may_v he_o by_o the_o force_n of_o the_o same_o word_n as_o well_o prove_v 3._o that_o the_o power_n of_o god_n the_o heavenly_a fire_n the_o grace_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o and_o fleashe_o present_v in_o the_o other_o all_o this_o notwithstanding_o he_o hoap_v to_o find_v some_o help_v in_o two_o word_n utter_v as_o he_o saithe_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d one_o of_o which_o word_n table_n either_o of_o forgeatfulnes_n or_o of_o purpose_n be_v have_v divise_v &_o set_v to_o of_o himself_o for_o as_o this_o whole_a greek_a authority_n allege_v here_o by_o m._n harding_n be_v never_o find_v in_o the_o old_a allow_v nicene_n council_n but_o only_o have_v be_v seek_v out_o &_o publish_v of_o late_a year_n even_o so_o this_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v never_o find_v in_o the_o greek_a neither_o as_o it_o be_v common_o set_v abroad_o 1._o nor_o as_o it_o be_v allege_v by_o d._n cuthbert_n tonstal_n but_o let_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o m._n hardinge_n to_o use_v somâ_n corruption_n and_o to_o do_v in_o this_o place_n as_o he_o common_o do_v in_o other_o the_o better_a to_o furnish_v out_o the_o matter_n yet_o must_v this_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o signify_v to_o be_v set_a or_o place_v âª_o needs_o sound_v a_o real_a presence_n 3_o or_o when_o s._n paul_n saithe_v christus_fw-la habitat_fw-la in_o cordibus_fw-la nostris_fw-la per_fw-la fidem_fw-la chrâste_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n must_v he_o needs_o mean_a that_o christ_n be_v real_o and_o fleashe_o place_v within_o our_o heart_n uery_o s._n hierome_n write_n unto_o marcelia_n of_o the_o holy_a grave_n wherein_o christ_n body_n sometime_o be_v lay_v have_v these_o word_n marcellam_fw-la quoties_fw-la ingredimur_fw-la in_o sepulchrum_n domini_fw-la toties_fw-la iacere_fw-la in_o sindone_fw-la cernimus_fw-la saluatorem_fw-la as_o often_o as_o we_o enter_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o our_o lord_n so_o often_o we_o see_v our_o saviour_n lieinge_v in_o his_o shroud_n ãâã_d and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n it_o be_v write_v thus_o in_o qua_fw-la scriptura_fw-la dvae_fw-la naturae_fw-la iacent_fw-la in_o what_o scripture_n âye_z these_o two_o nature_n of_o christ_n here_o be_v the_o same_o self_n word_n that_o m._n hardinge_n have_v add_v of_o his_o own_o to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a yet_o i_o think_v he_o will_v not_o therefore_o say_v that_o either_o the_o two_o nature_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n lie_v still_o shrowdid_a fleash_o &_o real_o in_o the_o grave_n again_o this_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o signify_v to_o be_v lay_v or_o place_v in_o the_o natural_a signification_n require_v both_o situation_n of_o place_n &_o also_o a_o bodily_a description_n and_o order_n of_o part_n but_o m._n hardinge_n himself_o in_o the_o next_o article_n folowinge_v say_v 1._o christ_n body_n be_v not_o here_o by_o local_a presence_n either_o by_o fillinge_v or_o by_o changeinge_v of_o place_n therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o lay_v on_o the_o table_n by_o any_o natural_a or_o fleash_o presence_n the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a only_o withdraw_v we_o from_o the_o natural_a &_o visible_a element_n of_o the_o bread_n âª_o and_o the_o wine_n and_o require_v our_o
meo_fw-la est_fw-la &_o meum_fw-la est_fw-la paruulus_fw-la enim_fw-la natus_fw-la est_fw-la nobis_fw-la &_o filius_fw-la datus_fw-la est_fw-la nobis_fw-la the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v of_o my_o body_n and_o be_v now_o become_v i_o for_o a_o babe_n be_v bear_v unto_o we_o and_o a_o son_n be_v give_v unto_o us._n so_o say_v s._n basile_n participes_fw-la facti_fw-la sumus_fw-la verbi_fw-la &_o sapientiae_fw-la per_fw-la incarnationem_fw-la &_o sensibilem_fw-la vitam_fw-la carnem_fw-la enim_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la appellavit_fw-la omnem_fw-la illam_fw-la mysticam_fw-la conuersationem_fw-la ãâã_d we_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o word_n and_o of_o the_o wisdom_n which_o be_v christ_n by_o his_o incarnation_n and_o by_o his_o sensible_a life_n for_o flesh_n and_o blood_n he_o call_v all_o his_o mystical_a conversation_n ei_fw-la so_o say_v gregorius_n nyssenus_n corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la est_fw-la omnis_fw-la humana_fw-la natura_fw-la cvi_fw-la admixtus_fw-la est_fw-la his_o body_n be_v all_o mankind_n whereunto_o he_o be_v mingle_v and_o thus_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o blissed_a virgin_n become_v flesh_n of_o our_o flesh_n &_o bone_n of_o our_o bone_n and_o in_o that_o sense_n s._n john_n say_v verbum_fw-la caro_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o habitavit_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o dwell_v in_o us._n and_o therefore_o christ_n call_v himself_o the_o uine_n and_o we_o the_o branch_n s._n paul_n call_v christ_n the_o head_n and_o we_o the_o body_n which_o be_v name_n of_o most_o near_o and_o natural_a conjunction_n 5._o touchinge_v faith_n â_o s._n paul_n say_v christus_fw-la habitat_fw-la in_o cordibus_fw-la nostris_fw-la per_fw-la fidem_fw-la christ_n by_o faith_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n 15._o and_o s._n peter_n say_v hereby_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n 4._o so_o say_v ignatius_n by_o his_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n that_o be_v by_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o same_o we_o be_v make_v the_o member_n of_o his_o body_n 2._o and_o notwithstanding_o by_o these_o mean_v christ_n be_v in_o we_o 3._o and_o we_o in_o he_o yet_o for_o as_o much_o as_o 1_o both_o our_o life_n and_o faith_n be_v unperfite_a as_o we_o daily_o desire_v god_n to_o amend_v our_o life_n trallian_n and_o to_o augment_v our_o faith_n even_o so_o we_o daily_o pray_v that_o this_o conjunction_n bytwéene_v christ_n and_o we_o may_v be_v increase_v that_o christ_n may_v come_v near_o 4._o and_o near_o into_o we_o and_o that_o we_o may_v grow_v into_o a_o perfect_a man_n in_o he_o and_o to_o this_o end_n god_n have_v special_o appoint_v we_o his_o holy_a sacrament_n 6._o and_o therefore_o s._n paul_n saithe_v 3_o concern_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n they_o that_o be_v baptise_a be_v plant_v into_o christ_n 12._o they_o have_v put_v christ_n upon_o they_o by_o one_o spirit_n they_o be_v baptise_a into_o one_o body_n dist._n s._n augustine_n saithe_v ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la baptismus_fw-la valet_fw-la ut_fw-la baptizati_fw-la christo_fw-la incorporentur_fw-la hoc_fw-la this_o be_v the_o use_n of_o baptism_n that_o they_o that_o be_v baptise_a may_v be_v incorporate_a into_o christ_n ecclesiast_fw-la which_o word_n incorporari_fw-la he_o use_v also_o in_o sundry_a other_o place_n speak_v of_o baptism_n 1._o in_o this_o respect_n dionysius_n saithe_v baptizati_fw-la transimus_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la be_v baptise_a we_o be_v turn_v into_o god_n and_o pachymeres_n saithe_v we_o be_v graft_n into_o christ_n and_o make_v one_o nature_n with_o he_o by_o holy_a baptism_n 4._o thus_o much_o may_v suffice_v to_o descry_v m._n hardinge_n slender_a argument_n ãâã_d for_o notwithstanding_o by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n christ_n be_v natural_o in_o we_o yet_o may_v not_o he_o therefore_o conclude_v that_o christ_n be_v natural_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n bonaventura_n saithe_v well_o non_fw-la est_fw-la aliquo_fw-la modo_fw-la dicendum_fw-la quod_fw-la gratia_n continetur_fw-la in_o sacramentis_fw-la essentialiter_fw-la tanquam_fw-la aqua_fw-la in_o vase_n hoc_fw-la enim_fw-la dicere_fw-la est_fw-la erroneum_fw-la say_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la continere_fw-la gratiam_fw-la quia_fw-la eam_fw-la significant_a 3._o we_o may_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a say_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o water_n in_o a_o vessel_n for_o so_o to_o say_v it_o be_v a_o error_n but_o tâey_n be_v say_v to_o contain_v god_n grace_n because_o they_o signify_v god_n grace_n but_o chrysostome_n saithe_v christ_n mingle_v his_o body_n with_o our_o body_n us._n and_o drive_v we_o as_o it_o be_v into_o one_o lump_n of_o dough_n with_o himself_o this_o place_n will_v have_v stand_v m._n hardinge_n in_o better_a steed_n if_o chrysostome_n have_v say_v christ_n mingle_v his_o body_n with_o the_o sacrament_n and_o drive_v himself_o and_o it_o into_o one_o lump_n for_o this_o be_v it_o that_o shall_v be_v prove_v neither_o will_n m._n hardinge_n say_v that_o either_o christ_n mingle_v himself_o with_o we_o or_o we_o be_v make_v one_o lump_n of_o dowgh_n with_o he_o simple_o and_o accord_v to_o the_o letter_n and_o without_o figure_n whereof_o he_o see_v it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o much_o less_o be_v christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n accord_v to_o that_o he_o will_v have_v the_o letter_n to_o sound_v plain_o simple_o or_o as_o he_o saithe_v real_o and_o fleash_o and_o without_o figure_n it_o be_v a_o vehement_a and_o a_o hot_a kind_n of_o speech_n such_o as_o chrysostome_n be_v most_o delit_v with_o far_o pass_v the_o common_a sense_n and_o course_n of_o truth_n and_o therefore_o he_o himself_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o correct_v &_o to_o qualâfie_v the_o rigour_n of_o the_o same_o by_o these_o word_n ut_fw-la ita_fw-la dicam_fw-la which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v or_z if_o i_o may_v be_v bold_a so_o to_o say_v 2._o in_o such_o phrase_n of_o talk_n anacletus_fw-la saithe_n in_o oleo_fw-la virtus_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la invisibilis_fw-la permista_fw-la est_fw-la the_o invisible_a power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v mingle_v with_o the_o oil_n 1._o and_o alexander_n saithe_v in_o sacramentorum_fw-la oblationibus_fw-la passio_fw-la domini_fw-la miscenda_fw-la est_fw-la the_o passion_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v mingle_v with_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o saithe_v gregorius_n nyssenus_n of_o s._n steven_n gratia_n sancti_fw-la spiritus_fw-la permixtus_fw-la &_o contemperatus_fw-la per_fw-la illum_fw-la sublatus_fw-la stephano_n &_o evectus_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la contemplationem_fw-la dei_fw-la s._n steven_n be_v mingle_v and_o temper_a with_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v by_o he_o avance_v and_o take_v up_o to_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n these_o and_o other_o such_o like_a saieinge_n of_o holy_a father_n may_v not_o be_v hardly_o press_v according_a to_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o letter_n but_o rather_o must_v be_v gentle_o expound_v and_o qualify_v accord_v to_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o writer_n chrysostom_n purpose_n be_v by_o this_o word_n massa_n which_o in_o this_o place_n signify_v a_o lump_n of_o dowgh_n to_o make_v resemblance_n unto_o these_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n 10._o we_o be_v one_o loaf_n and_o one_o body_n and_o by_o such_o majesty_n of_o speech_n the_o more_o to_o quicken_v and_o lift_v up_o our_o spirit_n and_o to_o cause_v we_o thereby_o the_o better_a to_o consider_v that_o wonderful_a conjunction_n and_o knittinge_n that_o be_v bitweene_n christ_n and_o we_o whereby_o either_o be_v in_o other_o he_o in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o he_o and_o that_o even_o in_o one_o person_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o be_v neither_o in_o the_o angel_n nor_o in_o the_o archangelle_n nor_o in_o any_o other_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o s._n paul_n saithe_v the_o angel_n he_o take_v not_o 2._o but_o he_o take_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n but_o this_o wonderful_a conjunction_n and_o as_o chrysostome_n call_v it_o this_o mixture_n be_v wrought_v not_o only_o in_o the_o holy_a mystery_n but_o also_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o in_o that_o sense_n leo_n saithe_v susceptus_fw-la à _fw-la christo_fw-la 14._o christumque_fw-la suscipiens_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la idem_fw-la post_fw-la lavacrum_fw-la qui_fw-la ante_fw-la baptismun_n fuit_fw-la say_fw-la corpus_fw-la regenerati_fw-la fit_a caro_fw-la crucifixi_fw-la passione_n a_o man_n receive_v of_o christ_n and_o receivinge_v christ_n in_o baptism_n be_v not_o the_o same_o after_o baptism_n that_o he_o be_v before_o but_o the_o body_n of_o he_o that_o be_v regenerate_v be_v make_v the_o flesh_n of_o he_o that_o be_v crucify_a 21._o likewise_o s._n augustine_n saithe_v ergo_fw-la gratulemur_fw-la &_o agamus_fw-la gratias_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la nos_fw-it christianos_n factos_fw-la esse_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la christum_n intelligitis_fw-la fratres_n gratian_n dei_fw-la super_fw-la nos_fw-la capitis_fw-la admiramini_fw-la gaudete_fw-la christus_fw-la facti_fw-la sumus_fw-la si_fw-mi enim_fw-la ille_fw-la caput_fw-la est_fw-la &_o nos_fw-la membra_fw-la totus_fw-la ille_fw-la homo_fw-la &_o nos_fw-la let_v we_o rejoice_v
therefore_o real_o present_a in_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n so_o weak_o these_o proof_n hang_fw-mi together_o but_o chrysostom_n word_n be_v very_o vehement_a that_o christ_n be_v present_a at_o the_o holy_a ministration_n that_o every_o man_n both_o touch_v he_o with_o his_o finger_n and_o also_o see_v he_o with_o his_o eye_n and_o that_o clear_o and_o open_o without_o guile_n or_o erroure_n i_o grant_v these_o word_n be_v very_o vehement_a and_o much_o exceed_v the_o common_a sense_n but_o here_o will_v i_o learn_v of_o m._n hardinge_n whether_o he_o will_v take_v these_o word_n plain_o and_o simple_o as_o they_o lie_v or_o else_o will_v rather_o qualify_v they_o with_o a_o courteous_a and_o gentle_a interpretation_n if_o he_o follow_v the_o rigoure_n of_o the_o word_n then_o appear_v there_o a_o manifest_a contradiction_n and_o chrysostome_n in_o utteringe_v one_o sentence_n be_v find_v clean_o contrary_a to_o himself_o for_o first_o he_o say_v christ_n be_v there_o invisible_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o noman_n can_v see_v he_o and_o yet_o immediate_o after_o with_o one_o breath_n he_o say_v every_o man_n see_v he_o with_o his_o eye_n plainâly_o and_o without_o guile_n or_o erroure_n again_o by_o the_o rigoure_n of_o the_o same_o word_n we_o must_v needs_o grant_n that_o the_o people_n both_o very_o and_o in_o deed_n see_v christ_n very_a body_n and_o also_o handle_v and_o touch_v it_o with_o their_o finger_n glosa_n which_o be_v not_o only_o a_o manifest_a untrueth_n but_o also_o a_o great_a heresy_n than_o ever_o be_v defend_v by_o berengarius_fw-la as_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o doctor_n of_o m._n hardinge_n own_o side_n in_o deed_n the_o marvelous_a effect_n that_o god_n work_v in_o the_o faithful_a in_o that_o dreadful_a time_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n wherein_o the_o whole_a mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n that_o we_o have_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v express_v chrysostome_n call_v a_o miracle_n and_o therefore_o the_o more_o to_o stir_v the_o people_n mind_n to_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o same_o he_o inflame_v his_o speech_n with_o rhetorical_a amplification_n and_o heat_n of_o word_n he_o say_v christ_n be_v crucify_a before_o our_o eye_n his_o blood_n gussh_v out_o of_o his_o âide_v and_o stream_v and_o flow_v over_o the_o holy_a table_n and_o the_o people_n be_v therewith_o make_v read_v and_o bloody_a this_o avancinge_v and_o ravishinge_v of_o the_o mind_n he_o call_v a_o miracle_n but_o of_o any_o corporal_n or_o fleashe_o presence_n he_o speak_v nothing_o by_o such_o figurative_a and_o fiery_a speech_n he_o mean_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v understande_v he_o precise_o accord_v to_o the_o sound_n of_o his_o word_n but_o seek_v only_o to_o lift_v up_o 3._o and_o inkendle_n his_o hearer_n mind_n so_o s._n paul_n say_v to_o the_o galathians_n 85._o christ_n be_v crucify_a before_o your_o eye_n so_o s._n hierome_n our_o face_n be_v mark_v in_o baptism_n with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o say_v tertullian_n we_o be_v wassh_v in_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n baptismo_fw-la so_o s._n gregory_n say_v eundum_fw-la agnum_fw-la johannes_n ostendendo_fw-la esaias_n praevidendo_fw-la abeâ_n offerendo_fw-la locutus_fw-la est_fw-la et_fw-la quem_fw-la johannes_n in_o ostensione_n quem_fw-la esaias_n in_o locutione_n hunc_fw-la abel_n significando_fw-la in_o manibus_fw-la tenuit_fw-la s._n john_n the_o baptist_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o lamb_n by_o pointinge_v esaias_n by_o seeinge_v abel_n by_o offer_v and_o the_o lamb_n that_o john_n heal_v in_o his_o hand_n by_o pointinge_v and_o esaie_n by_o speak_v the_o same_o lamb_n abel_n heal_v in_o his_o hand_n by_o signifieinge_v 16._o these_o saieinge_n and_o other_o like_a be_v vehement_a as_o be_v that_o of_o chrysostome_n and_o as_o m._n harding_n know_v may_v not_o be_v take_v as_o they_o lie_v but_o must_v be_v mollify_v with_o a_o gentle_a construction_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .5_o division_n the_o same_o father_n confess_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o diverse_a place_n likewise_o in_o his_o homily_n ad_fw-la populum_fw-la antiochenum_fw-la most_o plain_o alludinge_v to_o elias_n 2._o elias_n saithe_v he_o melotem_fw-la quidem_fw-la discipulo_fw-la reliquit_fw-la filius_fw-la autem_fw-la dei_fw-la ascendens_fw-la svam_fw-la nobis_fw-la carnem_fw-la dimisit_fw-la say_fw-la elias_n quidem_fw-la exutus_fw-la christus_fw-la autem_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la reliquit_fw-la &_o ipsam_fw-la habens_fw-la ascendit_fw-la elias_n when_o he_o be_v carry_v up_o in_o the_o fiery_a chariot_n leafte_v to_o his_o disciple_n eliseus_n his_o mantel_n of_o sheep_n skin_n but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n report_v when_o he_o ascend_v leafte_v to_o we_o his_o flesh_n but_o elias_n do_v put_v of_o his_o mantel_n and_o christ_n both_o leafte_n his_o flesh_n to_o we_o and_o also_o ascend_v have_v it_o with_o he_o nothing_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o plain_o whereby_o to_o show_v that_o we_o have_v the_o same_o flesh_n here_o in_o earth_n that_o be_v receive_v into_o heaven_n which_o christ_n have_v not_o put_v of_o to_o geve_v it_o to_o us._n by_o which_o doctrine_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n 148_o contrary_a we_o be_v teach_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n flesh_n or_o his_o body_n be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o also_o in_o the_o earth_n in_o how_o many_o place_n so_o ever_o this_o bless_a sacrament_n be_v right_o celebrate_v the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n this_o place_n well_o consider_v both_o open_v itself_o and_o also_o geve_v light_n unto_o other_o like_a chrysostome_n show_v in_o what_o sort_n christ_n have_v both_o take_v up_o his_o flesh_n into_o heaven_n &_o also_o leafte_v the_o same_o here_o among_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o that_o end_n compare_v elias_n and_o christ_n together_o 2._o the_o story_n be_v know_v that_o when_o elias_n be_v take_v up_o in_o a_o fiery_a chariot_n he_o let_v down_o his_o coat_n unto_o elizaeus_n that_o stand_v beneath_o who_o take_v it_o up_o and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o same_o divide_v the_o water_n of_o jordane_n upon_o occasion_n hereof_o chrysostome_n saithe_v tanquam_fw-la maximam_fw-la haereditatem_fw-la elizaeus_n melotem_fw-la suscepit_fw-la 2._o etenim_fw-la verè_fw-la maxima_fw-la fuit_fw-la haereditas_fw-la omni_fw-la auro_fw-la pretiosioâ_n et_fw-la erat_fw-la postea_fw-la duplex_fw-la elias_n et_fw-la erat_fw-la sursum_fw-la elias_n &_o deorsum_fw-la elias_n elizaeus_n receive_v the_o coat_n make_v of_o sheep_n skin_n as_o a_o great_a inheritance_n and_o doubtelesse_a it_o be_v a_o inheritance_n more_o precious_a than_o any_o gold_n after_o that_o time_n elias_n be_v double_a for_o there_o be_v elias_n aboove_o and_o elias_n beneath_o aboove_o be_v the_o very_a true_a elias_n in_o the_o natural_a substance_n and_o presence_n of_o his_o body_n beneathe_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o elias_n coat_n which_o coat_n notwithstanding_o because_o of_o the_o power_n that_o be_v wrought_v with_o it_o he_o call_v elias_n thus_o chrysostome_n compare_v elias_n with_o christ_n and_o elias_n coat_n with_o the_o sacrament_n and_o thus_o he_o say_v christ_n be_v above_o and_o christ_n be_v beneathe_v as_o he_o saithe_v elias_n be_v above_o and_o elias_n be_v beneathe_v for_o as_o elias_n coat_n be_v call_v elias_n even_o so_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v call_v christ_n body_n which_o saieinge_v agree_v well_o with_o these_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n sacramentum_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la secundum_fw-la quendam_fw-la modum_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la est_fw-la the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n after_o a_o certain_a manner_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n bonifacium_fw-la not_o substantial_o or_o real_o or_o in_o deed_n but_o as_o elias_n coat_n be_v elias_n hereof_o m._n hardinge_n may_v well_o have_v form_v this_o argument_n elias_n be_v above_o be_v not_o very_o and_o in_o deed_n present_v beneath_o in_o his_o coat_n therefore_o by_o chrysostom_n comparison_n christ_n body_n be_v not_o in_o deed_n really_n and_o fleashe_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .6_o division_n 149_o slander_n and_o where_o as_o many_o measuringe_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o common_a order_n and_o law_n of_o nature_n believe_v nothing_o can_v be_v do_v above_o nature_n and_o therefore_o think_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v of_o nature_n finite_a can_v by_o power_n of_o god_n be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o of_o which_o opinion_n m._n jewel_n seem_v to_o be_v himself_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v biside_n the_o purpose_n though_o the_o place_n already_o allege_v prove_v the_o contrary_a to_o recite_v the_o testimony_n of_o a_o old_a doctor_n or_o two_o wherein_o they_o confess_v most_o plain_o that_o which_o by_o this_o article_n be_v most_o untrue_o deny_v the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n m._n hardinge_n hoap_v to_o win_v the_o uictorie_n by_o untrue_n report_n for_o with_o what_o truth_n or_o modesty_n can_v he_o say_v that_o we_o measure_v all_o thing_n by_o
pro_fw-la rebus_fw-la accipere_fw-la that_o in_o deed_n be_v a_o miserable_a servitude_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o take_v the_o sign_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v signify_v now_o touchinge_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n m._n hardinge_n be_v not_o able_a to_o show_v neither_o any_o commandment_n of_o christ_n nor_o any_o word_n or_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o ancient_a father_n concern_v the_o same_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o late_o divise_v by_o pope_n honorius_n missar_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1226._o afterward_o increase_v by_o the_o new_a solemn_a feast_n of_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la day_n by_o pope_n urbanus_fw-la anno_fw-la 2264._o dominun_n and_o last_o of_o all_o confirm_a for_o ever_o by_o multitude_n of_o pardon_n in_o the_o council_n of_o uienna_n by_o pope_n clement_n 5._o an._n 1310._o the_o church_n of_o asia_n and_o graecia_n never_o receive_v it_o until_o this_o day_n the_o matter_n be_v great_a and_o can_v be_v attempt_v without_o great_a danger_n 21._o to_o geve_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n to_o a_o creature_n that_o be_v no_o god_n it_o be_v manifest_a idolatry_n and_o all_o idolater_n as_o s._n john_n say_v shall_v have_v their_o portion_n in_o the_o lake_n burn_v with_o fire_n and_o brymstoane_n which_o be_v the_o second_o death_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .2_o division_n but_o now_o this_o be_v that_o very_a bread_n which_o god_n the_o father_n give_v we_o from_o heaven_n 6._o as_o christ_n say_v this_o bread_n be_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o give_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n m._n hardinge_n will_v seem_v to_o have_v train_v all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n unto_o his_o side_n and_o to_o that_o end_n have_v muster_v they_o here_o in_o a_o army_n all_o together_o how_o be_v it_o of_o they_o all_o there_o be_v not_o one_o that_o teach_v we_o one_o word_n of_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n wherefore_o if_o he_o bring_v they_o forth_o only_o for_o a_o show_n they_o be_v to_o many_o but_o if_o he_o bring_v they_o as_o witness_n they_o be_v to_o few_o for_o touchinge_v the_o case_n they_o say_v nothing_o yet_o m._n harding_n as_o a_o man_n much_o doubtinge_v his_o reader_n memory_n whatsoever_o he_o have_v short_o allege_v here_o have_v else_o where_o repete_v and_o double_v the_o same_o in_o other_o place_n of_o his_o book_n so_o that_o if_o i_o will_v answer_v all_o in_o particular_a i_o shall_v be_v over_o tedious_a for_o avoidinge_v whereof_o it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o refer_v i_o self_n over_o to_o such_o place_n where_o as_o these_o authority_n be_v answer_v several_o more_o at_o large_a first_o as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o all_o these_o father_n that_o will_v we_o to_o adoure_v the_o sacrament_n with_o godly_a honour_n which_o thing_n notwithstanding_o they_o be_v able_a to_o have_v write_v if_o it_o have_v be_v then_o either_o use_v or_o think_v convenient_a and_o m._n hardinge_n be_v able_a to_o have_v find_v it_o if_o it_o have_v be_v write_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o that_o bread_n 6._o of_o which_o christ_n speak_v in_o the_o sirth_n of_o s._n john_n but_o very_o material_a bread_n in_o deed_n and_o as_o s._n cyprian_n say_v exit_fw-la multorum_fw-la granorum_fw-la adunatione_fw-la congestus_fw-la mould_v together_o of_o the_o minglinge_v of_o many_o corue_v and_o a_o sacrament_n of_o that_o bread_n that_o come_v from_o heaven_n but_o this_o matter_n be_v answer_v in_o the_o fifthe_o article_n and_o in_o the_o first_o second_o and_o third_o division_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .3_o division_n this_o be_v that_o bread_n and_o that_o cup_n whereof_o whosoever_o eat_v or_o drink_v unworthe_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n s._n hierome_n say_v 1._o dum_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la violantur_fw-la ipse_fw-la cvius_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la sunt_fw-la violatur_fw-la when_o the_o sacrament_n be_v misuse_v god_n himself_o who_o sacrament_n they_o be_v be_v misuse_v and_o the_o great_a abuse_n and_o uilanie_n that_o can_v happen_v to_o any_o sacrament_n be_v contrary_a to_o christ_n institution_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n to_o be_v honour_v in_o steed_n of_o god_n 6._o and_o s._n augustine_n say_v qui_fw-la indignè_fw-la accipit_fw-la baptisma_fw-la judicium_fw-la accipiâ_n non_fw-la salutem_fw-la who_o so_o receive_v baptism_n unwoorthy_o receive_v his_o judgement_n and_o not_o his_o health_n wherefore_o if_o m._n hardinge_n think_v this_o warrant_n sufficient_a to_o prove_v adoration_n then_o must_v he_o also_o adoure_v the_o water_n of_o baptism_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .4_o division_n 160_o word_n in_o this_o sacrament_n be_v contain_v the_o very_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o himself_o saithe_v express_o in_o the_o three_o first_o evangelist_n and_o in_o s._n paul_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n it_o be_v a_o bold_a enterprise_n in_o the_o report_n of_o four_o plain_a word_n to_o commit_v five_o manifest_a untruethe_n &_o that_o altogether_o with_o one_o breath_n certain_o m._n hardinge_n well_o know_v that_o neither_o christ_n nor_o paul_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o evangelist_n i_o add_v further_o nor_o any_o of_o the_o catholic_a doctor_n in_o this_o case_n of_o the_o sacrament_n ever_o use_v any_o of_o these_o term_n either_o carnal_o contain_v or_o express_o or_o very_a or_o real_a or_o substantial_a only_o they_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o word_n the_o ancient_a father_n tertullian_n expound_v thus_o 4._o this_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .5_o division_n this_o be_v that_o holy_a eucharistia_n 34._o which_o ignatius_n call_v the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n that_o have_v suffer_v for_o our_o sin_n which_o the_o father_n by_o his_o goodness_n have_v raise_v up_o to_o life_n again_o this_o be_v not_o common_a bread_n but_o the_o eucharistia_n after_o consecration_n consistinge_v of_o two_o thing_n earthe_o and_o heavenly_a as_o irenaeus_n saithe_v meaning_n by_o the_o one_o 161_o itself_o the_o outward_a form_n by_o the_o other_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o parsley_n for_o the_o godhead_n inseparable_o thereto_o unite_v and_o partly_o for_o that_o they_o be_v conceive_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o most_o holy_a virgin_n marie_n be_v worthy_o call_v heavenly_a the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n what_o theodoretus_n think_v in_o this_o behalf_n it_o be_v plain_a by_o his_o own_o word_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v signa_fw-la mystica_fw-la post_fw-la sanctificationem_fw-la non_fw-la recedunt_fw-la à _fw-la natura_fw-la sva_fw-la 2._o the_o mystical_a token_n after_o the_o sanctification_n or_o consecration_n go_v not_o from_o their_o own_o nature_n that_o be_v to_o say_v remain_v in_o substance_n and_o nature_n as_o they_o be_v before_o by_o these_o word_n we_o may_v plain_o see_v theodoretus_n judgement_n how_o be_v it_o in_o all_o sacrament_n two_o thing_n must_v be_v consider_v whereof_o as_o irenaeus_n saithe_v they_o do_v consist_v the_o one_o be_v earthly_a the_o other_o be_v heavenly_a the_o one_o we_o see_v with_o our_o bodily_a eye_n the_o other_o we_o see_v with_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o one_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n the_o other_o be_v in_o heaven_n these_o part_n because_o they_o be_v join_v in_o one_o mystery_n therefore_o oftentimes_o they_o scorce_v name_n the_o one_o interchangeable_o with_o the_o other_o for_o as_o christ_n very_a body_n be_v call_v bread_n although_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v no_o bread_n so_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n be_v call_v christ_n body_n although_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v not_o christ_n body_n therefore_o as_o the_o sacrament_n be_v call_v christ_n body_n even_o so_o accord_v to_o the_o saieinge_n of_o ignatius_n it_o be_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n polymorpho_n even_o the_o same_o that_o have_v suffer_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o the_o father_n have_v raise_v again_o to_o life_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o sacrament_n of_o that_o flesh_n in_o like_a sort_n s._n chrysostome_n write_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n 16._o ostendit_fw-la hoc_fw-la loco_fw-la idem_fw-la esse_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la &_o aquam_fw-la baptisma_fw-la enim_fw-la eius_fw-la etiam_fw-la passio_fw-la eius_fw-la est_fw-la s._n paul_n show_v in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n be_v both_o one_o for_o christ_n baptism_n be_v christ_n passion_n he_o say_v the_o water_n &_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v both_o one_o thing_n &_o that_o he_o say_v be_v s._n paul_n meaning_n yet_o notwithstanding_o neither_o be_v the_o water_n christ_n blood_n in_o deed_n neither_o be_v christ_n blood_n in_o deed_n material_a water_n but_o thus_o they_o borowe_n each_o of_o they_o the_o others_z name_n because_o they_o
be_v join_v together_o in_o one_o mystery_n so_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n call_v water_n because_o it_o cleanse_v so_o be_v the_o water_n call_v christ_n blood_n because_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o that_o blood_n and_o as_o s._n chrysostome_n saithe_v the_o water_n of_o baptism_n be_v christ_n blood_n even_o so_o ignatius_n saithe_v the_o bread_n be_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o none_o otherwise_o these_o thing_n be_v plain_a and_o without_o cavil_v therefore_o s._n augustine_n say_v 23._o sacramenta_fw-la ex_fw-la similitudine_fw-la plerunque_fw-la etiam_fw-la rerum_fw-la ipsarum_fw-la nomina_fw-la accipiunt_fw-la ergo_fw-la secundum_fw-la quendam_fw-la modum_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la est_fw-la &_o sacramentum_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la christi_fw-la sanguis_fw-la christi_fw-la est_fw-la sacrament_n because_o of_o a_o certain_a likeness_n oftentimes_o receive_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n them self_o whereof_o they_o be_v sacrament_n modum_fw-la and_o therefore_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n after_o a_o certain_a manner_n of_o speech_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n blood_n be_v likewise_o after_o a_o certain_a manner_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o here_o have_v m._n hardinge_n take_v great_a pain_n to_o wrest_v and_o to_o falsify_v the_o plain_a word_n of_o that_o holy_a father_n ireneus_fw-la 34._o for_o that_o part_n of_o the_o mystery_n that_o ireneus_fw-la call_v rem_fw-la terrenam_fw-la a_o earthly_a thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v bread_n the_o same_o m._n hardinge_n contrary_a to_o his_o author_n meaning_n call_v form_n or_o accident_n or_o show_v of_o bread_n for_o this_o fond_a and_o heathenish_a kind_n of_o speech_n be_v not_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o church_n in_o that_o holy_a father_n day_n but_o be_v bring_v in_o wellnear_o a_o thousand_o year_n afterward_o to_o accompany_v transubstantiation_n but_o ireneus_fw-la in_o plain_a wise_a call_v it_o a_o creature_n loco_fw-la thus_o he_o say_v sanctificamus_fw-la creaturan_n we_o do_v sanctify_v a_o creature_n offerimus_fw-la eâ_n ex_fw-la creatura_fw-la eius_fw-la we_o offer_v up_o unto_o he_o of_o his_o creature_n and_o that_o he_o mean_v not_o a_o miraculous_a creature_n as_o be_v accidens_fw-la sine_fw-la subiecto_fw-la the_o like_a whereof_o be_v never_o see_v but_o he_o say_v simple_o ibidem_fw-la creaturam_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la secundum_fw-la nos_fw-la ãâã_d such_o a_o creature_n as_o we_o have_v in_o common_a use_n such_o as_o we_o see_v such_o as_o we_o feel_v such_o as_o we_o eat_v such_o as_o we_o drink_v and_o utter_o to_o cut_v of_o all_o m._n hardinge_n shift_n 5._o he_o say_v exit_fw-la illa_fw-la augetur_fw-la &_o consistiâ_n carnis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la substantia_fw-la of_o the_o same_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o flesh_n be_v increase_v and_o stand_v therefore_o it_o be_v certain_a and_o most_o manifest_a by_o ireneus_fw-la that_o as_o christ_n body_n be_v the_o one_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o be_v material_a bread_n the_o other_o likewise_o in_o baptism_n as_o the_o one_o part_n of_o that_o holy_a mystery_n be_v christ_n blood_n so_o be_v the_o other_o part_n the_o material_a water_n neither_o be_v these_o part_n join_v together_o in_o place_n but_o in_o mystery_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v oftentimes_o sever_v and_o the_o one_o be_v receive_v without_o the_o other_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n s._n augustine_n say_v 26._o qui_fw-la discordat_fw-la à _fw-la christo_fw-la nec_fw-la panem_fw-la eius_fw-la manducat_fw-la nec_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la bibit_fw-la etiam_fw-la si_fw-la tantae_fw-la rei_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la ad_fw-la iudicium_fw-la svae_fw-la praesumptionis_fw-la quotidie_fw-la indifferenter_fw-la accipiat_fw-la who_o so_o disagree_v from_o christ_n neither_o eat_v his_o bread_n nor_o drink_v his_o blood_n although_o he_o daily_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o so_o great_a a_o thing_n without_o difference_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o his_o presumption_n if_o any_o man_n think_v it_o strange_a that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v call_v the_o body_n and_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o so_o in_o deed_n let_v he_o understande_v that_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n be_v likewise_o call_v christ_n body_n and_o christ_n flesh_n even_o the_o same_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o that_o the_o father_n raise_v again_o to_o life_n although_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v not_o so_o 147._o so_o say_v s._n hierome_n quando_fw-la dicit_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la comederit_fw-la carnem_fw-la meam_fw-la &_o biberit_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la meum_fw-la etc._n etc._n licet_fw-la in_o mysterio_fw-la possit_fw-la intelligi_fw-la tamen_fw-la veriùs_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la eius_fw-la sermo_n scripturarum_fw-la est_fw-la when_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o eat_v not_o my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v not_o my_o blood_n etc._n etc._n notwithstanding_o it_o may_v be_v take_v of_o the_o mystery_n veriùs_n yet_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v more_o true_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o blood_n here_o note_n good_a reader_n that_o by_o these_o word_n of_o s._n hierome_n the_o woordâ_n of_o god_n be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o more_o true_o then_o be_v the_o sacrament_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .6_o division_n this_o be_v that_o bread_n which_o of_o our_o lord_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n not_o in_o shape_n âª_o but_o in_o nature_n change_v by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n as_o s._n cyprian_n term_v it_o the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n this_o authority_n be_v answer_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o tenthe_n article_n and_o in_o the_o second_o division_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .7_o division_n this_o be_v that_o holy_a mystery_n wherein_o the_o invisible_a priest_n turn_v the_o visible_a creature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n pascha_fw-la and_o blood_n by_o his_o word_n with_o secret_a power_n as_o eusebius_n emissenus_fw-la report_v the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n this_o authority_n be_v answer_v in_o the_o tenthe_n article_n and_o in_o the_o seventhe_n division_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .8_o division_n 8._o this_o be_v that_o holy_a food_n by_o worthy_a receivinge_n whereof_o christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o natural_o that_o be_v to_o wit_n in_o we_o by_o truth_n of_o nature_n and_o not_o by_o concord_n of_o will_n only_o as_o hilarius_n affirm_v trinitate_fw-la the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n this_o authority_n be_v answer_v before_o in_o the_o fifthe_o article_n and_o the_o tenthe_n division_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .9_o division_n again_o this_o be_v that_o table_n whereat_o in_o our_o lord_n meat_n we_o receive_v the_o word_n true_o make_v flesh_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a virgin_n marie_n as_o the_o same_o hilary_n saithe_v the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n this_o authority_n as_o it_o nothing_o hinder_v we_o so_o it_o nothing_o further_v m._n hardinge_n we_o say_v that_o at_o that_o holy_a table_n our_o faith_n be_v direct_v not_o unto_o a_o fantasy_n but_o unto_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o taste_v it_o and_o feed_v on_o it_o and_o that_o as_o very_o and_o as_o effectual_o as_o our_o body_n feed_v upon_o material_a food_n and_o we_o add_v further_o that_o who_o so_o ever_o eat_v not_o christ_n flesh_n â_o nor_o drink_v his_o blood_n shall_v not_o have_v everlasting_a life_n but_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o receive_v with_o our_o mouth_n be_v not_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o we_o receive_v with_o our_o faith_n for_o as_o it_o be_v before_o allege_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n 26._o aliud_fw-la est_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la aliud_fw-la res_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la the_o sacrament_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o mater_n or_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v christ_n very_a body_n be_v a_o other_o thing_n but_o be_v grant_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v very_o and_o real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o can_v m._n hardinge_n thereof_o conclude_v his_o purpose_n his_o argument_n stand_v thus_o christ_n body_n ought_v to_o be_v adour_v with_o godly_a honour_n christ_n body_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n ergo_fw-la the_o sacrament_n ought_v to_o be_v adour_v with_o godly_a honour_n this_o argument_n be_v make_v up_o of_o four_o term_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o school_n will_v be_v count_v childish_a the_o erroure_n thereof_o will_v the_o better_o appear_v by_o the_o like_a christ_n body_n ought_v to_o be_v adour_v with_o godly_a honour_n christ_n body_n be_v in_o heaven_n ergo_fw-la heaven_n ought_v to_o be_v adour_v with_o godly_a honour_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .10_o division_n this_o be_v that_o bread_n which_o neither_o earinge_n nor_o sowinge_v nor_o work_v of_o tiller_n have_v bring_v forth_o but_o that_o earth_n which_o remain_v untouched_a and_o be_v full_a of_o the_o same_o that_o be_v the_o blissed_a virgin_n marie_n as_o gregory_n nyssene_n describe_v the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n gregory_n nyssene_n in_o this_o whole_a place_n speak_v not_o one_o word_n neither_o of_o any_o
spirit_n that_o quicken_v or_o geve_v life_n the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v to_o you_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n as_o though_o he_o have_v say_v thus_o the_o flesh_n of_o itself_o profit_v nothing_o but_o my_o flesh_n which_o be_v full_a of_o godhead_n and_o spirit_n âª_o bring_v and_o woork_v immortality_n and_o life_n everlasting_a to_o they_o judgement_n that_o receive_v it_o worthy_o thus_o we_o understande_v in_o this_o blissed_a sacrament_n not_o only_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o all_o and_o whole_a christ_n god_n and_o man_n to_o be_v present_a in_o substance_n and_o that_o for_o the_o inseparable_a unity_n of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n we_o acknowledge_v ourselves_o bind_v to_o adore_v he_o as_o verâe_v true_a god_n and_o man._n for_o a_o clear_a declaration_n hereof_o 27._o i_o will_v not_o let_v to_o recite_v a_o notable_a sentence_n out_o of_o s._n augustine_n where_o he_o expound_v these_o word_n of_o christ_n then_o if_o you_o see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n go_v up_o where_o he_o be_v before_o there_o have_v be_v no_o question_n saithe_v he_o if_o he_o have_v thus_o say_v if_o you_o see_v the_o son_n of_o god_n go_v up_o where_o he_o be_v before_o but_o where_o as_o he_o say_v the_o son_n of_o man_n go_v up_o where_o he_o be_v before_o what_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o heaven_n before_o that_o he_o begin_v to_o be_v in_o earth_n very_o here_o he_o say_v where_o he_o be_v before_o âª_o as_o though_o then_o he_o be_v not_o there_o when_o he_o speak_v these_o word_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v noman_n have_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o descend_v from_o heaven_n the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n he_o say_v not_o be_v but_o the_o son_n of_o man_n say_v he_o which_o be_v in_o heaven_n in_o earth_n he_o speak_v and_o say_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o heaven_n to_o what_o pertain_v this_o but_o that_o we_o understande_v christ_n to_o be_v one_o person_n god_n and_o man_n not_o two_o jest_n our_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o trinity_n but_o a_o quâternitie_n wherefore_o christ_n be_v one_o the_o word_n the_o soul_n and_o the_o flesh_n one_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n one_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n ever_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o time_n yet_o one_o christ_n accord_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o person_n be_v in_o heaven_n when_o he_o speak_v in_o earth_n so_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o heaven_n as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v in_o earth_n the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o earth_n in_o flesh_n take_v the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o heaven_n in_o unity_n of_o personne_fw-fr thus_o far_o s._n augustine_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n it_o be_v true_a that_o christ_n body_n and_o his_o godheade_n be_v join_v inseparable_o and_o therefore_o must_v be_v adour_v both_o together_o for_o we_o may_v not_o divide_v the_o godheade_n from_o the_o manheade_n and_o so_o imagine_v two_o sundry_a christ_n the_o one_o to_o be_v honour_v the_o other_o to_o stand_v without_o honour_n as_o do_v the_o heretic_n nestorius_n apologâtico_n but_o as_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v join_v both_o in_o one_o be_v honour_v both_o together_o so_o must_v the_o humanity_n and_o divinity_n of_o christ_n 2._o be_v join_v both_o in_o one_o likewise_o be_v honour_v both_o together_o otherwise_o to_o say_v as_o the_o heretic_n nestorius_n say_v thomas_n touch_v he_o that_o be_v rise_v again_o and_o honour_v he_o that_o raise_v he_o up_o it_o be_v great_a blasphemy_n nevertheless_o notwithstanding_o the_o body_n and_o godheade_n of_o christ_n be_v join_v in_o one_o person_n 1._o yet_o be_v they_o distincte_n and_o sundry_a nature_n the_o one_o finite_a the_o other_o infinite_a the_o one_o in_o place_n the_o other_o incomprehensible_a without_o place_n the_o one_o a_o creature_n the_o other_o the_o creator_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o godly_a honour_n dew_n unto_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o itself_o but_o only_o for_o that_o it_o be_v join_v in_o one_o person_n with_o the_o divinity_n all_o these_o thing_n be_v true_a and_o out_o of_o question_n likewise_o the_o word_n that_o christ_n speak_v in_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n &_o be_v here_o allege_v by_o m._n hardinge_n be_v undoubted_o true_a how_o be_v it_o not_o accord_v to_o the_o simple_a sound_n and_o tenoure_n of_o the_o letter_n for_o that_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v be_v 7._o flagitium_fw-la &_o facinus_fw-la a_o heinous_a wickedness_n and_o as_o origen_n say_v it_o will_v kill_v the_o soul_n and_o therefore_o christ_n himself_o expound_v his_o own_o meaning_n touchinge_v the_o same_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o geve_v life_n the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v be_v spirit_n and_o life_n which_o word_n s._n augustine_n expound_v thus_o spiritualiter_fw-la intelligite_fw-la quae_fw-la locutus_fw-la sum_fw-la non_fw-la hoc_fw-la corpus_fw-la quod_fw-la videtis_fw-la manducaturi_fw-la estis_fw-la understand_v you_o spiritual_o the_o thing_n 98._o that_o i_o have_v speak_v you_o shall_v not_o eat_v this_o body_n that_o you_o see_v likewise_o chrysostome_n secundum_fw-la spiritum_fw-la verba_fw-la mea_fw-la audienda_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la secundum_fw-la carnem_fw-la audit_n 47._o nihil_fw-la lucratur_fw-la nihil_fw-la utilitatis_fw-la accipit_fw-la my_o word_n must_v be_v hear_v spiritual_o who_o so_o hear_v they_o carnal_o or_o accord_v to_o the_o flesh_n geat_v nothing_o nor_o have_v any_o profit_n by_o they_o he_o say_v further_a by_o way_n of_o objection_n against_o himself_o quid_fw-la ergo_fw-la est_fw-la carnaliter_fw-la intelligere_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la ut_fw-la res_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la neque_fw-la aliud_fw-la quicquam_fw-la cogitare_fw-la and_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o these_o word_n to_o understande_v accord_v to_o the_o flesh_n he_o answer_v it_o be_v to_o understande_v simple_o and_o plain_o even_o as_o thing_n be_v speak_v and_o to_o think_v upon_o nothing_o else_o thus_o therefore_o christ_n say_v to_o cut_v of_o their_o carnal_a cogitation_n the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v be_v spirit_n and_o life_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v neither_o be_v my_o flesh_n meat_n nor_o my_o blood_n drink_v to_o enter_v into_o your_o mouth_n and_o to_o feed_v your_o body_n but_o if_o your_o soul_n be_v hungry_a i_o be_o spiritual_a meat_n to_o feed_v yowe_o if_o your_o soul_n be_v thirsty_a i_o be_o spiritual_a drink_n to_o refreashe_v yowe_o to_o this_o purpose_n s._n chrysostome_n say_v thus_o 21._o omnia_fw-la tibi_fw-la christus_fw-la factus_fw-la est_fw-la mensa_fw-la vestimentum_fw-la domus_fw-la caput_fw-la &_o radix_fw-la &c._n &c._n christ_n be_v become_v âl_a thing_n unto_o thou_o thy_o table_n thy_o apparel_n thy_o house_n thy_o head_n and_o thy_o root_n 3_o s._n paul_n say_v as_o many_o of_o yowe_o as_o be_v baptise_a in_o christ_n you_o have_v put_v on_o christ_n 6._o behold_v how_o christ_n be_v make_v thy_o apparel_n and_o will_v thou_o learn_v how_o he_o be_v become_v thy_o table_n he_o say_v who_o so_o eat_v i_o shall_v live_v through_o i_o and_o that_o he_o be_v thy_o house_n 15._o he_o say_v who_o so_o eat_v my_o flesh_n dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o and_o that_o he_o be_v thy_o root_n again_o he_o say_v i_o be_o the_o vine_n and_o you_o be_v the_o branch_n so_o say_v gregorius_n nyssenus_n mosis_fw-la christ_n unto_o the_o strong_a be_v strong_a meat_n unto_o the_o weak_a sort_n he_o be_v herb_n and_o unto_o infant_n he_o be_v milk_n so_o say_v origen_n ne_fw-la mireris_fw-la quia_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o caro_fw-la dicitur_fw-la &_o panis_n &_o lac_n &_o olera_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la mensura_fw-la credentium_fw-la vel_fw-la possibilitate_fw-la sumentium_fw-la diversè_fw-la nominatur_fw-la 7._o marvel_v not_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v call_v both_o flesh_n and_o bread_n and_o milk_n and_o herb_n and_o accord_v to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o believer_n and_o the_o possibility_n of_o the_o receiver_n be_v diverse_o name_v and_o likewise_o gregory_n nazianzene_n 44._o quemadmodum_fw-la dominus_fw-la noster_fw-la jesus_n christus_fw-la appellatur_fw-la vita_fw-la via_fw-la panis_n vitis_n lux_fw-la vera_fw-la &_o mille_fw-la alia_fw-la sic_fw-la etiam_fw-la appellatur_fw-la gladius_n like_o as_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v call_v the_o life_n the_o way_n the_o bread_n the_o vine_n the_o true_a light_n and_o a_o thousand_o thing_n else_o so_o be_v he_o also_o call_v the_o swearde_n now_o as_o christ_n be_v bread_n even_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n of_o speech_n he_o be_v a_o swearde_n and_o none_o otherwise_o thus_o be_v christ_n unto_o we_o a_o spiritual_a table_n a_o spiritual_a apparel_n a_o spiritual_a house_n a_o spiritual_a head_n a_o spiritual_a root_n spiritual_a meat_n spiritual_a herb_n spiritual_a
efficeremur_fw-la participes_fw-la divinitatis_fw-la eius_fw-la 118._o nisi_fw-la ipse_fw-la factus_fw-la fuisset_fw-la particeps_fw-la mortalitatis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la we_o can_v not_o be_v partaker_n of_o his_o godheade_n onlesse_a he_o have_v be_v partaker_n of_o our_o mortality_n all_o these_o word_n be_v true_a as_o conteininge_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o exposition_n of_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o but_o m._n hardinge_n to_o make_v these_o word_n of_o cyrillus_n to_o serve_v his_o turn_n have_v imagine_v two_o great_a error_n the_o one_o be_v that_o christ_n body_n can_v be_v eat_v but_o only_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o other_o be_v that_o onlesse_a we_o receive_v christ_n body_n with_o our_o mouth_n and_o swallow_v it_o down_o into_o our_o belly_n we_o eat_v it_o not_o as_o though_o either_o christ_n or_o these_o holy_a father_n have_v mean_v a_o carnal_a or_o fleash_o eatinge_v this_o whole_a doctrine_n be_v horrible_a and_o full_a of_o desperation_n for_o m._n hardinge_n position_n be_v true_a that_o noman_n shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o that_o blissed_a resurrection_n but_o only_o such_o as_o have_v eat_v christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n what_o then_o shall_v become_v of_o christian_a child_n that_o have_v depart_v this_o life_n never_o have_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n who_o shall_v raise_v they_o up_o again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n or_o do_v m._n hardinge_n believe_v that_o such_o little_a one_o be_v baptize_v and_o so_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n shall_v never_o rise_v again_o but_o lie_v damn_v for_o ever_o only_o because_o they_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n uery_o christ_n in_o these_o word_n as_o it_o be_v witness_v by_o all_o the_o holy_a father_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o of_o the_o spiritual_n eat_v with_o our_o faith_n and_o in_o this_o behalf_n utter_o exclude_v the_o corporal_a office_n of_o our_o body_n therefore_o s._n augustine_n say_v johannis_fw-la crede_fw-la &_o manducasti_fw-la believe_v and_o thou_o have_v eat_v and_o again_o illud_fw-la manducare_fw-la refici_fw-la est_fw-la illud_fw-la bibere_fw-la quid_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la vivere_fw-la that_o eatinge_v eatinge_v be_v to_o be_v refreash_v and_o that_o drink_v what_o be_v it_o else_o but_o to_o live_v 2._o likewise_o s._n basile_n saithe_v est_fw-la spiritual_fw-la os_fw-la interni_fw-la hominis_fw-la quo_fw-la recipitur_fw-la verbum_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la panis_n qui_fw-fr de_fw-fr coelo_fw-la descendit_fw-la there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a mouth_n of_o the_o inner_a man_n wherewith_o be_v receive_v the_o word_n of_o life_n 33._o which_o be_v that_o bread_n that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o touchinge_v our_o rise_n again_o from_o the_o dead_a beda_n he_o saithe_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d our_o baptism_n be_v a_o strengthe_n or_o power_n to_o resurrection_n so_o s._n augustine_n nemini_fw-la dubitandum_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n no_o man_n may_v doubt_v but_o every_o man_n be_v then_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n when_o in_o baptism_n he_o be_v make_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n body_n likewise_o s._n chrysostome_n in_o baptism_n we_o be_v incorporate_v unto_o christ_n 10._o and_o make_v flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o his_o bone_n thus_o by_o faith_n we_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o not_o by_o way_n of_o imagination_n 20._o or_o fantasy_n but_o effectual_o very_o and_o in_o deed_n and_o therefore_o christ_n shall_v raise_v we_o up_o again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n m._n hardinge_n error_n as_o i_o have_v say_v rest_v herein_o that_o he_o imagine_v that_o christ_n body_n can_v be_v eat_v but_o only_o in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o by_o the_o mean_a and_o office_n of_o our_o bodily_a mouth_n but_o as_o it_o be_v before_o allege_v out_o of_o rabanus_n maurus_n 31._o the_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v outwarde_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o our_o body_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o inner_a man_n and_o that_o with_o the_o spiritual_a mouth_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o thus_o both_o may_v the_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v without_o christ_n body_n and_o also_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v receive_v without_o the_o sacrament_n hitherto_o m._n hardinge_n have_v not_o once_o touch_v one_o word_n of_o adoration_n concern_v nestorius_n m._n hardinge_n in_o the_o drift_n of_o his_o tale_n have_v handesome_o couch_v in_o a_o great_a untrueth_n for_o where_o as_o he_o saithe_v nestorius_n hold_v this_o opinion_n that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o bread_n we_o receive_v only_o christ_n body_n without_o his_o blood_n ephesus_n and_o in_o the_o cup_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n alone_o without_o the_o body_n neither_o do_v nestorius_n notwithstanding_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n ever_o hold_v this_o peevishe_a erroure_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o such_o record_n either_o in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n that_o here_o untrue_o be_v allege_v or_o in_o any_o other_o old_a council_n or_o ancient_a father_n but_o the_o right_n of_o m._n hardinge_n cause_n hang_v of_o such_o evidence_n as_o never_o be_v find_v in_o any_o record_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o canon_n to_o be_v find_v in_o that_o whole_a council_n or_o any_o mention_n thereof_o make_v in_o any_o of_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n let_v m._n hardinge_n show_v it_o that_o we_o may_v believe_v he_o if_o have_v allege_v it_o so_o constant_o and_o so_o often_o he_o be_v able_a utter_o to_o show_v nothing_o let_v he_o geve_v man_n leave_v to_o think_v that_o he_o abuse_v the_o world_n with_o vain_a title_n and_o mean_v no_o truth_n although_o he_o may_v be_v bold_a free_o to_o divise_v matter_n against_o nestorius_n as_o be_v a_o heretic_n yet_o he_o shall_v not_o thus_o report_v untrueth_n of_o a_o general_n council_n but_o cyrillus_n saithe_v further_o we_o can_v eat_v the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v his_o manhead_n only_o that_o be_v eat_v hereby_o m._n hardinge_n think_v he_o be_v able_a to_o overthrow_v our_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o spiritual_n eatinge_v that_o be_v wrought_v by_o faith_n for_o thus_o he_o will_v reason_n by_o your_o doctrine_n eatinge_v of_o christ_n body_n be_v beleevinge_v but_o cyrillus_n say_v we_o can_v eat_v god_n ergo_fw-la by_o your_o doctrine_n we_o can_v believe_v in_o god_n thus_o he_o think_v we_o be_v drive_v to_o confess_v a_o great_a inconvenience_n this_o reason_n seem_v to_o have_v some_o show_n and_o therefore_o i_o beseech_v thou_o good_a reader_n to_o consider_v both_o the_o part_n thereof_o and_o also_o the_o answer_n eatinge_v in_o common_a use_n of_o speech_n be_v the_o receivinge_n of_o food_n and_o susteinance_n and_o the_o turn_v of_o the_o same_o into_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o body_n and_o by_o a_o metaphor_n or_o a_o extraordinary_a kind_n of_o speech_n god_n be_v often_o use_v for_o the_o spiritual_a eatinge_v and_o turn_v of_o heavenly_a food_n to_o the_o refreashinge_v and_o nourissh_v of_o our_o soul_n by_o neither_o of_o these_o way_n it_o can_v right_o be_v say_v that_o we_o eat_v the_o godheade_n for_o neither_o can_v we_o receive_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n divine_a nature_n neither_o turn_v the_o same_o into_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o nature_n but_o we_o may_v receive_v &_o eat_v and_o feed_v upon_o the_o humanity_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o become_v bone_n of_o his_o bone_n 5._o and_o flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n so_o as_o he_o may_v dwell_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o he_o wherefore_o notwithstanding_o christ_n be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n yet_o we_o have_v not_o our_o feed_v and_o life_n of_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o godhead_n alone_o but_o first_o and_o principal_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o humanity_n in_o that_o he_o be_v make_v man_n and_o become_v partaker_n of_o flesh_n 2._o and_o blood_n and_o be_v crucify_a and_o sheadde_v his_o blood_n and_o yield_v up_o his_o spirit_n upon_o the_o crosse._n this_o be_v our_o spiritual_a feed_v herein_o stand_v our_o whole_a life_n therefore_o s._n paul_n saithe_v quod_fw-la nunc_fw-la vivo_fw-la in_o carne_n in_o fide_fw-la vivo_fw-la silij_fw-la dei_fw-la 2._o qui_fw-la dedit_fw-la semetipsum_fw-la pro_fw-la i_o that_o i_o live_v now_o in_o the_o flesh_n i_o live_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 6._o that_o have_v give_v himself_o for_o i_o and_o again_o god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o any_o thing_n savinge_v only_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o jesus_n christ_n likewise_o saint_n peter_n 4._o there_o be_v none_o other_o name_n give_v unto_o man_n under_o heaven_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v save_v but_o only_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n jesus_n thus_o as_o cyrillus_n saithe_v we_o have_v our_o life_n and_o feed_v not_o of_o the_o godheadde_a but_o of_o the_o manheadde_a of_o christ_n
and_o therefore_o it_o be_v very_o well_o note_v upon_o the_o decree_n christus_fw-la per_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la factus_fw-la noster_fw-la panis_n christus_fw-la &_o sustentatio_fw-la &_o vita_fw-la quia_fw-la assumpsit_fw-la carnem_fw-la nostram_fw-la margin_n christ_n in_o this_o be_v become_v our_o bread_n and_o our_o susteinance_n and_o our_o life_n because_o he_o have_v take_v our_o flesh_n but_o m._n hardinge_n will_v say_v accord_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o cyrillus_n we_o can_v eat_v the_o godhead_n yet_o nevertheless_o we_o do_v believe_v in_o god_n ergo_fw-la contrary_a to_o your_o doctrine_n beleevinge_v and_o eatinge_v be_v not_o both_o one_o uery_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o cyrillus_n himself_o and_o also_o by_o a_o general_a consent_n of_o other_o old_a learned_a father_n that_o we_o can_v neither_o know_v god_n nor_o believe_v in_o god_n nor_o call_v upon_o god_n as_o he_o be_v in_o himself_o in_o his_o divine_a majesty_n but_o only_o as_o it_o please_v he_o to_o become_v like_a unto_o we_o and_o to_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o mortal_a nature_n s._n chrysostome_n saithe_v 17._o illu_z si_fw-mi in_o nuda_fw-la deitate_fw-la venisset_fw-la non_fw-la coelum_fw-la non_fw-la terra_fw-la non_fw-la maria_fw-la non_fw-la ulla_fw-la creatura_fw-la sustinere_fw-la potuisset_fw-la if_o god_n have_v come_v in_o his_o manifest_a divinity_n neither_o the_o heaven_n nor_o the_o earth_n nor_o the_o sea_n nor_o any_o creature_n can_v have_v bear_v his_o presence_n so_o s._n hilary_n 143._o cognitus_fw-la fieri_fw-la deus_fw-la homini_fw-la nisi_fw-la assumpto_fw-la homine_fw-la non_fw-la potuit_fw-la quia_fw-la incognoscibilem_fw-la cognoscere_fw-la nisi_fw-la per_fw-la naturam_fw-la nostram_fw-la natura_fw-la nostra_fw-la non_fw-la potuit_fw-la onlesse_a god_n have_v take_v man_n he_o can_v never_o have_v be_v know_v unto_o man_n for_o he_o that_o can_v be_v know_v our_o nature_n savinge_v only_o by_o mean_a of_o our_o own_o nature_n can_v never_o have_v know_v reginas_fw-la likewise_o saithe_v cyrillus_n christus_fw-la non_fw-la aliter_fw-la erit_fw-la adorabilis_fw-la nisi_fw-la credamus_fw-la quòd_fw-la ipsum_fw-la verbum_fw-la caro_fw-la factum_fw-la sit_fw-la christ_n be_v not_o otherwise_o to_o be_v adore_v onlesse_a we_o believe_v 33._o that_o the_o very_a word_n be_v make_v flesh_n likewise_o saithe_v s._n augustine_n respice_fw-la altitudinem_fw-la ipsius_fw-la in_o principio_fw-la erat_fw-la verbum_fw-la etc._n etc._n behold_v the_o highness_n of_o he_o 1_o in_o the_o begin_v be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o god_n be_v that_o word_n behold_v the_o euerlastinge_a meat_n but_o the_o angel_n and_o high_a power_n and_o the_o heavenly_a spirit_n feed_v upon_o it_o but_o what_o man_n can_v atteyne_v unto_o that_o meat_n what_o heart_n can_v be_v meet_a for_o it_o therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o that_o meat_n shall_v turn_v into_o milk_n and_o so_o shall_v come_v unto_o we_o little_a one_o it_o follow_v quomodo_fw-la ergo_fw-la de_fw-la ipso_fw-la pane_n pavit_fw-la nos_fw-la sapientia_fw-la dei_fw-la quia_fw-la verbum_fw-la caro_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o habitavit_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la how_o then_o do_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n feed_v we_o with_o that_o bread_n he_o answer_v because_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o dwell_v in_o us._n again_o he_o saithe_v ita_fw-la verbum_fw-la incarnatum_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la nobis_fw-la receptibile_fw-la 109._o quod_fw-la recipere_fw-la non_fw-la valeremus_fw-la si_fw-la filius_fw-la aequalis_fw-la deo_fw-la non_fw-la se_fw-la exinaniret_fw-la formam_fw-la serui_fw-la accipiens_fw-la thus_o be_v we_o able_a to_o receive_v the_o word_n incarnate_a which_o we_o can_v not_o receive_v onlesse_a the_o son_n be_v equal_a unto_o the_o father_n have_v abase_v himself_o receivinge_v the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n i_o pass_v over_o other_o allegation_n to_o like_a purpose_n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o cyrillus_n we_o be_v not_o able_a neither_o to_o receive_v nor_o to_o believe_v in_o nor_o to_o adoure_n nor_o to_o eat_v nor_o to_o feed_v upon_o the_o divine_a majesty_n of_o god_n be_v pure_a and_o simple_a in_o itself_o but_o our_o knowledge_n our_o faith_n our_o food_n and_o our_o life_n be_v in_o this_o that_o christ_n have_v take_v our_o mortal_a nature_n and_o join_v the_o same_o inseparable_o in_o one_o person_n to_o his_o godhead_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .17_o division_n but_o it_o shall_v be_v more_o tedious_a than_o needful_a to_o recite_v place_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n for_o proufe_v of_o the_o adoration_n of_o christ_n there_o may_v of_o they_o be_v find_v so_o great_a plenty_n yet_o because_o luther_n be_v either_o so_o blind_a or_o rather_o so_o devilishe_a as_o to_o deny_v the_o adoration_n where_o notwithstanding_o he_o confess_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n true_a and_o natural_a body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n i_o will_v here_o recite_v what_o the_o sacramentary_n of_o zurich_n have_v write_v against_o he_o therefore_o what_o say_v they_o be_v the_o bread_n the_o true_a and_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v christ_n in_o the_o supper_n as_o the_o pope_n and_o luther_n do_v teach_v present_a wherefore_o then_o ought_v not_o the_o lord_n there_o to_o be_v adore_v where_o you_o say_v he_o to_o be_v present_a why_o shall_v we_o be_v forbid_v to_o adore_v that_o which_o be_v not_o only_o sacramental_o but_o also_o corporal_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n thomas_n touch_v the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o fall_n down_o on_o his_o knee_n adore_v sai_v my_o god_n and_o my_o lord_n the_o disciple_n adore_v the_o lord_n as_o well_o before_o 9_o as_o after_o his_o ascension_n matth._n 28._o act._n 1._o and_o the_o lord_n in_o s._n john_n saithe_v to_o the_o blind_a man_n beleve_v thou_o in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o he_o answer_v he_o saieinge_v lord_n who_o be_v he_o that_o i_o may_v believe_v in_o he_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o thou_o haste_v both_o see_v he_o and_z who_o speak_v with_o thou_o he_o it_o be_v then_o he_o saithe_v lord_n i_o believe_v and_o he_o adore_v he_o now_o if_o we_o be_v teach_v our_o lord_n bread_n to_o be_v the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n very_o we_o will_v adore_v it_o also_o faithful_o with_o the_o papist_n this_o much_o the_o zwinglians_n against_o luther_n whereby_o they_o prove_v sufficient_o the_o adoration_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o so_o consequent_o of_o christ_n himself_o god_n and_o man_n because_o of_o the_o inseparable_a conjunction_n of_o his_o divine_a and_o human_a nature_n in_o unity_n of_o person_n so_o as_o where_o his_o body_n be_v there_o be_v it_o join_v and_o unite_v also_o unto_o his_o godheade_n and_o so_o there_o christ_n be_v present_v perfect_o whole_o and_o substantial_o very_a god_n and_o man._n for_o the_o clear_a understand_v whereof_o the_o better_a to_o be_v attein_v the_o scholastical_a divine_n have_v profitable_o divise_v the_o term_n concomitantia_fw-la plain_o and_o true_o teachinge_a that_o in_o this_o sacrament_n after_o consecration_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n be_v present_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n his_o blood_n exit_fw-la vi_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la and_o with_o the_o body_n under_o form_n of_o bread_n also_o the_o blood_n the_o soul_n and_o godhead_n of_o christ_n and_o likewise_o with_o the_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n the_o body_n soul_n and_o godheade_n exit_fw-la concomitantia_fw-la as_o they_o term_v it_o in_o short_a and_o plain_a wise_n utteringe_v the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n 168_o ephesus_n which_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v in_o the_o ephesine_n council_n against_o nestorius_n whereby_o they_o mean_v that_o where_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a by_o necessary_a sequel_n because_o of_o the_o indivisible_a copulation_n of_o both_o nature_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o person_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o word_n make_v flesh_n never_o leafte_v the_o human_a nature_n there_o be_v also_o his_o blood_n his_o soul_n his_o godheade_n and_o so_o whole_a and_o perfect_a christ_n god_n and_o man._n and_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o term_n be_v not_o to_o be_v mislike_v of_o any_o godly_a learned_a man_n though_o some_o new_a master_n scoff_n at_o it_o who_o fille_fw-fr the_o measure_n of_o their_o predecessor_n that_o likewise_o have_v be_v offend_v with_o term_n for_o the_o apt_a declaration_n of_o certain_a necessary_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n by_o holy_a and_o learned_a father_n in_o general_a council_n holesome_o divise_v of_o which_o sort_n be_v these_o homoousion_n humanatio_n incarnatio_fw-la transubstantiatio_fw-la etc._n etc._n nowehere_n be_v to_o be_v note_v how_o the_o zwinglians_n who_o m._n jewel_n follow_v 12â5_n in_o the_o article_n of_o adoration_n confute_v the_o lutheran_n as_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o lutheran_n in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o presence_n confute_v the_o zwinglians_n as_o though_o it_o be_v by_o god_n special_a providence_n for_o the_o
divise_v but_o this_o name_n be_v confirm_v and_o stablissh_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a therefore_o m._n hardinge_n as_o well_o herein_o as_o also_o else_o where_o have_v report_v untruthe_n as_o for_o transubstantiation_n est_fw-la it_o be_v number_v here_o emonge_o these_o word_n homousios_n humanatio_n and_o incarnatio_fw-la as_o judas_n be_v number_v emonge_o the_o apostle_n god_n wot_v a_o very_a young_a name_n new_o bring_v at_o last_o into_o the_o world_n about_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n at_o what_o time_n king_n john_n be_v king_n of_o england_n neither_o have_v it_o any_o manner_n face_n or_o fundation_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v the_o same_o name_n give_v a_o long_a while_n before_o any_o such_o child_n be_v thorough_o bear_v for_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n the_o east_n church_n of_o graecia_n ultimâ_n and_o asia_n receive_v it_o not_o nor_o never_o will_v receive_v it_o until_o this_o day_n neither_o be_v the_o first_o inventor_n and_o diviser_n of_o it_o full_o resolve_v upon_o the_o same_o for_o this_o word_n transubstantiatio_fw-la signify_v a_o pass_v or_o turn_v of_o one_o substance_n into_o a_o other_o but_o that_o they_o think_v be_v not_o tolerable_a to_o say_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o therefore_o duns_n himself_o utter_o refuse_v and_o shun_v it_o and_o think_v it_o better_o to_o hold_v that_o the_o bread_n depart_v and_o geat_v itself_o away_o &_o that_o then_o in_o place_n of_o it_o succee_v christ_n body_n and_o this_o be_v now_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o school_n but_o this_o kind_n of_o change_n can_v in_o any_o wise_a be_v call_v transubstantiatio_fw-la but_o rather_o cessio_fw-la annihilatio_fw-la successio_fw-la or_o substitutio_fw-la therefore_o m._n harding_n must_v go_v and_o seek_v a_o new_a name_n for_o transubstantiation_n will_v not_o serve_v so_o well_o thus_o after_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n study_v they_o have_v find_v out_o a_o thing_n and_o yet_o can_v not_o hitherto_o tell_v what_o to_o make_v of_o it_o yet_o must_v their_o determination_n herein_o be_v compare_v even_o with_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a uery_o cardinal_n beno_n that_o be_v then_o alive_a say_v that_o pope_n gregory_n âildebrandi_fw-la 7._o appoint_v three_o day_n fast_o and_o a_o solemn_a procession_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v have_v some_o sign_n from_o heaven_n for_o the_o certainty_n hereof_o and_o yet_o in_o the_o end_n conclude_v without_o any_o revelation_n at_o al._n now_o touchinge_v this_o new_a fantasy_n of_o concomitantia_fw-la after_o they_o have_v once_o divise_v a_o new_a religion_n it_o be_v necessary_a for_o aid_v of_o the_o same_o to_o divise_v also_o new_a word_n where_o as_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n they_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o my_o blood_n where_o christ_n saithe_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n they_o say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n and_o my_o body_n and_o in_o either_o part_n they_o say_v be_v whole_a christ_n god_n and_o man._n if_o you_o demand_v how_o they_o know_v it_o they_o say_v not_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o by_o this_o new_a imagination_n of_o concomitantia_fw-la so_o likewise_o m._n harding_n here_o confess_v that_o he_o can_v prove_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o any_o warrant_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o only_o i_o trow_v by_o his_o concomitantia_fw-la m._n hardinge_n the_o .18_o division_n what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v in_o their_o time_n concern_v this_o article_n we_o may_v judge_v by_o that_o we_o read_v in_o dionysius_n that_o be_v s._n paul_n scholar_n and_o for_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v he_o adore_v and_o worship_v this_o holy_a mystery_n with_o these_o very_a word_n sedo_fw-la divinum_fw-la penitus_fw-la sanctumque_fw-la mysterium_fw-la etc._n etc._n 5._o but_o o_o divine_a and_o holy_a mystery_n which_o vouchesafe_v to_o open_v the_o cooveringe_n of_o sign_n lay_v over_o thou_o utter_v thy_o light_n to_o we_o open_o and_o plain_o and_o fill_v our_o spiritual_a eye_n with_o the_o singular_a and_o evident_a brightness_n of_o thy_o light_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n i_o marvel_v m._n harding_n will_v ever_o allege_v this_o place_n for_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o do_v he_o think_v that_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v so_o call_v upon_o be_v therefore_o adour_v with_o godly_a honour_n or_o have_v he_o forget_v that_o in_o his_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o use_v thus_o to_o salute_v the_o holy_a oil_n aue_fw-la sanctum_fw-la oleum_fw-la all-hail_n o_o holy_a oil_n or_o have_v he_o forget_v that_o he_o himself_o in_o his_o church_n thus_o salute_v a_o cross_n of_o wood_n aue_fw-la rex_fw-la noster_fw-la all-hail_n our_o king_n or_o that_o he_o make_v his_o prayer_n and_o petition_n to_o the_o same_o material_a wooden_a cross_n in_o this_o wise_a o_o crux_fw-la ave_fw-la spes_fw-la unica_fw-la hoc_fw-la passionis_fw-la tempore_fw-la auge_fw-mi pijs_fw-la iustitiam_fw-la reisque_fw-la dona_fw-la veniam_fw-la all-hail_n o_o cross_n our_o only_a hope_n in_o this_o time_n of_o the_o passion_n geâe_v thou_o increase_v of_o righteousness_n unto_o the_o godly_a and_o geve_v thou_o pardon_v unto_o sinner_n or_o shall_v we_o think_v therefore_o either_o that_o he_o geve_v godly_a honour_n unto_o a_o corruptible_a creature_n or_o that_o christ_n be_v there_o present_a hide_a under_o the_o form_n of_o wood_n this_o may_v suffice_v to_o answer_v this_o place_n of_o dionysius_n i_o think_v m._n hardinge_n do_v remember_v ãâã_d that_o epiphanius_n say_v the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o thing_n unsensible_a that_o can_v neither_o see_v we_o nor_o hear_v our_o prayer_n and_o he_o know_v that_o pachymeres_n the_o greek_a paraphrast_n in_o this_o sense_n expound_v the_o word_n of_o dionysius_n o_o divinum_fw-la &_o sacrum_n mysterium_fw-la affatur_fw-la illud_fw-la tanquam_fw-la rem_fw-la animatam_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o speak_v unto_o the_o sacrament_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n endue_v with_o sense_n and_o life_n and_o well_o for_o so_o gregory_n the_o great_a divine_a saithe_n o_o magnum_fw-la &_o sanctum_fw-la pascha_fw-la o_o great_a and_o holy_a passeover_n for_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v our_o passeover_n so_o be_v he_o that_o holy_a mystery_n and_o unto_o he_o the_o bishop_n direct_v his_o speech_n unto_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n not_o unto_o the_o thing_n that_o present_o lie_v before_o he_o upon_o the_o table_n and_o that_o this_o be_v dionysius_n very_a meaning_n it_o appear_v by_o that_o immediate_o go_v before_o ingrediamur_fw-la ab_fw-la effectis_fw-la ad_fw-la causas_fw-la let_v we_o enter_v from_o these_o outward_a effect_n into_o the_o cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v let_v we_o withdraw_v our_o eye_n from_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n and_o spiritual_o let_v we_o behold_v christ_n who_o sacrament_n they_o be_v and_o who_o by_o the_o same_o be_v represent_v in_o like_a manner_n dionysius_n speak_v of_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o oil_n adducamus_fw-la vela_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v we_o remove_v the_o veles_a and_o behold_v that_o spiritual_a brightness_n itself_o etc._n etc._n by_o which_o spiritual_a brightness_n doubteles_o he_o mean_v christ_n thus_o he_o teach_v we_o with_o our_o bodily_a eye_n to_o see_v one_o thing_n and_o with_o our_o spiritual_a eye_n to_o see_v a_o other_o with_o our_o bodily_a eye_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v present_a with_o our_o spiritual_a eye_n andrea_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v absent_a for_o the_o more_o likelihood_n hereof_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o word_n s._n andrew_n use_v to_o the_o very_a material_a wooden_a cross_n of_o his_o execution_n salue_fw-la crux_fw-la etc._n etc._n all-hail_n thou_o cross_n that_o here_o stand_v thus_o long_o look_v for_o i_o i_o come_v merry_o unto_o thou_o for_o i_o know_v thy_o secrecy_n i_o know_v thy_o mystery_n i_o see_v in_o thou_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v promise_v unto_o i_o of_o my_o lord_n receive_v thou_o i_o o_o thou_o choose_a cross_n that_o be_o thus_o humble_a for_o my_o god_n and_o help_v the_o poor_a servant_n unto_o his_o master_n here_o be_v plain_a word_n of_o invocation_n here_o be_v manifest_a adoration_n yet_o may_v the_o force_n of_o these_o word_n make_v we_o believe_v that_o s._n andrew_n in_o deed_n give_v godly_a honour_n to_o a_o cross_n of_o tree_n but_o because_o m._n hardinge_n seem_v to_o make_v some_o account_n of_o this_o place_n of_o dionysius_n let_v we_o answer_v one_o mystery_n by_o a_o other_o s._n ambrose_n speak_v thus_o to_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n 22._o o_o aqua_fw-la quae_fw-la humano_fw-la aspersum_fw-la sanguine_fw-la etc._n etc._n o_o thou_o water_n that_o have_v wash_v the_o world_n stain_v with_o man_n blood_n o_o thou_o water_n that_o deserue_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n thou_o begin_v thou_o fulfille_v the_o perfect_a mystery_n etc._n
etc._n must_v we_o needs_o think_v because_o s._n ambrose_n thus_o speak_v unto_o and_o call_v upon_o the_o water_n that_o therefore_o either_o the_o water_n have_v ear_n and_o hear_v he_o or_o christ_n himself_o be_v there_o corporal_o present_a in_o the_o water_n doubtelesse_a both_o bread_n and_o water_n be_v material_a element_n and_o void_a of_o life_n therefore_o as_o s._n ambrose_n speak_v unto_o the_o one_o even_o so_o &_o none_o otherwise_o do_v dionysius_n speak_v unto_o the_o other_o but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o m._n hardinge_n seem_v for_o amphilochius_n sake_n to_o brook_v well_o all_o news_n that_o come_v from_o uerona_n let_v we_o see_v with_o what_o devotion_n they_o teach_v we_o there_o to_o call_v upon_o our_o lady_n girdle_n the_o word_n of_o the_o prayer_n be_v these_o o_o veneranda_fw-la zona_fw-la fac_n nos_fw-la haeredes_fw-la aeternae_fw-la &_o beatae_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la et_fw-la hanc_fw-la nostram_fw-la vitam_fw-la ab_fw-la interitu_fw-la conserua_fw-la tuam_fw-la haereditatem_fw-la tuum_fw-la populum_fw-la o_o intemeratae_fw-la zona_fw-la intemerata_fw-la conserua_fw-la habeamus_fw-la te_fw-la vires_fw-la &_o auxilium_fw-la murum_fw-la &_o propugnaculum_fw-la portum_fw-la &_o salutare_fw-la refugium_fw-la o_o blissed_a girdle_n make_v we_o the_o enheretour_n of_o euerlastinge_a and_o bliss_v life_n and_o keep_v our_o present_a life_n from_o destruction_n o_o unspotted_a girdle_n of_o the_o unspotted_a virgin_n save_o thy_o inheritance_n o_o save_o thy_o people_n be_v thou_o our_o strengthe_n our_o help_n our_o waââe_n our_o fort_n our_o heaven_n our_o refuge_n this_o prayer_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o one_o euthymus_n as_o it_o be_v suppose_v a_o ancient_a learned_a greek_a father_n set_v forth_o this_o last_o year_n by_o aloysius_n lipomanus_n the_o bishop_n of_o uerona_n and_o print_v both_o in_o venice_n &_o in_o louvain_n in_o two_o great_a huge_a volume_n of_o like_a stuff_n and_o jest_n the_o matter_n shall_v seem_v to_o want_n earnest_n the_o good_a catholic_a father_n and_o learned_a bishop_n of_o uerona_n lipomanus_n have_v special_o mark_v the_o place_n in_o the_o margin_n in_o this_o sort_n o_o quà m_fw-la magna_fw-la &_o mira_fw-la petit_fw-la à _fw-la veneranda_fw-la zona_fw-la o_o how_o great_a and_o how_o marvelous_a thing_n he_o desire_v of_o this_o blissed_a girdle_n all_o this_o notwithstanding_o i_o trow_v m._n hardinge_n will_v not_o say_v that_o either_o euthymius_n or_o lipomanus_n will_v have_v we_o to_o worship_n our_o lady_n girdle_n with_o godly_a honour_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .19_o division_n origen_n teach_v we_o how_o to_o adoure_v and_o worship_n christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n before_o we_o receive_v it_o after_o this_o form_n of_o word_n quando_fw-la sanctum_fw-la cibum_fw-la etc._n etc._n locos_fw-la when_o thou_o receive_v the_o holy_a meat_n and_o that_o uncorrupte_v banquet_n when_o thou_o enjoy_v the_o bread_n and_o cup_n of_o life_n thou_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n then_o our_o lord_n enter_v in_o under_o they_o roof_n and_o therefore_o thou_o also_o humblinge_a thyself_o follow_v this_o centurion_n or_o capitaine_n and_o say_v lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a that_o thou_o enter_v under_o my_o roof_n for_o where_o he_o enter_v in_o unworthy_o there_o he_o enter_v in_o to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o receiver_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n o_o how_o easy_a a_o matter_n it_o be_v to_o deceive_v the_o ignorant_a origen_n in_o that_o whole_a place_n speak_v not_o one_o word_n neither_o of_o worshippinge_n the_o sacrament_n nor_o of_o christ_n real_a 8._o corporal_n be_v therein_o nor_o of_o his_o material_a entere_v into_o our_o body_n but_o take_v occasion_n of_o the_o centurion_n 7._o that_o think_v himself_o unworthy_a to_o receive_v christ_n into_o his_o house_n he_o show_v by_o what_o way_n and_o mean_n christ_n use_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o faitheful_a and_o two_o special_a way_n he_o express_o name_v in_o that_o place_n the_o one_o when_o any_o godly_a man_n come_v to_o we_o the_o other_o when_o we_o receive_v the_o holy_a communion_n his_o word_n be_v these_o quando_fw-la sancti_fw-la &_o deo_fw-la acceptabiles_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la antistites_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o holy_a bishop_n acceptable_a unto_o god_n enter_v into_o thy_o house_n then_o by_o they_o the_o lord_n do_v enter_v and_o be_v thou_o persuade_v that_o thou_o receive_v god_a himself_o an_o other_o mean_a be_v when_o thou_o receive_v that_o incorruptible_a and_o holy_a banquet_n thus_o by_o this_o holy_a father_n judgement_n as_o christ_n enter_v into_o we_o by_o a_o bishop_n or_o holy_a man_n even_o so_o he_o enter_v into_o we_o by_o the_o receivinge_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n and_o so_o likewise_o he_o say_v in_o the_o first_o homily_n of_o the_o same_o book_n per_fw-la euangelistatum_fw-la 1._o &_o apostolorum_fw-la praedicationem_fw-la etc._n etc._n god_n be_v with_o we_o by_o the_o preachinge_a of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o holy_a body_n and_o blood_n and_o by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o glorious_a crosse._n by_o all_o these_o thing_n god_n come_v to_o we_o 28._o and_o be_v in_o we_o as_o he_o himself_o say_v behold_v i_o be_o with_o yowe_o all_o day_n until_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n thus_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n when_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n be_v lift_v up_o 10._o it_o seem_v god_n himself_o be_v lift_v up_o and_o therefore_o in_o liftinge_v up_o thereof_o the_o priest_n say_v exurgat_fw-la deus_fw-la let_v the_o lord_n arise_v 4._o &_o when_o the_o ark_n be_v bring_v into_o the_o camp_n they_o say_v god_n himself_o be_v come_v and_o when_o the_o ark_n be_v take_v they_o say_v the_o glory_n of_o israel_n be_v take_v neither_o may_v we_o think_v that_o origen_n mean_v any_o corporal_n or_o real_a entere_v of_o christ_n into_o our_o house_n his_o own_o word_n 5._o and_o exposition_n be_v to_o the_o contrary_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v in_o the_o same_o place_n tantùm_fw-la dic_fw-la verbo_fw-la tantùm_fw-la veni_fw-la verbo_fw-la verbum_fw-la aspectus_fw-la tuus_fw-la est_fw-la opusque_fw-la est_fw-la consummatum_fw-la ostende_v absens_fw-la corpore_fw-la 14._o quod_fw-la praesens_fw-la spiritu_fw-la consummare_fw-la potes_fw-la only_o o_o lord_n speak_v thou_o the_o word_n only_o come_v by_o thy_o word_n thy_o word_n be_v thy_o sight_n and_o a_o perfect_a work_n be_v absent_a in_o thy_o body_n show_n that_o thou_o be_v able_a to_o make_v perfect_a be_v present_a in_o spirit_n so_o say_v christ_n i_o and_o my_o father_n will_v come_v unto_o he_o and_o will_v make_v our_o abode_n in_o he_o in_o which_o word_n we_o may_v not_o conceive_v any_o material_a or_o corporal_a come_n therefore_o when_o so_o ever_o christ_n enter_v thus_o into_o our_o house_n whether_o it_o be_v by_o some_o holy_a man_n or_o by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n or_o by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n 50._o or_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v by_o faith_n or_o by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n origen_n teach_v we_o to_o humble_v our_o heart_n &_o to_o say_v at_o every_o such_o come_n or_o presence_n o_o lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a that_o thou_o shall_v thus_o enter_v into_o my_o house_n if_o m._n hardinge_n will_v gather_v hereof_o that_o origen_n teach_v we_o to_o adoure_v the_o sacrament_n then_o must_v he_o also_o say_v that_o origen_n likewise_o teach_v we_o to_o adoure_v the_o bishop_n heaven_n or_o any_o other_o godly_a man_n and_o that_o even_o as_o god_n and_o with_o godly_a honour_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .20_o division_n what_o can_v be_v think_v of_o s._n cyprian_n but_o that_o he_o adore_v the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o this_o sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n seinge_v that_o he_o confess_v the_o godheade_n to_o be_v in_o the_o same_o âª_o no_o less_o than_o it_o be_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o utter_v by_o these_o word_n panis_n iste_fw-la quem_fw-la dominus_fw-la discipulis_fw-la porrigebat_fw-la etc._n etc._n domini_fw-la this_o bread_n which_o our_o lord_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n change_v not_o in_o shape_n but_o in_o nature_n by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o as_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n the_o manhood_n be_v see_v and_o the_o godhead_n be_v hide_v even_o so_o the_o divine_a essence_n have_v unspeakeable_o infuse_v itself_o into_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n this_o place_n of_o s._n cyprian_n be_v often_o allege_v by_o m._n hardinge_n as_o matter_n invincible_a and_o to_o answer_v it_o several_o in_o every_o place_n it_o will_v be_v tedious_a wherefore_o i_o think_v it_o good_a to_o refer_v thou_o gentle_a reader_n to_o the_o second_o division_n of_o the_o ten_o article_n and_o to_o the_o four_o division_n of_o the_o .21_o article_n where_o it_o shall_v be_v answer_v more_o at_o large_a how_o be_v it_o thus_o much_o we_o may_v note_v by_o
earth_n earth_n heaven_n because_o flesh_n be_v of_o earth_n and_o of_o the_o flesh_n of_o marie_n he_o take_v flesh_n and_o because_o he_o walk_v here_o in_o flesh_n and_o that_o very_a flesh_n he_o give_v we_o to_o eat_v to_o salvation_n and_o noman_n eat_v that_o flesh_n except_o first_o he_o adore_v it_o it_o be_v find_v out_o how_o such_o a_o footstool_n of_o our_o lord_n may_v be_v adore_v and_o how_o we_o not_o only_a sin_n not_o by_o adoringe_v but_o sin_n by_o not_o adoringe_v do_v not_o the_o flesh_n quicken_v and_o geve_v life_n our_o lord_n himself_o say_v when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o commendation_n itself_o of_o that_o earth_n 6._o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o quicken_v but_o the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o therefore_o when_o thou_o bow_v thou_o self_n and_o fall_v down_o to_o every_o such_o earth_n behold_v it_o not_o as_o earth_n but_o that_o holy_a one_o who_o footstool_n it_o be_v that_o thou_o do_v adore_v for_o because_o of_o he_o thou_o do_v adore_v and_o therefore_o here_o he_o add_v adore_v you_o his_o footstool_n because_o it_o be_v holy_a who_o be_v holy_a he_z for_o who_o love_n thou_o adore_v his_o footstool_n and_o when_o thou_o adore_v he_o remain_v not_o by_o cogitation_n in_o flesh_n that_o thou_o be_v not_o quicken_v of_o the_o spirit_n for_o the_o spirit_n saithe_v he_o quicken_v and_o the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o and_o then_o when_o our_o lord_n commend_v this_o unto_o we_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o his_o flesh_n and_o have_v say_v except_o a_o man_n eat_v my_o flesh_n he_o shall_v not_o have_v in_o he_o life_n euerlastinge_a the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n s._n ambrose_n and_o s._n augustine_n as_o they_o agree_v together_o for_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o psalm_n so_o touchinge_v the_o matter_n itself_o neither_o do_v they_o any_o wise_a disagree_v from_o we_o nor_o any_o wise_a agree_v with_o m._n hardinge_n they_o teach_v we_o humble_o to_o adoure_n christ_n flesh_n but_o they_o teach_v we_o not_o to_o adoure_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n flesh_n thus_o m._n hardinge_n have_v take_v a_o néedeles_a labour_n to_o prove_v a_o matter_n that_o be_v already_o prove_v but_o the_o thing_n that_o he_o shall_v have_v prove_v he_o touch_v not_o this_o be_v to_o bold_a abusinge_n of_o the_o simple_a reader_n to_o bear_v he_o in_o hand_n that_o these_o godly_a father_n teach_v we_o to_o adoure_v the_o sacrament_n that_o speak_v not_o one_o word_n of_o adouringe_v the_o sacrament_n but_o m._n hardinge_n will_v say_v we_o must_v adoure_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n we_o grant_v we_o believe_v it_o it_o be_v our_o faith_n we_o teach_v the_o people_n as_o the_o old_a learned_a father_n do_v that_o noman_n eat_v that_o flesh_n but_o first_o he_o adour_v it_o and_o that_o he_o deadly_o offend_v god_n and_o be_v wicked_a and_o guilty_a of_o the_o lord_n body_n that_o adour_v it_o not_o but_o as_o we_o eat_v it_o so_o we_o adoure_v it_o we_o eat_v it_o sittinge_n in_o heaven_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n thither_o we_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n and_o there_o we_o adoure_v it_o s._n ambrose_n saithe_v magdaââna_n stephanus_n in_o terris_fw-la positus_fw-la christum_n tangit_fw-la in_o coelo_fw-la steven_n stand_a in_o the_o earth_n touch_v christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n again_o he_o saithe_v non_fw-la corporali_fw-la tactu_fw-la christum_n sed_fw-la fide_fw-la tangimus_fw-la we_o touch_v christ_n by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o corporal_n touch_v and_o as_o we_o touch_v christ_n 24._o so_o we_o see_v he_o that_o be_v with_o the_o spiritual_a eye_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o not_o otherwise_o so_o s._n ambrose_n saithe_v in_o the_o place_n before_o allege_v stephanus_n intra_fw-la coelos_n dominum_fw-la cernit_fw-la absentem_fw-la magdalena_n steven_n see_v christ_n be_v absente_a within_o the_o heaven_n and_o for_o proufe_v hereof_o that_o all_o that_o glorious_a ââght_n be_v mere_a spiritual_n and_o not_o offer_v to_o the_o corporal_a eye_n of_o the_o body_n s._n augustine_n say_v that_o s._n steven_n stand_v then_o under_o a_o roof_n before_o the_o judge_n 42._o and_o see_v the_o heaven_n open_a when_o with_o his_o bodily_a eye_n he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o look_v up_o and_o to_o see_v the_o heaven_n there_o we_o see_v christ_n body_n there_o we_o approache_v unto_o it_o there_o we_o touch_v it_o there_o we_o taste_v it_o there_o we_o eat_v it_o there_o we_o adoure_v it_o and_o doothe_v m._n hardinge_n think_v that_o the_o religion_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o gross_a and_o so_o sensible_a that_o we_o can_v eat_v or_o adoure_v his_o body_n onlesse_a it_o lie_v corporal_o present_a before_o our_o eye_n 3_o uery_o s._n augustine_n saithe_v si_fw-la resurrexistis_fw-la cum_fw-la christo_fw-la dicit_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la dicit_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la domini_fw-la accipientibus_fw-la si_fw-la resurrexistis_fw-la cum_fw-la christo_fw-la que_fw-la sursum_fw-la sunt_fw-la sapite_fw-la ubi_fw-la christus_fw-la est_fw-la in_o dextra_fw-la dei_fw-la sedens_fw-la quae_fw-la sursum_fw-la sunt_fw-la quaerite_fw-la non_fw-la quae_fw-la super_fw-la terram_fw-la if_o you_o be_v rise_v again_o with_o christ_n s._n paul_n saithe_v unto_o the_o faitheful_a and_o unto_o they_o that_o receive_v the_o body_n ând_v blood_n of_o christ_n if_o you_o be_v rise_v again_o with_o christ_n saver_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v above_o where_o christ_n be_v sittinge_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n seek_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v above_o and_o not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o in_o this_o very_a place_n by_o m._n hardinge_n allege_v he_o saithe_v 98._o spiritualiter_fw-la intelligite_fw-la quod_fw-la locutus_fw-la sum_fw-la non_fw-la hoc_fw-la corpus_fw-la quod_fw-la videtis_fw-la manducaturi_fw-la estis_fw-la understand_v you_o spiritual_o that_o i_o have_v say_v unto_o you_o you_o shall_v not_o eat_v with_o your_o bodily_a mouth_n this_o body_n of_o i_o that_o you_o see_v thus_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o same_o place_n expound_v and_o open_v his_o own_o meaning_n doubtless_o as_o the_o wicked_a may_v dishonour_v christ_n so_o may_v the_o godly_a honour_n he_o but_o the_o wicked_a as_o s._n paul_n say_v do_v crucify_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v in_o heaven_n 6._o and_o christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n saithe_v unto_o paul_n be_v in_o the_o earth_n benethe_v 9_o saul_n saul_n why_o do_v thou_o persecute_v i_o therefore_o the_o godly_a be_v in_o earth_n may_v likewise_o adoure_v and_o honour_n christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n but_o they_o will_v reply_v s._n ambrose_n saithe_v we_o do_v adoure_n christ_n flesh_n in_o the_o mystery_n hereof_o grow_v their_o whole_a error_n for_o s._n ambrose_n saithe_v not_o we_o do_v adoure_v the_o mystery_n or_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n really_n present_a or_o material_o contain_v in_o the_o mystery_n as_o it_o be_v suppose_v by_o m._n hardinge_n only_o he_o saithe_v we_o adoure_v christ_n flesh_n in_o the_o mystery_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o mystery_n and_o doubtelesse_a it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o adoure_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o where_o so_o ever_o we_o see_v any_o step_n or_o token_n of_o it_o but_o special_o in_o the_o holy_a mystery_n for_o that_o there_o be_v lively_o lay_v forth_o before_o we_o the_o whole_a story_n of_o christ_n conversation_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o this_o adoration_n as_o it_o be_v say_v before_o neither_o be_v direct_v to_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o require_v any_o corporal_n or_o real_a presence_n so_o s._n hierome_n saithe_v eustochi_n paula_n adour_v christ_n in_o the_o stalle_n and_o that_o he_o himself_o adour_v christ_n in_o the_o grave_n and_o s._n chrysostome_n teach_v we_o to_o adoure_v christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n yet_o neither_o be_v christ_n body_n then_o real_o present_v in_o the_o stalle_n 14._o or_o grave_n nor_o be_v it_o now_o present_a in_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n thus_o s._n ambrose_n saithe_v we_o adoure_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o mystery_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .23_o division_n again_o s._n augustine_n show_v the_o manner_n and_o custom_n of_o his_o time_n touchinge_v the_o adoration_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n write_n thus_o ad_fw-la honoraâum_fw-la upon_o the_o verse_n of_o the_o .21_o psalm_n edent_fw-la pauperes_fw-la 21._o &_o saturabuntur_fw-la that_o be_v the_o poor_a shall_v eat_v and_o be_v fill_v and_o upon_o that_o other_o manducaverunt_fw-la &_o adoraverunt_fw-la omnes_fw-la divites_fw-la terrae_fw-la all_o the_o rich_a of_o the_o earth_n have_v eat_v and_o adore_v it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n say_v he_o that_o the_o scotfree_a and_o the_o poor_a be_v so_o distincted_a that_o of_o the_o poor_a it_o be_v say_v before_o the_o poor_a shall_v eat_v and_o be_v fill_v and_o here_o of_o
prosperi_n auten_o we_o do_v honour_n saithe_v he_o bread_n in_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o we_o see_v thing_n invisible_a that_o be_v to_o say_v flesh_n and_o blood_n before_o neither_o take_v we_o likewise_o these_o two_o form_n as_o we_o take_v they_o before_o consecration_n sith_o that_o we_o do_v faithful_o grant_n that_o before_o consecration_n it_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n which_o nature_n have_v shape_v but_o after_o consecration_n flesh_n and_o âloud_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o priest_n have_v consecrate_a the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n first_o this_o authority_n here_o allege_v be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v neither_o in_o s._n augustine_n in_o who_o name_n it_o be_v bring_v nor_o in_o the_o sentence_n of_o prosper_n as_o for_o gratian_n m._n hardinge_n know_v he_o be_v a_o common_a falsifier_n of_o the_o doctor_n and_o therefore_o his_o credit_n in_o such_o case_n can_v be_v great_a notwithstanding_o touchinge_v the_o matter_n we_o know_v that_o bread_n wine_n and_o water_n of_o themselves_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o corruptible_a and_o simple_a creature_n if_o we_o conceive_v none_o otherwise_o of_o they_o than_o they_o be_v of_o themselves_o than_o all_o our_o sacrament_n be_v in_o vain_a therefore_o the_o godly_a father_n labour_n evermore_o to_o draw_v we_o from_o the_o outward_a visible_a creature_n to_o the_o meaning_n &_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 3._o and_o to_o that_o end_n s._n augustine_n saithe_v in_o sacramentis_fw-la videndum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la quid_fw-la sint_fw-la sed_fw-la quid_fw-la significent_fw-la in_o sacrament_n we_o must_v consider_v not_o what_o they_o be_v in_o deed_n but_o what_o they_o signify_v so_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a monachus_fw-la vides_fw-la aquam_fw-la cogita_fw-la divinam_fw-la vim_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o aqua_fw-la lateâ_n see_v thou_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n it_o be_v not_o that_o it_o be_v before_o consider_v thou_o that_o heavenly_a power_n that_o lie_v hide_v in_o the_o water_n so_o chrysostome_n say_v antequam_fw-la sanctificetur_fw-la panis_n panem_fw-la nominamus_fw-la divina_fw-la autem_fw-la sanctificante_fw-la illum_fw-la gratia_n mediante_fw-la sacerdote_fw-la liberatus_fw-la est_fw-la quidem_fw-la ab_fw-la appellatione_fw-la panis_n dignus_fw-la autem_fw-la habitus_fw-la est_fw-la dominici_n corporis_fw-la appellatione_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la natura_fw-la panis_n in_o illo_fw-la remaâserit_fw-la the_o bread_n before_o it_o be_v sanctify_v be_v call_v bread_n but_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o heavenly_a grace_n by_o mean_a of_o the_o priest_n it_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o name_n of_o bread_n and_o think_v worthy_a of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n notwithstanding_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n remain_v in_o it_o stil._n thus_o as_o chrysostome_n say_v the_o bread_n remain_v still_o bread_n in_o his_o former_a kind_a &_o substance_n without_o any_o such_o transubstantiation_n or_o change_v of_o nature_n as_o be_v now_o imagine_v the_o word_n be_v plain_a m._n hardinge_n can_v deny_v they_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v not_o the_o thing_n it_o be_v before_o because_o it_o be_v also_o call_v the_o lord_n body_n so_o likewise_o saithe_v s._n augustine_n quicunque_fw-la in_o manna_n christum_n intellexerunt_fw-la poenitentiae_fw-la eundem_fw-la quem_fw-la nos_fw-la 10._o spiritualem_fw-la cibum_fw-la manducarunt_fw-la as_o many_o eucharistiae_fw-la as_o in_o manna_n understand_v christ_n they_o do_v eat_v the_o same_o spiritual_a meat_n that_o we_o eat_v that_o be_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o unto_o they_o manna_n be_v christ_n body_n and_o not_o the_o same_o thing_n it_o be_v before_o and_o for_o better_a declaration_n hereof_o bertramus_n saithe_v christus_fw-la ut_fw-la nunc_fw-la panem_fw-la convertit_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la suum_fw-la ita_fw-la tum_fw-la manna_n de_fw-la coelo_fw-la datum_fw-la suum_fw-la corpus_fw-la inuisibiliter_fw-la operatus_fw-la est_fw-la christ_n as_o he_o now_o turn_v the_o bread_n into_o his_o body_n even_o so_o then_o in_o like_a sort_n the_o manna_n that_o fall_v from_o heaven_n invisible_o he_o make_v his_o body_n thus_o as_o the_o bread_n be_v christ_n body_n even_o so_o be_v manna_n christ_n body_n and_o that_o invisible_o and_o by_o the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o god_n thus_o be_v the_o element_n of_o manna_n of_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o wine_n and_o of_o the_o water_n change_v and_o be_v not_o as_o they_o be_v before_o and_o therefore_o in_o every_o of_o the_o same_o we_o honour_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n invisible_a not_o as_o real_o and_o fleashe_o present_a but_o as_o be_v in_o heaven_n this_o whole_a matter_n and_o the_o cause_n thereof_o s._n augustine_n seem_v to_o open_v in_o this_o wise_a 26._o signacula_fw-la quidem_fw-la rerum_fw-la divinarum_fw-la esse_fw-la visibilia_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v the_o new_a christen_v man_n be_v teach_v that_o sacrament_n be_v visible_a sign_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o that_o the_o thing_n themselves_o that_o he_o seethe_v not_o must_v be_v honour_v in_o they_o and_o that_o the_o same_o kind_a and_o element_n bread_n wine_n or_o water_n be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v take_v as_o it_o be_v in_o daily_o use_v let_v he_o also_o be_v teach_v what_o the_o word_n mean_v that_o he_o have_v hear_v and_o what_o be_v hide_v and_o to_o be_v beleve_v in_o christ_n who_o image_n or_o likeness_n that_o thing_n that_o be_v that_o sacrament_n bear_v he_o add_v further_a deinde_fw-la monendus_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la hac_fw-la occasione_n ut_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o scripture_n audiat_fw-la quod_fw-la carnaliter_fw-la sonnet_n etiamsi_fw-la non_fw-la intelligat_fw-la credat_fw-la tamen_fw-la spiritual_fw-la aliquid_fw-la significari_fw-la moreover_o upon_o occasion_n hereof_o he_o must_v be_v teach_v that_o if_o he_o hear_v any_o thing_n even_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o sound_o carnal_o yet_o âe_v think_v there_o be_v some_o spiritual_a thing_n mean_v by_o it_o m._n hardinge_n the_o .26_o division_n leave_v a_o number_n of_o place_n that_o may_v be_v allege_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o matter_n to_o avoid_v tediousness_n i_o will_v conclude_v with_o that_o most_o plain_a place_n of_o theodoretus_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o outward_a sign_n of_o the_o sacrament_n saithe_n that_o notwithstanding_o they_o remain_v after_o the_o mystical_a blessing_n 171_o honour_n in_o the_o propriety_n of_o their_o former_a nature_n as_o those_o that_o may_v be_v see_v and_o feel_v no_o less_o than_o before_o yet_o they_o be_v understand_v and_o believe_v to_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v make_v by_o virtue_n of_o consecration_n and_o be_v woorship_v with_o godly_a honour_n his_o word_n be_v these_o 2._o intelliguntur_fw-la ea_fw-la esse_fw-la quae_fw-la facta_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o creduntur_fw-la &_o adorantur_fw-la ut_fw-la quae_fw-la illa_fw-la âânt_fw-la quae_fw-la creduntur_fw-la these_o mystical_a sign_n saithe_v he_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v make_v and_o so_o they_o be_v believe_v and_o be_v adore_v as_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v with_o which_o word_n theodoretus_n affirm_v both_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o also_o the_o adoration_n the_o real_a presence_n in_o that_o he_o saithe_v these_o outward_a sign_n or_o token_n after_o consecration_n to_o be_v make_v thing_n which_o be_v not_o see_v but_o understand_v and_o believe_v whereby_o he_o signify_v the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o this_o sacrament_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n adoration_n he_o teach_v with_o express_a term_n and_o that_o because_o through_o power_n of_o the_o mystical_a blissinge_v the_o sign_n be_v in_o existence_n and_o in_o deed_n the_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v beleve_v to_o be_v soothe_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o otherwise_o god_n forbid_v that_o christian_a people_n shall_v be_v teach_v to_o adore_v and_o worship_n the_o insensible_a creature_n bread_n and_o wine_n of_o which_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v adore_v not_o as_o sign_n not_o so_o in_o no_o wise_a but_o as_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v now_o i_o report_v i_o to_o the_o christian_a reader_n whether_o this_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n whereby_o we_o mean_v the_o godly_a worship_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o new_a devise_n or_o no_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n but_o late_o about_o three_o hundred_o year_n past_a as_o m._n jewel_n make_v himself_o sure_a of_o it_o in_o his_o sermon_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n by_o these_o word_n of_o theodorete_n m._n hardinge_n think_v himself_o able_a to_o prove_v both_o real_a presence_n and_o also_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o i_o doubt_n not_o but_o the_o discrete_a reader_n shall_v soon_o perceive_v he_o have_v prove_v as_o well_o the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o touchinge_v real_a presence_n theodoretus_n speak_v nothing_o no_o not_o one_o word_n his_o manner_n of_o speech_n seem_v rather_o to_o incline_v to_o
sequel_n in_o nature_n and_o by_o âª_o drift_n of_o reason_n that_o then_o the_o accident_n only_o remain_v for_o witness_v and_o proufe_v whereof_o i_o will_v not_o let_v to_o recite_v certain_a most_o manifest_a sayeinge_n of_o the_o old_a and_o best_a approve_a doctor_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n m._n hardinge_n grant_v that_o this_o doctrine_n have_v no_o express_a authority_n by_o precise_a term_n neither_o in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o in_o the_o ancient_a council_n nor_o in_o any_o old_a father_n greek_a or_o latin_a yet_o the_o old_a father_n both_o greek_n &_o latin_n in_o their_o kind_n be_v count_v eloquent_a &_o be_v think_v âable_a to_o utter_v their_o doctrine_n in_o express_a and_o precise_a word_n if_o there_o have_v be_v then_o any_o such_o doctrine_n receive_v in_o the_o church_n wherefore_o find_v herein_o such_o want_n of_o all_o antiquity_n we_o may_v be_v bold_a express_o and_o in_o precise_a term_n to_o say_v this_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o very_a new_a doctrine_n restinge_v only_o upon_o a_o false_a position_n and_o a_o little_a colour_a with_o drift_n of_o reason_n which_o reason_n notwithstanding_o never_o enter_v into_o man_n head_n within_o a_o whole_a thousand_o year_n after_o that_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v preach_v by_o like_a position_n and_o by_o like_a drift_n the_o old_a heretic_n the_o manichee_n hold_v that_o all_o that_o outward_o appear_v in_o christ_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o accident_n that_o be_v as_o m._n hardinge_n himself_o expound_v it_o the_o form_n the_o shape_n the_o colour_n the_o weight_n and_o so_o in_o deed_n nothing_o else_o but_o the_o show_n and_o appearance_n and_o fantasy_n of_o a_o body_n from_o such_o doctor_n it_o appear_v these_o man_n have_v receive_v their_o new_a doctrine_n for_o doctor_n tonstal_n confess_v it_o be_v first_o determine_v in_o the_o council_n of_o laterane_n 40._o which_o be_v hold_v in_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n a_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o fifteen_o and_o that_o before_o that_o time_n it_o be_v evermore_o free_a for_o any_o man_n without_o empeachement_n of_o his_o faith_n to_o hold_v the_o contrary_n likewise_o m._n hardinge_n own_o doctor_n gabriel_n biel_n say_v quomodo_fw-la ibi_fw-la sit_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la a_o per_fw-la conuersionem_fw-la alicuius_fw-la in_o illud_fw-la a_o sine_fw-la conuersione_n incipiat_fw-la esse_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la cum_fw-la pane_n manentibus_fw-la substantia_fw-la &_o accidentibus_fw-la panis_n non_fw-la invenitur_fw-la expressum_fw-la in_o canone_o bibliae_fw-la in_o what_o sort_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o the_o turn_n of_o any_o thing_n into_o that_o or_o without_o any_o turn_n or_o transubstantiation_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n begin_v to_o be_v there_o together_o with_o the_o bread_n both_o the_o substance_n and_o accident_n of_o the_o bread_n remaininge_n it_o be_v not_o find_v express_v in_o the_o scripture_n so_o likewise_o duns_n himself_o say_v 2._o de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la tenendum_fw-la est_fw-la sicut_fw-la tenet_fw-la sancta_fw-la romana_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la nam_fw-la verba_fw-la scripturae_fw-la possent_fw-la saluari_fw-la secundum_fw-la intellectum_fw-la facilem_fw-la &_o veriorem_fw-la secundum_fw-la apparentiam_fw-la touchinge_v the_o sacrament_n body_n we_o must_v hold_v as_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n hold_v for_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v save_v without_o transubstantiation_n by_o a_o easy_a and_o true_a âª_o understand_v in_o appearance_n thus_o it_o appear_v by_o d._n tonstal_n that_o this_o doctrine_n have_v no_o ground_n of_o antiquity_n and_o by_o biel_n and_o scotus_n that_o it_o have_v no_o certain_a authority_n of_o god_n word_n upon_o this_o fundation_n which_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n be_v uncertain_a m._n hardinge_n build_v up_o the_o whole_a certainty_n of_o this_o article_n but_o he_o will_v reply_v christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n so_o the_o arian_n heretic_n be_v able_a to_o allege_v as_o many_o and_o as_o plain_a word_n of_o christ_n pater_fw-la maior_fw-la i_o est_fw-la my_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o neither_o ever_o be_v there_o any_o heresy_n so_o gross_a but_o be_v able_a to_o make_v some_o simple_a show_n of_o god_n word_n but_o christ_n say_v not_o this_o bread_n be_v now_o no_o bread_n or_o this_o bread_n be_v transubstantiate_a into_o my_o body_n or_o my_o body_n be_v real_o and_o fleashe_o contain_v under_o the_o accident_n of_o this_o bread_n but_o contrary_a wise_a the_o evangelist_n do_v witness_v that_o christ_n take_v bread_n and_o s._n paul_n after_o consecration_n sundry_a time_n call_v it_o bread_n â_o and_o the_o holy_a father_n express_o and_o constant_o affirm_v that_o the_o bread_n remain_v still_o in_o nature_n and_o substance_n as_o it_o do_v before_o nevertheless_o in_o that_o sense_n and_o meaning_n that_o christ_n speak_v in_o that_o bread_n be_v christ_n body_n for_o in_o this_o case_n we_o may_v not_o consider_v what_o bread_n be_v in_o itself_o but_o what_o it_o be_v by_o christ_n institution_n as_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v his_o very_a natural_a body_n so_o the_o bread_n in_o itself_o be_v very_o natural_a bread_n and_o yet_o by_o way_n of_o a_o sacrament_n 57_o the_o bread_n both_o be_v call_v and_o also_o be_v christ_n body_n so_o s._n paul_n say_v the_o rock_n be_v christ_n and_o s._n augustine_n say_v non_fw-la dicit_fw-la petra_n significabat_fw-la christum_n sed_fw-la petra_n erat_fw-la christus_fw-la he_o say_v not_o the_o rock_n signify_v christ_n but_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n the_o rock_n natural_o &_o in_o deed_n be_v a_o rock_n as_o it_o be_v before_o yet_o 12._o because_o it_o give_v water_n to_o refreashe_v the_o people_n by_o a_o sacramental_a understand_v the_o rock_n be_v christ_n so_o it_o be_v write_v sanguis_fw-la est_fw-la anima_fw-la the_o blood_n be_v the_o soul_n which_o word_n right_o understand_v be_v true_a and_o yet_o to_o say_v that_o natural_o and_o real_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o soul_n it_o be_v a_o erroure_n unto_o which_o word_n of_o moses_n s._n augustine_n by_o way_n of_o exposition_n resemble_v these_o word_n of_o christ_n 12._o this_o be_v my_o body_n his_o word_n be_v these_o possum_fw-la interpreâari_fw-la praeceptum_fw-la illud_fw-la in_o signo_fw-la esse_fw-la positum_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la dubitavit_fw-la dominus_fw-la dicere_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la cùm_fw-la signum_fw-la daret_fw-la corporis_fw-la svi_fw-la i_o may_v expound_v that_o commandment_n to_o consist_v in_o a_o sign_n for_o our_o lord_n doubt_v not_o to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v a_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n and_o to_o come_v near_o to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n supper_n 11._o s._n luke_n and_o s._n paul_n say_v this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o substance_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o cup_n change_v by_o any_o force_n of_o these_o word_n neither_o be_v that_o cup_n in_o deed_n and_o real_o the_o new_a testament_n now_o as_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n the_o blood_n be_v the_o soul_n the_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n remaininge_v notwithstanding_o each_o of_o they_o in_o their_o several_a nature_n and_o substance_n even_o so_o be_v the_o bread_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n remaininge_v still_o notwithstanding_o in_o the_o nature_n and_o substance_n of_o very_a bread_n it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n that_o christ_n ordain_v and_o therefore_o must_v have_v a_o sacramental_a understand_v uery_o as_o water_n remaininge_v still_o water_n be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n blood_n so_o bread_n remaininge_v still_o bread_n be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o the_o contrary_a hereof_o be_v determine_v in_o the_o council_n of_o laterane_n in_o rome_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1215._o 1215._o how_o be_v it_o the_o determination_n of_o that_o council_n neither_o be_v general_n nor_o be_v ever_o general_o receive_v for_o the_o christian_n in_o asia_n ultima_fw-la and_o grecia_n and_o of_o all_o other_o part_n of_o christendom_n will_v never_o agree_v unto_o it_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n but_o evermore_o refuse_v it_o as_o a_o erroure_n but_o what_o special_a power_n have_v that_o council_n of_o laterane_n to_o alter_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n remain_v and_o to_o change_v the_o sense_n of_o god_n word_n and_o to_o make_v that_o catholic_a that_o before_o that_o time_n be_v never_o catholic_n and_o to_o make_v that_o heresy_n that_o for_o the_o space_n of_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o before_o be_v no_o heresy_n certain_o the_o old_a catholic_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o these_o young_a father_n of_o the_o church_n of_o laterane_n agree_v not_o together_o for_o gelasius_n say_v non_fw-la desinit_fw-la esse_fw-la substantia_fw-la eutychem_n vel_fw-la natura_fw-la panis_n &_o vini_n it_o cease_v not_o to_o be_v the_o substance_n or_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o
all_o these_o word_n together_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v transubstantiation_n as_o it_o be_v clear_a by_o that_o be_v say_v already_o then_o be_v m._n hardinge_n fundation_n not_o well_o lay_v and_o therefore_o we_o may_v the_o better_a doubt_n of_o his_o conclusion_n and_o where_o as_o he_o say_v these_o new_a master_n think_v it_o suiffcient_a to_o acknowledge_v a_o sacramental_a changinge_v and_o to_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o that_o only_a for_o a_o shift_n it_o may_v please_v he_o to_o remember_v that_o beda_n wellnear_o niene_n hundred_o year_n ago_o expound_v the_o same_o in_o like_a sort_n and_o yet_o that_o notwithstanding_o be_v never_o count_v neither_o shifter_n nor_o new_a master_n his_o word_n be_v plain_a panis_n &_o vini_n creatura_fw-la in_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la carnis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la christi_fw-la ineffabili_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sanctificatione_n transfertur_fw-la epiphaniae_fw-la the_o creature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n by_o the_o ineffable_a sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .3_o division_n nothing_o can_v be_v plain_o to_o this_o purpose_n âââque_fw-la than_o the_o saieinge_n of_o s._n ambrose_n licet_fw-la figura_fw-la panis_n &_o vini_n videatur_fw-la ambrose_n nihil_fw-la tamen_fw-la aliud_fw-la quam_fw-la caro_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o sanguis_n post_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la credendum_fw-la est_fw-la although_o say_v he_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v see_v yet_o after_o consecration_n we_o must_v believe_v they_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n after_o the_o opinion_n of_o this_o father_n the_o show_n and_o figure_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v see_v and_o therefore_o remain_v after_o consecration_n and_o if_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o which_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n before_o to_o be_v none_o other_o thing_n but_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n then_o be_v they_o no_o other_o thing_n in_o deed_n for_o if_o they_o be_v we_o may_v so_o believe_v for_o belief_n be_v ground_v upon_o truth_n and_o what_o so_o ever_o be_v not_o true_a be_v not_o to_o be_v beleve_v hereof_o it_o follow_v that_o after_o consecration_n the_o accident_n and_o show_v only_o remain_v without_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n initiantur_fw-la in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v as_o much_o panis_n iste_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o bread_n before_o the_o word_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v bread_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o consecration_n come_v of_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n again_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v most_o plain_o that_o the_o power_n of_o consecration_n be_v great_a than_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n because_o nature_n be_v change_v by_o consecration_n by_o this_o father_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o nature_n 178_o appear_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o by_o consecration_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n divinity_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n their_o natural_a quality_n which_o be_v accident_n continewinge_v unchanged_a for_o performance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n remain_v without_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n ambroses_n book_n be_v extant_a and_o know_v emonge_v they_o all_o these_o word_n be_v not_o find_v gratian_n the_o reporter_n of_o they_o either_o of_o purpose_n or_o for_o want_n of_o discretion_n as_o a_o man_n live_v in_o a_o very_a barbarous_a and_o corrupt_a season_n allege_v often_o one_o doctoure_n for_o a_o other_o the_o greek_a for_o the_o latin_a the_o new_a for_o the_o old_a as_o may_v soon_o appear_v to_o the_o learned_a reader_n this_o writer_n who_o m._n hardinge_n will_v so_o fain_o have_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o name_n of_o ambrose_n in_o this_o very_a place_n purposely_o deprave_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n alleginge_v that_o for_o scripture_n that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v so_o write_v in_o all_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v not_o the_o manner_n of_o s._n amses_n dealing_v but_o for_o contentation_n of_o the_o reader_n to_o answer_v that_o thing_n that_o seem_v worthy_a of_o no_o answer_n we_o must_v understande_v that_o the_o bread_n the_o wine_n &_o the_o water_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n without_o further_a consideration_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o usual_a and_o simple_a creature_n 2._o and_o therefore_o s._n augustine_n geve_v this_o general_a rule_n touchinge_v the_o same_o in_o sacrament_n we_o must_v consider_v not_o what_o they_o be_v of_o them self_o but_o what_o they_o signify_v so_o s._n ambrose_n write_v of_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n quid_fw-la vidisti_fw-la aquas_fw-la utique_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la solas_fw-la apostolus_fw-la docuit_fw-la non_fw-la ea_fw-la contemplanda_fw-la quae_fw-la videntur_fw-la sed_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la videntur_fw-la what_o see_v thou_o in_o thy_o baptism_n water_n not_o doubt_n but_o not_o only_a water_n the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v we_o to_o behold_v not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v see_v but_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o see_v 4._o otherwise_o touchinge_v the_o very_a substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n he_o say_v sunt_fw-la quae_fw-la erant_fw-la they_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o they_o be_v and_o immediate_o before_o he_o call_v the_o sacrament_n touchinge_v the_o bread_n &_o the_o wine_n which_o be_v the_o material_a part_n thereof_o nota_fw-la a_o common_a and_o a_o know_v creature_n yet_o nevertheless_o touchinge_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n we_o consider_v not_o the_o corruptible_a nature_n or_o outward_a element_n but_o directe_v our_o faith_n only_o to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n s._n ambrose_n himself_o lead_v we_o thus_o to_o say_v ante_fw-la benedictionem_fw-la verborum_fw-la coelestium_fw-la alia_fw-la species_n nominatur_fw-la 9_o post_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la significatur_fw-la before_o the_o blissinge_a of_o the_o heavenly_a word_n it_o be_v call_v a_o other_o kind_n but_o after_o the_o consecration_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v signify_v but_o m._n hardinge_n will_v reply_v this_o ambrose_n say_v figura_fw-la panis_n &_o vini_n videtur_fw-la the_o figure_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v see_v therefore_o we_o must_v needs_o confess_v there_o be_v accident_n without_o a_o subject_a if_o any_o old_a writer_n greek_a or_o latin_a learn_v or_o unlearned_a ever_o use_v this_o word_n figura_fw-la in_o this_o sense_n to_o wite_v to_o signify_v a_o show_n alone_o without_o any_o substance_n then_o may_v m._n hardinge_n seem_v to_o say_v somewhat_o if_o never_o any_o writer_n use_v it_o so_o then_o have_v we_o good_a cause_n to_o doubt_n his_o conclusion_n uery_o to_o leave_v other_o old_a writer_n of_o all_o sort_n s._n ambrose_n himself_o say_v christus_fw-la apparet_fw-la in_o figura_fw-la humana_fw-la christ_n appear_v in_o the_o form_n or_o figure_n of_o a_o man._n 1._o and_o s._n paul_n say_v to_o like_a purpose_n formam_fw-la serui_fw-la accepit_fw-la christ_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n i_o think_v m._n hardinge_n will_v not_o warrant_v we_o upon_o the_o force_n of_o these_o word_n 2._o that_o christ_n have_v only_o the_o shape_n and_o show_v and_o not_o the_o very_a substance_n and_o nature_n of_o a_o man_n body_n for_o in_o so_o saieinge_v he_o shall_v seem_v open_o to_o favour_n the_o old_a condenned_a heresy_n of_o the_o manichee_n in_o saieinge_v otherwise_o this_o word_n figura_fw-la can_v further_o his_o purpose_n but_o s._n ambrose_n say_v nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la credendum_fw-la we_o must_v believe_v there_o be_v nothing_o else_o therefore_o say_v m._n hardinge_n there_o be_v no_o bread_n i_o marvel_v he_o have_v no_o further_a insight_n nor_o better_a skill_n in_o his_o own_o argument_n for_o here_o he_o conclude_v a_o plain_a contradiction_n against_o himself_o for_o if_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o we_o must_v also_o believe_v the_o same_o then_o be_v there_o neither_o form_n nor_o figure_n nor_o weight_n nor_o savoure_n there_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o m._n hardinge_n own_o first_o position_n and_o yet_o by_o these_o wooâdes_v we_o must_v needs_o believe_v it_o the_o meaning_n be_v as_o it_o be_v before_o say_v that_o accord_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n augustine_n in_o all_o sacrament_n we_o sequester_v our_o mind_n utter_o from_o the_o sensible_a creature_n and_o with_o our_o faith_n behold_v only_o the_o thing_n that_o thereby_o be_v represent_v for_o answer_n to_o the_o other_o two_o place_n of_o s._n ambrose_n here_o allege_v touchinge_v the_o changinge_v of_o nature_n and_o make_v of_o christ_n body_n it_o may_v please_v thou_o gentle_a reader_n to_o remember_v that_o that_o be_v answer_v before_o in_o the_o second_o division_n hereof_o unto_o the_o word_n of_o s._n cyprian_n i_o trow_v m._n hardinge_n will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o changinge_v of_o any_o
as_o we_o take_v they_o before_o since_o that_o we_o grant_v faithful_o that_o before_o consecration_n it_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n that_o nature_n have_v shape_v but_o after_o consecration_n that_o it_o be_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o blessing_n have_v consecrate_a in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o saithe_v that_o this_o be_v not_o the_o bread_n which_o go_v into_o the_o body_n 179_o redigitur_fw-la meaning_n for_o bodily_a sustenance_n but_o that_o bread_n of_o life_n qui_fw-la animae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la substantiam_fw-la fulcit_fw-la which_o sustein_v the_o substance_n of_o our_o soul_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n the_o former_a of_o these_o two_o place_n may_v be_v easy_o discharge_v by_o that_o be_v answer_v before_o to_o the_o word_n of_o s._n ambrose_n in_o the_o 3._o division_n hereof_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o changinge_v and_o avancinge_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n unto_o a_o spiritual_a and_o divine_a use_n and_o not_o of_o the_o abolishinge_v of_o the_o same_o as_o for_o accident_n and_o show_v stand_a without_o subject_a and_o substance_n he_o saithe_v nothing_o true_a it_o be_v the_o bread_n before_o the_o consecration_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o bare_a and_o common_a bread_n now_o it_o be_v aâanced_v and_o make_v a_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n not_o by_o nature_n but_o by_o consecration_n above_o nature_n chrysostome_n saithe_v 83._o oculis_fw-la intellectus_fw-la ista_fw-la perspiciamus_fw-la nihil_fw-la enim_fw-la sensibile_fw-la tradidit_fw-la nobis_fw-la christus_fw-la etc._n etc._n sic_fw-la &_o in_fw-la baptismo_fw-la let_v we_o behold_v these_o thing_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o mind_n for_o christ_n have_v deliver_v to_o we_o nothing_o that_o be_v sensible_a etc._n etc._n so_o likewise_o in_o baptism_n i_o think_v m._n hardinge_n will_v not_o deny_v but_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n be_v a_o thing_n sensible_a likewise_o that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o holy_a mystery_n or_o at_o the_o least_o the_o accident_n and_o show_v thereof_o be_v thing_n sensible_a but_o s._n chrysostome_n withdraw_v we_o from_o the_o bread_n the_o wine_n the_o water_n and_o all_o other_o like_o thing_n that_o be_v sensible_a to_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v not_o sensible_a in_o comparison_n whereof_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v consume_v and_o seem_v nothing_o touchinge_v the_o second_o place_n the_o word_n be_v write_v both_o in_o s._n augustine_n and_o also_o in_o a_o book_n 4._o that_o be_v common_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o s._n ambrose_n de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la the_o meaning_n whereof_o nothing_o toutch_v neither_o the_o bread_n nor_o the_o wine_n but_o only_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o thereby_o be_v represent_v and_o therefore_o this_o place_n so_o unaduised_o choose_v can_v little_o further_o m._n hardinge_n fantasy_n of_o empty_a accident_n hang_v i_o know_v not_o how_o without_o substance_n the_o word_n be_v plain_a of_o themselves_o without_o further_a exposition_n non_fw-la iste_fw-la panis_n qui_fw-la vadit_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la sed_fw-la ille_fw-la panis_n aquavitae_fw-la aeternae_fw-la qui_fw-la animae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la substantiam_fw-la fulcit_fw-la not_o this_o bread_n that_o pass_v into_o the_o body_n but_o that_o bread_n of_o everlasting_a life_n that_o strengthen_v the_o substance_n of_o our_o soul_n m._n hardinge_n know_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v into_o our_o body_n rabanus_n say_v sacramentum_fw-la ore_fw-la percipitur_fw-la domini_fw-la &_o in_o alimentum_fw-la corporis_fw-la redigitur_fw-la the_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v with_o the_o mouth_n and_o be_v turn_v to_o the_o nourrishement_n of_o the_o body_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o s._n cyprian_a saithe_n est_fw-la cibus_fw-la mentis_fw-la non_fw-la ventris_n be_v meat_n for_o the_o mind_n not_o for_o the_o belly_n so_o s._n augustine_n say_v panis_n iste_fw-la interioris_fw-la hominis_fw-la quaerit_fw-la esuriem_fw-la 26._o this_o bread_n seek_v the_o hunger_n of_o the_o inner_a man._n intus_fw-la bibendo_fw-la foelix_fw-la sum_fw-la drink_v in_o my_o heart_n within_o i_o be_o make_v happy_a tertullian_n say_v 25._o ruminandus_fw-la intellectu_fw-la &_o fide_fw-la digerendus_fw-la est_fw-la that_o meat_n ought_v to_o be_v chew_v with_o understanding_n and_o to_o be_v digest_v with_o faith_n likewise_o chrysostome_n magnê°_n iste_fw-la panis_n carnis_fw-la qui_fw-fr replet_n mentem_fw-la non_fw-la ventrem_fw-la this_o great_a bread_n that_o fill_v the_o mind_n and_o not_o the_o belly_n of_o this_o bread_n s._n ambrose_n speak_v and_o not_o of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o body_n wherefore_o it_o appear_v m._n hardinge_n be_v not_o well_o advise_v 9_o how_o little_a this_o place_n will_v make_v for_o his_o purpose_n the_o old_a father_n origen_n saithe_v accidit_fw-la ut_fw-la simpliciores_fw-la quidam_fw-la nescientes_fw-la distinguere_fw-la quae_fw-la sint_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o scripture_n divinis_fw-la interiori_fw-la homini_fw-la quae_fw-la verò_fw-la exteriori_fw-la deputanda_fw-la âint_fw-la vocabulorum_fw-la similitudine_fw-la falsi_fw-la canti_fw-la ad_fw-la ineptas_fw-la quasdam_fw-la fabulas_fw-la &_o figmenta_fw-la inania_fw-la se_fw-la contulerint_fw-la it_o happen_v that_o simple_a folk_n be_v not_o able_a to_o discern_v what_o thing_n they_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o be_v to_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o inner_a man_n and_o what_o to_o the_o utter_a be_v deceive_v by_o the_o likeness_n of_o word_n turn_v themselves_o to_o vain_a imagination_n and_o foolish_a pabâes_n m._n hardinge_n the._n 6._o division_n no_o man_n can_v speak_v more_o plain_o hereof_o then_o cyrillus_n hierosolymitanus_n a_o old_a author_n who_o write_v in_o greek_a and_o be_v extant_a but_o as_o yet_o remaininge_v in_o write_a hand_n and_o come_v to_o the_o sight_n of_o few_o learned_a man_n his_o word_n be_v not_o much_o unlike_o the_o word_n of_o the_o school_n doctor_n praebetur_fw-la corpus_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o specie_fw-la sive_fw-la figura_fw-la panis_n item_n praebetur_fw-la sanguis_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d christ_n body_n saithe_v he_o be_v give_v we_o in_o form_n or_o figure_n of_o bread_n again_o his_o blood_n be_v give_v we_o in_o form_n of_o wine_n a_o little_a after_o thâse_a word_n he_o saithe_v thus_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d etc._n etc._n bread_n ne_fw-fr menâem_fw-la adhibeas_fw-la quasi_fw-la pani_n &_o vino_fw-la nudis_fw-la sunt_fw-la enim_fw-la haec_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la ut_fw-la dominus_fw-la pronunciavit_fw-la nam_fw-la tametsi_fw-la illud_fw-la tibi_fw-la sensus_fw-la suggerit_fw-la esse_fw-la scilicet_fw-la panem_fw-la &_o vinum_fw-la nudum_fw-la tamen_fw-la firmeâ_n te_fw-la fides_n &_o ne_fw-la gustatu_fw-la rem_fw-la diâudices_fw-la quin_fw-la potiùs_fw-la pro_fw-la certo_fw-la ac_fw-la comperto_fw-la habe_fw-la omni_fw-la dubitatione_n relicta_fw-la esse_fw-la tibi_fw-la impartitum_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la christi_fw-la consider_v not_o say_v this_o father_n these_o as_o bare_a bread_n and_o wine_n for_o these_o be_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n as_o our_o lord_n say_v for_o although_o thy_o sense_n report_n to_o thou_o so_o much_o that_o it_o be_v bare_a bread_n and_o wine_n yet_o let_v thy_o faith_n stay_v thou_o and_o judge_v not_o thereof_o by_o thy_o taste_n but_o rather_o be_v right_a well_o assure_v all_o doubt_n put_v apart_o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v to_o thou_o again_o he_o saithe_v thus_o in_o the_o same_o place_n haec_fw-la cum_fw-la scias_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la certo_fw-la &_o explorato_fw-la habeas_fw-la 180_o appear_v qui_fw-la videtur_fw-la esse_fw-la panis_n non_fw-la esse_fw-la sed_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la item_n quod_fw-la videâur_fw-la vinum_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la quanquam_fw-la id_fw-la velit_fw-la sensus_fw-la sed_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la christi_fw-la ac_fw-la de_fw-la eo_fw-la prophetam_fw-la dixisse_fw-la panis_n cor_fw-la hominis_fw-la confirmat_fw-la firma_fw-la ipse_fw-la cor_fw-la sumpto_fw-la hoc_fw-la pane_fw-la utpote_fw-la spirituali_fw-la where_o as_o thou_o know_v this_o for_o a_o very_a certainty_n that_o that_o which_o seem_v to_o be_v wine_n be_v not_o wine_n all_o be_v it_o the_o sense_n make_v that_o account_n of_o it_o but_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o the_o prophet_n thereof_o say_v bread_n strengthen_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n strengthen_v then_o thou_o self_n thy_o heart_n by_o take_v this_o bread_n as_o that_o which_o be_v spiritual_a and_o in_o the_o .3_o catechesi_fw-la this_o father_n say_v panis_n eucharistiae_fw-la post_fw-la invocationem_fw-la sancti_fw-la spiritus_fw-la non_fw-la amplius_fw-la est_fw-la panis_n nudus_fw-la &_o simplex_fw-la sed_fw-la corpus_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o bread_n of_o the_o sacrament_n after_o prayer_n make_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o bare_a and_o simple_a bread_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n no_o we_o sith_o that_o by_o this_o doctor_n plain_a declaration_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o this_o point_n we_o ought_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o be_v very_o assure_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v no_o more_o bread_n after_o consecration_n but_o the_o very_a
body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o wine_n no_o more_o wine_n but_o his_o pretiouse_a blood_n though_o they_o seem_v to_o the_o eye_n otherwise_o though_o taste_n and_o feelinge_v judge_v otherwise_o and_o to_o be_v short_a though_o all_o sense_n report_v the_o contrary_a and_o all_o this_o upon_o warrant_n of_o our_o lord_n word_n who_o say_v these_o to_o be_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o that_o as_o he_o teach_v not_o in_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o further_o sith_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o eusebius_n suspect_v emissenus_fw-la in_o homily_n of_o easâer_n to_o believe_v terrena_fw-la commutari_fw-la &_o transire_fw-la the_o earthly_a thing_n to_o be_v change_v and_o to_o pass_v again_o creaturas_fw-la converti_fw-la in_o substantiam_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la the_o creature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v the_o very_a transubstantiation_n and_o sith_o chrysostome_n noâthinge_v saithe_v panem_fw-la absumi_fw-la that_o the_o bread_n be_v consume_v away_o by_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n sacrament_n and_o damascen_n bread_n and_o wine_n transmuâari_fw-la supernaturaliter_fw-la 26._o to_o be_v change_v above_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n and_o theophylacte_n the_o bread_n christum_n transelementari_fw-la in_o carnem_fw-la domini_fw-la to_o be_v quite_o turn_v by_o chaunginge_v of_o the_o element_n that_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o substance_n it_o consist_v of_o into_o the_o flesh_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o that_o in_o a_o other_o place_n ineffabili_fw-la operatione_n transformari_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la panis_n nobis_fw-la videatur_fw-la that_o the_o bread_n be_v transform_v and_o change_v into_o a_o other_o substantial_a form_n he_o mean_v that_o of_o our_o lord_n body_n by_o unspeakable_a work_n though_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v bread_n final_o sith_o that_o the_o greek_a doctor_n of_o late_a age_n affirm_v the_o same_o doctrine_n among_o who_o transubstantiation_n samona_n use_v for_o persuasion_n of_o it_o the_o similitude_n which_o gregory_n nyssene_n and_o damascene_fw-la for_o declaration_n of_o the_o same_o use_v before_o which_o be_v that_o in_o consecration_n such_o manner_n transubstantiation_n be_v make_v as_o be_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o bread_n in_o nourishinge_v in_o which_o it_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o nourish_v methonensis_n like_o s._n ambrose_n will_v not_o man_n in_o this_o matter_n to_o look_v for_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n seinge_v that_o christ_n be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n biside_n all_o order_n of_o nature_n and_o saithe_v that_o our_o lord_n body_n in_o this_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v under_o the_o form_n or_o shape_n of_o a_o other_o thing_n 27._o lest_o blood_n shall_v cause_v it_o to_o be_v horrible_a niâolaus_n cabasila_n saithe_v that_o this_o bread_n be_v no_o more_o a_o figure_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n neither_o a_o gift_n bear_v a_o image_n of_o the_o true_a gift_n nor_o bear_v any_o desââription_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o table_n but_o the_o true_a gift_n itself_o oil_n the_o most_o holy_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n itself_o which_o have_v true_o receive_v reproach_n contumely_n stripe_n which_o be_v crucify_v which_o be_v kill_v marcus_n ephesius_n though_o otherwise_o to_o be_v reject_v as_o he_o that_o obstinate_o resist_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n concern_v the_o proceedinge_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n out_o of_o the_o son_n unperfect_a yet_o a_o sufficient_a of_o the_o greek_a church_n faith_n in_o this_o point_n affirminge_v the_o thing_n offer_v to_o be_v call_v of_o s._n basile_n antitypa_n that_o be_v the_o sampler_n and_o figure_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n because_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o perfect_o consecrate_v but_o as_o yet_o bear_v the_o figure_n and_o image_n refer_v the_o change_n or_o transubstantiation_n of_o they_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n donec_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sanctus_n adveniat_fw-la qui_fw-la ea_fw-la mutet_fw-la these_o gift_n offer_v saithe_v he_o be_v of_o s._n basile_n call_v figure_n until_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v upon_o they_o to_o change_v they_o whereby_o he_o show_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n that_o through_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o consecration_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v so_o change_v as_o they_o may_v no_o more_o be_v call_v figure_n but_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n itself_o as_o into_o the_o same_o change_a by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o change_n be_v a_o change_n in_o substance_n and_o therefore_o it_o may_v right_o be_v term_v transubstantiation_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o turn_v or_o chaunginge_v of_o one_o substance_n into_o a_o other_o substance_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n this_o cyrillus_n hierosolymitanus_n be_v a_o old_a author_n new_o set_v forth_o i_o will_v not_o call_v his_o credit_n into_o question_n notwithstanding_o many_o of_o his_o consideration_n be_v very_o much_o like_o to_o m._n hardinge_n judgement_n in_o this_o article_n that_o be_v to_o say_v like_o accidens_fw-la sine_fw-la subiecto_fw-la a_o show_n of_o word_n without_o substance_n he_o seem_v both_o in_o word_n and_o sense_n full_o to_o agree_v with_o chrysostome_n oecumenius_n and_o other_o greek_a father_n that_o never_o understand_v this_o m._n hardinge_n new_a religion_n he_o shut_v up_o the_o hearer_n bodily_a eye_n wherewith_o they_o see_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o borow_v only_o the_o inner_a eye_n of_o their_o mind_n wherewith_o they_o may_v see_v the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v that_o bread_n that_o come_v from_o heaven_n and_o herein_o notwithstanding_o his_o word_n be_v quick_a &_o violent_a the_o more_o to_o stir_v and_o inflame_v the_o heart_n of_o they_o unto_o who_o he_o speak_v yet_o he_o himself_o in_o plain_a wise_n open_v &_o clear_v his_o own_o meaning_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v ne_o consideres_fw-la tanquam_fw-la panem_fw-la nudum_fw-la panis_n eucharistiae_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la amplius_fw-la panis_n simplex_n &_o nudus_fw-la 4._o consider_v it_o not_o as_o if_o it_o be_v bare_a bread_n the_o bread_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v no_o long_o bare_a and_o simple_a bread_n which_o word_n be_v natural_o resolve_v thus_o it_o be_v bread_n how_o be_v it_o not_o only_o bare_a bread_n but_o bread_n and_o some_o other_o thing_n else_o biside_n so_o where_o they_o of_o m._n hardinge_n side_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v papa_n non_fw-la est_fw-la purus_fw-la homo_fw-la the_o pope_n be_v not_o a_o bare_a man_n i_o trow_v their_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v no_o man_n but_o only_o that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n &_o yet_o beside_o that_o have_v a_o other_o capacity_n above_o the_o condition_n and_o state_n of_o common_a man_n of_o these_o word_n of_o cyrillus_n we_o may_v well_o reason_v thus_o by_o the_o way_n the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o only_o or_o bare_a bread_n therefore_o it_o be_v bread_n all_o be_v it_o not_o only_o bare_a bread_n and_o thus_o the_o same_o cyrillus_n that_o be_v bring_v to_o testify_v that_o there_o remain_v no_o bread_n in_o the_o sacrament_n testify_v most_o plain_o to_o the_o contrary_a that_o there_o be_v bread_n remaininge_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o although_o this_o answer_n of_o itself_o may_v seem_v sufficient_a yet_o good_a christian_a reader_n for_o thy_o better_a satisfaction_n i_o pray_v thou_o further_a to_o understande_v that_o as_o this_o cyrillus_n speak_v here_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n &_o blood_n even_o so_o and_o in_o like_a phrase_n and_o form_n of_o word_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o oil_n that_o they_o call_v holy_a of_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n and_o of_o other_o ceremony_n of_o the_o oil_n he_o write_v thus_o and_o further_o by_o the_o same_o expound_v his_o meaning_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n vide_fw-la ne_fw-la illud_fw-la pute_fw-la esse_fw-la vnguentum_fw-la tantùm_fw-la tertia_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la enim_fw-la panis_n eucharistiae_fw-la post_fw-la sancti_fw-la spiritus_fw-la inuocationem_fw-la non_fw-la ampliùs_fw-la est_fw-la panis_n communis_fw-la sed_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la sic_fw-la &_o sanctum_fw-la hoc_fw-la vnguentum_fw-la non_fw-la ampliùs_fw-la est_fw-la vnguentum_fw-la nudum_fw-la neque_fw-la commune_fw-la sed_fw-la est_fw-la charisma_n christi_fw-la beware_v thou_o think_v not_o this_o to_o be_v oil_n only_o for_o as_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o sacrament_n after_o the_o invocation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v no_o long_o common_a bread_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n so_o this_o holy_a oil_n be_v no_o long_o baâe_v spiritual_a or_o common_a oil_n but_o it_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n by_o these_o word_n there_o appear_v like_o change_n in_o the_o one_o as_o in_o the_o other_o as_o the_o oil_n be_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n so_o be_v the_o bread_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o the_o nature_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o oil_n remain_v
of_o these_o word_n conclude_v that_o christ_n be_v real_o hide_v either_o in_o dead_a man_n bone_n or_o in_o the_o prophet_n esaie_n or_o in_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o law_n certain_o s._n augustine_n speak_v not_o one_o word_n neither_o here_o nor_o else_o where_o neither_o of_o accident_n without_o subject_a nor_o of_o any_o real_a presence_n and_o all_o be_v it_o his_o word_n here_o be_v not_o very_o dark_a yet_o in_o other_o place_n both_o often_o and_o plain_o he_o expound_v himself_o 46._o for_o thus_o he_o saithe_v mysteria_fw-la omne_fw-la interioribus_fw-la oculis_fw-la videnda_fw-la sunt_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la spiritualiter_fw-la all_o mystery_n must_v be_v consider_v with_o the_o inner_a eye_n that_o be_v to_o say_v spiritual_o and_o again_o in_o sacramentis_fw-la aliud_fw-la videtur_fw-la aliud_fw-la intelligitur_fw-la in_o sacrament_n we_o see_v one_o thing_n 4._o and_o we_o understande_v a_o other_o thing_n so_o chrysostome_n speak_v of_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n ego_fw-la non_fw-la aspectu_fw-la iudico_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la videntur_fw-la the_o thing_n that_o be_v see_v in_o baptism_n i_o consider_v not_o with_o my_o bodily_a eye_n so_o likewise_o origen_n bene_fw-la circumcisionem_fw-la signum_fw-la appellavit_fw-la quia_fw-la &_o in_fw-la ipsa_fw-la aliud_fw-la videbatur_fw-la aliud_fw-la intelligebatur_fw-la he_o call_v circumcision_n right_o a_o sign_n for_o that_o in_o it_o one_o thing_n be_v see_v and_o a_o other_o thing_n be_v understand_v thus_o in_o sacrament_n we_o see_v one_o thing_n with_o our_o eye_n and_o a_o other_o thing_n with_o our_o mind_n with_o our_o bodily_a eye_n we_o see_v the_o bread_n with_o our_o faith_n we_o see_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n thus_o the_o sacrament_n consist_v of_o two_o part_n of_o the_o which_o the_o one_o be_v before_o our_o eye_n the_o other_o in_o heaven_n and_o so_o the_o one_o visible_a 5._o and_o the_o other_o invisible_a so_o saithe_v s._n augustine_n non_fw-la oportet_fw-la esse_fw-la contentum_fw-la superficie_fw-la literae_fw-la sed_fw-la ad_fw-la intelligentiam_fw-la pervenire_fw-la we_o may_v not_o stand_v content_a with_o the_o outward_a sight_n of_o the_o letter_n but_o must_v go_v further_o unto_o the_o meaning_n s._n augustine_n mean_v not_o by_o these_o word_n that_o the_o understand_v of_o the_o scripture_n lie_v real_o hide_v under_o the_o letter_n he_o himself_o better_a expound_v his_o own_o meaning_n in_o this_o wise_a 15._o in_o veteri_fw-la testamento_fw-la occultabatur_fw-la nowm_fw-la quia_fw-la occultâ_n significabatur_fw-la the_o new_a testament_n be_v hide_v in_o the_o old_a because_o it_o be_v secret_o or_o invisible_o signify_v in_o the_o old_a now_o let_v we_o examine_v the_o ground_n of_o m._n hardinge_n gheass_n s._n augustine_n name_v visibilem_fw-la speciem_fw-la the_o visible_a kind_n of_o the_o element_n ergo_fw-la say_v m._n harding_n he_o mean_v only_o the_o accident_n or_o outward_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o not_o the_o substance_n the_o weakness_n of_o this_o conclusion_n procee_v of_o the_o misunderstandinge_a of_o the_o term_n for_o s._n augustine_n in_o this_o place_n use_v not_o this_o word_n species_n for_o the_o outward_a show_n 9_o but_o for_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o so_o s._n ambrose_n saithe_v twice_o together_o in_o one_o place_n sermo_n dei_fw-la species_n mutat_fw-la elementorum_fw-la the_o word_n of_o god_n change_v the_o kind_n of_o the_o element_n and_o again_o ante_fw-la benedictionem_fw-la alia_fw-la species_n nominatur_fw-la before_o the_o consecration_n it_o be_v call_v a_o other_o kind_a in_o these_o and_o other_o like_a place_n m._n hardinge_n can_v well_o say_v that_o species_n signify_v a_o accident_n or_o outward_a show_n neither_o doothe_v this_o word_n visible_a import_v any_o such_o external_n form_n as_o be_v here_o imagine_a but_o only_o exclude_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n invisible_a to_o our_o bodily_a eye_n and_o visible_a only_o to_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o so_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n be_v call_v forma_fw-la visibilis_fw-la a_o visible_a kind_a or_o element_n accord_v to_o the_o general_a definition_n of_o all_o sacrament_n so_o s._n augustine_n say_v aliud_fw-la judaei_n habebant_fw-la aliud_fw-la nos_fw-la 26._o sed_fw-la specie_fw-la visibili_fw-la quod_fw-la tamen_fw-la idem_fw-la significaret_fw-la the_o jew_n have_v one_o thing_n for_o their_o sacrament_n &_o we_o a_o other_o in_o deed_n of_o a_o other_o visible_a form_n or_o kind_a which_o notwithstanding_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o our_o sacrament_n doothe_v signify_v likewise_o he_o saithe_v 1._o quod_fw-la videtur_fw-la speciem_fw-la habet_fw-la corporalem_fw-la quod_fw-la intelligitur_fw-la fructum_fw-la habet_fw-la spiritualem_fw-la the_o thing_n that_o we_o see_v have_v a_o corporal_a show_n but_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o understande_v have_v fruit_n spiritual_a 10._o and_o in_o this_o sense_n chrysostome_n saithe_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n christus_fw-la in_o sensibilibus_fw-la intelligibilia_fw-la nobis_fw-la tradidit_fw-la christ_n in_o sensible_a thing_n have_v give_v we_o thing_n spiritual_a 83._o by_o these_o we_o see_v both_o m._n hardinge_n gross_a erroure_n and_o also_o for_o what_o cause_n the_o old_a godly_a father_n call_v christ_n body_n invisible_a that_o be_v for_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n we_o see_v it_o with_o our_o faith_n with_o our_o mind_n and_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o understand_v neither_o may_v m._n hardinge_n of_o this_o word_n invisible_a reason_n thus_o as_o he_o seem_v to_o do_v christ_n body_n be_v invisible_a ergo_fw-la it_o lie_v hide_v under_o accident_n 3._o for_o s._n ambrose_n in_o like_a phrase_n of_o word_n speak_v thus_o of_o baptism_n sacri_fw-la fontis_fw-la unda_fw-la nos_fw-la abluit_fw-la sanguis_fw-la domini_fw-la nos_fw-la redemit_fw-la alterum_fw-la igitur_fw-la inuisibile_fw-la alterum_fw-la visibile_fw-la testimonium_fw-la sacramento_n consequimur_fw-la spirituali_fw-la the_o water_n of_o the_o holy_a fonte_fw-la have_v wash_v we_o christ_n blood_n have_v redeem_v us._n therefore_o by_o a_o spiritual_a sacrament_n we_o obtain_v two_o testimony_n the_o one_o invisible_a the_o other_o visible_a here_o s._n ambrose_n say_v christ_n blood_n in_o baptism_n be_v invisible_a yet_o may_v we_o not_o conclude_v thereof_o that_o christ_n blood_n be_v hide_v under_o the_o accident_n or_o show_v of_o water_n so_o origen_n say_v baptismus_fw-la johannis_n videbatur_fw-la 24._o christi_fw-la baptismus_fw-la est_fw-la inuisibilis_fw-la johns_n baptism_n be_v see_v but_o christ_n baptism_n be_v invisible_a and_o notwithstanding_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v plain_a to_o any_o man_n that_o have_v eye_n to_o see_v yet_o that_o the_o weakness_n and_o folly_n of_o these_o shift_n may_v thorough_o appear_v let_v m._n hardinge_n show_v we_o wherein_o &_o in_o what_o respect_n his_o naked_a show_n of_o form_n and_o accident_n can_v be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v and_o double_v and_o repete_v the_o same_o and_o make_v it_o the_o stay_n and_o ground_n of_o this_o whole_a treaty_n the_o sign_n or_o signification_n of_o this_o sacrament_n domini_fw-la as_o s._n cyprian_n say_v stand_v in_o refreashinge_v and_o feed_v so_o say_v rabanus_n maurus_n quia_fw-la panis_n corporis_fw-la cor_fw-la confirmat_fw-la 31._o ideò_fw-la ille_fw-la congruenter_v corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la nuncupatur_fw-la et_fw-la quia_fw-la vinum_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la operatur_fw-la in_o carne_n ideò_fw-la illud_fw-la ad_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la christi_fw-la refertur_fw-la because_o bread_n confirm_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o body_n therefore_o it_o be_v convenient_o call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o because_o wine_n woork_v blood_n in_o the_o flesh_n therefore_o it_o have_v relation_n to_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n likewise_o because_o water_n wash_v away_o the_o soil_n and_o filth_n of_o the_o body_n therefore_o as_o gregory_n nyssene_n say_v baptismate_fw-la christ_n appoint_v it_o to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n to_o signify_v the_o inward_a wasshinge_v of_o our_o soul_n now_o although_o m._n hardinge_n can_v say_v many_o thing_n yet_o this_o thing_n i_o think_v 66._o he_o will_v not_o say_v that_o our_o body_n be_v feadde_a with_o his_o show_n and_o accident_n or_o if_o he_o so_o say_v as_o in_o deed_n they_o be_v drive_v so_o to_o say_v then_o will_v the_o very_a natural_a philosopher_n reproove_v his_o folly_n for_o the_o philosopher_n say_v as_o in_o deed_n true_a it_o be_v exit_fw-la ijsdem_fw-la nutrimur_fw-la &_o sumus_fw-la we_o consist_v of_o the_o same_o thing_n wherewith_o we_o be_v nourish_v therefore_o if_o m._n hardinge_n will_v say_v the_o substance_n of_o our_o body_n be_v feadde_a with_o accident_n then_o must_v he_o likewise_o say_v the_o substance_n of_o our_o body_n do_v stand_v of_o accident_n hereof_o we_o may_v very_o well_o reason_n thus_o the_o accident_n or_o show_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n feed_v not_o our_o body_n as_o christ_n body_n feed_v our_o soul_n ergo_fw-la the_o accident_n and_o show_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n
they_o in_o hand_n that_o after_o the_o judgement_n and_o doctrine_n of_o ancient_a father_n the_o sacrament_n be_v 189_o prove_v but_o a_o figure_n a_o sign_n a_o token_n or_o a_o badge_n and_o contain_v not_o the_o very_a body_n itself_o of_o christ_n for_o proufe_v of_o the_o same_o alleginge_v certain_a their_o saieinge_n utter_v with_o the_o same_o term_n i_o think_v good_a by_o recital_n of_o some_o the_o chief_a such_o place_n to_o show_v that_o they_o be_v untrue_o report_v and_o that_o touchinge_v the_o verity_n of_o the_o presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n they_o teach_v in_o their_o day_n the_o same_o faith_n that_o be_v teach_v now_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n holy_a ephrem_n in_o a_o book_n he_o write_v to_o those_o that_o will_v search_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o man_n reason_n saithe_v thus_o 4._o inspice_fw-la diligenter_n quomodo_fw-la sumens_fw-la in_o manibus_fw-la panem_fw-la benedicit_fw-la ac_fw-la frangit_fw-la in_fw-la figura_fw-la immaculati_fw-la corporis_fw-la âui_fw-la calicemque_fw-la in_fw-la figura_fw-la pretiosi_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la svi_fw-la benedicit_fw-la &_o tribuit_fw-la discipulis_fw-la suis_fw-la behold_v saithe_v he_o diligent_o how_o take_v bread_n in_o his_o hand_n he_o bless_v it_o and_o break_v it_o it._n in_o the_o figure_n of_o his_o unspotted_a body_n and_o bless_v the_o cup_n in_o the_o figure_n of_o his_o pretiouse_a blood_n and_o geve_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n 190_o author_n by_o these_o word_n he_o show_v the_o partition_n division_n or_o breakinge_v of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v do_v no_o otherwise_o but_o in_o the_o outward_a form_n which_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n present_a and_o under_o they_o contain_v which_o body_n now_o be_v gloriouse_a be_v no_o more_o break_v nor_o part_v but_o be_v indivisible_a and_o subject_v no_o more_o to_o any_o passion_n and_o after_o the_o sacrament_n be_v break_v it_o remain_v whole_a and_o perfect_a under_o each_o portion_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n if_o we_o abuse_v the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o people_n utteringe_v plain_o &_o simple_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n than_o do_v the_o father_n themselves_o likewise_o abuse_v the_o simple_a people_n for_o that_o they_o of_o all_o other_o first_o utter_v and_o publish_v the_o same_o word_n and_o special_o for_o that_o they_o never_o qualify_v the_o same_o with_o any_o of_o these_o m._n hardinge_n new_a construction_n but_o if_o we_o abuse_v the_o people_n speak_v in_o such_o wise_a as_o the_o old_a catholic_a father_n speak_v so_o long_o before_o we_o what_o then_o may_v we_o think_v of_o m._n hardinge_n that_o come_v only_o with_o his_o own_o word_n that_o wrea_v and_o falsifi_v the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o by_o his_o strange_a exposition_n make_v they_o not_o the_o father_n word_n gelasius_n say_v 5._o in_o the_o sacrament_n there_o remain_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n that_o be_v to_o say_v say_v m._n hardinge_n there_o remain_v the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n ireneus_fw-la and_o justinus_n martyr_n say_v 2._o the_o bread_n of_o the_o sacrament_n increase_v the_o substance_n of_o our_o flesh_n then_o meaning_n be_v say_v m._n hardinge_n that_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o bread_n increase_v the_o substance_n of_o our_o flesh_n s._n ambrose_n say_v 9_o post_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la significatur_fw-la after_o consecration_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v signify_v m._n hardinge_n say_v no_o not_o so_o but_o after_o consecration_n the_o life_n to_o come_v be_v signify_v now_o judge_v thou_o indifferent_o good_a reader_n whether_o of_o we_o abuse_v the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o people_n now_o let_v we_o see_v how_o he_o handle_v this_o good_a old_a father_n ephrem_fw-la in_o deed_n here_o he_o make_v the_o darkness_n light_n and_o the_o light_n darkness_n for_o ephrem_n word_n be_v so_o plain_a as_o nothing_o can_v be_v plain_o christ_n take_v bread_n and_o bliss_v it_o and_o break_v it_o in_o figure_n or_o as_o christ_n himself_o utter_v it_o in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o bliss_v and_o unspotted_a body_n but_o m._n hardinge_n exposition_n upon_o the_o same_o be_v so_o perverse_a and_o so_o wilful_a as_o if_o it_o be_v free_a for_o he_o to_o gloze_v and_o fancy_n what_o he_o list_v ephrem_fw-la say_v christ_n take_v and_o break_v bread_n m._n hardinge_n say_v christ_n break_v form_n and_o accident_n and_o break_v no_o bread_n ephrem_fw-la say_v the_o bread_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n m._n hardinge_n say_v the_o bread_n be_v no_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n to_o be_v short_a ephrem_n say_v christ_n break_v bread_n in_o figure_n or_o remembrance_n of_o his_o body_n ergo_fw-la say_v m._n hardinge_n christ_n body_n be_v there_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n such_o regard_n have_v he_o to_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o people_n certain_o ephrem_n say_v not_o neither_o that_o the_o form_n or_o show_n be_v break_v nor_o that_o the_o same_o form_n be_v figure_n of_o christ_n body_n nor_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v present_o in_o they_o contain_v and_o therefore_o m._n hardinge_n in_o his_o guileful_a construction_n of_o the_o same_o have_v include_v great_a untrueth_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .5_o division_n again_o by_o the_o same_o word_n he_o signify_v figure_n that_o outward_a breakinge_v to_o be_v a_o certain_a holy_a figure_n and_o representation_n of_o the_o crucifieinge_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o blood_n sheddinge_a which_o thing_n be_v with_o a_o more_o clearness_n of_o word_n set_v forth_o by_o s._n augustine_n in_o sententijs_fw-la prosperi_fw-la frangitur_fw-la dum_fw-la frangitur_fw-la hostia_fw-la dum_fw-la sanguis_fw-la de_fw-fr calais_n in_o ora_fw-la fidelium_fw-la funditur_fw-la quid_fw-la aliud_fw-la quà m_fw-la dominici_n corporis_fw-la in_o cruse_n immolatio_fw-la eiusque_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la de_fw-la latere_fw-la effusio_fw-la designatur_fw-la while_o the_o host_n be_v break_v while_o the_o blood_n be_v pour_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a what_o other_o thing_n be_v thereby_o show_v and_o set_v forth_o than_o the_o sacrificinge_n of_o christ_n body_n on_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o sheddinge_a of_o his_o blood_n out_o of_o his_o side_n and_o by_o so_o dooinge_a the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n be_v fulfil_v do_v this_o in_o my_o remembrance_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n here_o have_v m._n hardinge_n find_v out_o a_o new_a kind_n of_o figure_n far_o differ_v from_o all_o the_o rest_n the_o breakinge_v of_o the_o accident_n say_v he_o be_v a_o token_n of_o the_o breakinge_v of_o christ_n body_n and_o this_o he_o think_v himself_o well_o able_a to_o prove_v by_o certain_a word_n of_o s._n augustine_n wherein_o notwithstanding_o he_o find_v but_o small_a help_n in_o the_o text_n for_o s._n augustine_n make_v no_o manner_n mention_v neither_o of_o any_o real_a or_o fleash_o presence_n nor_o of_o breakinge_v of_o form_n or_o accident_n yet_o be_v he_o somewhat_o relive_v by_o the_o gloze_v glosa_n for_o the_o word_n thereof_o be_v these_o secundum_fw-la hoc_fw-la dices_fw-la ipsa_fw-la accidentia_fw-la frangi_fw-la &_o dare_v sonitum_fw-la according_n to_o this_o thou_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o very_a accident_n and_o show_n be_v break_v and_o geve_v a_o crack_n thus_o we_o see_v there_o be_v no_o inconvenience_n so_o great_a but_o these_o man_n can_v well_o defend_v it_o but_o s._n augustine_n saithe_v sanguis_n in_o ora_fw-la fidelium_fw-la funditur_fw-la ergo_fw-la saithe_n m._n hardinge_n christ_n blood_n be_v there_o present_a i_o marvel_v much_o where_o m._n hardinge_n learn_v this_o strange_a logic_n for_o s._n hierome_n saithe_v in_o like_a sort_n 147._o quando_fw-la audimus_fw-la sermonem_fw-la domini_fw-la caro_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la eius_fw-la in_o auribus_fw-la nostris_fw-la funditur_fw-la when_o we_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o blood_n be_v pour_v into_o our_o ear_n will_n m._n hardinge_n conclude_v hereof_o by_o his_o new_a logic_n that_o when_o we_o hear_v god_n word_n christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v real_o present_a here_o once_o again_o i_o must_v do_v thou_o good_a reader_n to_o understande_v that_o a_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n augustine_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o that_o thing_n whereof_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o for_o example_n he_o saithe_v 23._o sacramentum_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la christi_fw-la secundum_fw-la quendam_fw-la modum_fw-la sanguis_fw-la christi_fw-la est_fw-la the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n blood_n after_o a_o certain_a manner_n of_o speech_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n again_o he_o saithe_v in_o the_o same_o epistle_n consepulti_fw-la sumus_fw-la christo_fw-la per_fw-la baptismum_fw-la 6._o non_fw-la ait_fw-la sepulturam_fw-la significamus_fw-la 3._o sed_fw-la prorsus_fw-la ait_fw-la consepulâi_fw-la sumus_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la ergo_fw-la tantae_fw-la rei_fw-la non_fw-la nisi_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la rei_fw-la vocabulo_fw-la nuncupavit_fw-la we_o be_v bury_v together_o with_o christ_n
far_o biside_n the_o teâte_fw-la if_o these_o word_n be_v false_a why_o do_v m._n hardinge_n here_o allege_v they_o why_o be_v they_o not_o rectify_v either_o by_o gratian_n or_o by_o the_o gloze_v or_o at_o jest_n by_o some_o note_n in_o the_o margin_n and_o why_o be_v they_o publish_v for_o a_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n if_o they_o be_v true_a why_o shall_v we_o shun_v they_o or_o why_o shall_v we_o beware_v and_o take_v heed_n of_o they_o special_o be_v utter_v without_o figure_n or_o metaphor_n or_o heat_n of_o speech_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .8_o division_n the_o word_n of_o hilarius_n the_o pope_n utter_v the_o same_o doctrine_n foris_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la quod_fw-la sumitur_fw-la de_fw-la altari_fw-la figura_fw-la est_fw-la dum_fw-la panis_n &_o vinum_fw-la videtur_fw-la extra_fw-la christi_fw-la veritas_fw-la autem_fw-la dum_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la interius_fw-la creditur_fw-la the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v receive_v from_o the_o altar_n be_v the_o figure_n while_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v see_v outward_o and_o it_o be_v the_o truth_n while_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v believe_v inward_o the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n these_o word_n of_o hilary_n be_v partly_o answer_v before_o his_o meaning_n be_v this_o the_o bread_n that_o we_o see_v with_o our_o sense_n be_v the_o figure_n but_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o thereby_o be_v signify_v be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o heaven_n the_o bread_n be_v receive_v with_o our_o bodily_a mouth_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n only_o with_o our_o faith_n and_o thus_o these_o two_o word_n extra_n and_o interiùs_n which_o hilary_n use_v have_v relation_n to_o our_o mouth_n and_o to_o our_o faith_n interiùs_n and_o so_o to_o the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v present_a before_o we_o and_o to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n s._n augustine_n saithe_v aqua_fw-la exhibet_fw-la forinsecùs_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la gratiae_n 23._o &_o spiritus_fw-la operatur_fw-la intrinsecus_fw-la beneficium_fw-la gratiae_n the_o water_n outwarde_o show_v the_o sacrament_n of_o grace_n and_o inwardly_o the_o spirit_n work_v the_o benefit_n of_o grace_n and_o to_o come_v near_o to_o the_o word_n of_o hilary_n s._n augustine_n again_o say_v 50._o habent_fw-la foris_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la sed_fw-la rem_fw-la ipsam_fw-la non_fw-la tenent_fw-la intus_fw-la cvius_fw-la est_fw-la illud_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la outwarde_o they_o have_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o inward_o they_o have_v not_o the_o thing_n itself_o whereof_o that_o thing_n be_v a_o sacrament_n further_o we_o may_v say_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n itself_o understand_v it_o to_o be_v there_o as_o in_o a_o mystery_n but_o to_o this_o manner_n of_o be_v there_o be_v require_v neither_o circumstance_n of_o place_n nor_o any_o corporal_n or_o real_a presence_n so_o chrysostome_n saithe_v 44._o oleum_fw-la visibile_fw-la in_o signo_fw-la est_fw-la oleum_fw-la inuisibile_fw-la in_o sacramento_n est_fw-la oleum_fw-la spiritual_fw-la intus_fw-la est_fw-la oleum_fw-la visibile_fw-la exteriùs_n est_fw-la the_o visible_a oil_n be_v in_o a_o token_n the_o oil_n invisible_a be_v in_o a_o sacrament_n 2._o the_o spiritual_a oil_n be_v within_o the_o visible_a oil_n be_v without_o so_o paulinus_n write_v to_o cytherius_n in_o suarum_fw-la literarum_fw-la corpore_fw-la paulus_n magister_fw-la adfuit_fw-la paul_n the_o teacher_n be_v present_a in_o the_o body_n of_o his_o letter_n so_o s._n augustine_n nowm_fw-la testamentum_fw-la absconditum_fw-la erat_fw-la in_o lege_fw-la the_o new_a testament_n be_v hide_v in_o the_o law_n so_o the_o ancient_a father_n origen_n in_o vestimento_fw-la podêris_fw-la erat_fw-la vniversus_fw-la mundus_fw-la 2._o the_o whole_a world_n be_v in_o the_o priest_n âonge_a gown_n so_o chrysostome_n in_o scripture_n insertum_fw-la est_fw-la regnum_n dei_fw-la the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v enclose_v in_o the_o scripture_n so_o paulinus_n write_n unto_o s._n augustine_n in_o hoc_fw-la pane_n trinitatis_fw-la soliditas_fw-la continetur_fw-la 23._o in_o this_o cake_n the_o perfection_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n be_v contain_v i_o use_v purposely_o the_o more_o example_n in_o this_o behalf_n for_o that_o i_o see_v many_o of_o simplicity_n be_v deceive_v thinkinge_v 35._o that_o one_o thing_n can_v possible_o be_v in_o a_o other_o onlesse_a it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o same_o present_o real_o and_o in_o deed_n yet_o it_o be_v write_v in_o that_o fond_a council_n of_o nice_a the_o second_o qui_fw-la imaginem_fw-la imperatoris_fw-la videt_fw-la in_fw-la ea_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la ipsum_fw-la contemplature_n he_o that_o see_v the_o emperor_n image_n â_o in_o the_o same_o see_v the_o emperor_n himself_o likewise_o saithe_v prudentius_n legis_fw-la in_o effigy_n scriptus_fw-la per_fw-la aenigmata_fw-la christus_fw-la 6._o christ_n write_v by_o figure_n in_o the_o show_n of_o the_o law_n therefore_o m._n hardinge_n error_n herein_o stand_v in_o over_o gross_a understand_v of_o these_o word_n extra_n and_o interiùs_n for_o by_o the_o former_a he_o can_v conceive_v nothing_o else_o but_o accident_n by_o the_o late_a nothing_o but_o christ_n body_n under_o the_o same_o secret_o hide_v which_o be_v never_o any_o part_n of_o this_o holy_a father_n meaning_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .9_o division_n thus_o the_o father_n call_v not_o only_o the_o sacrament_n but_o also_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n itself_o in_o the_o sacrament_n sometime_o the_o truth_n sometime_o a_o figure_n the_o truth_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o very_a and_o ârue_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n a_o figure_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o be_v of_o the_o same_o there_o present_a which_o be_v real_o and_o substantial_o but_o invisible_o under_o the_o visible_a form_n of_o the_o outward_a element_n and_o so_o tertullian_n mean_v by_o he_o that_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n as_o though_o christ_n have_v show_v by_o the_o word_n hoc_fw-la that_o which_o be_v visible_a figure_n which_o very_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n right_o so_o as_o that_o which_o be_v the_o invisible_a inward_a thing_n be_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o body_n which_o interpretation_n of_o tertullian_n in_o deed_n be_v not_o accord_v to_o the_o right_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n though_o his_o meaning_n swerve_v not_o from_o the_o truth_n for_o where_o as_o our_o lord_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n he_o mean_v not_o so_o as_o though_o he_o have_v say_v the_o outward_a form_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o here_o i_o deliver_v to_o you_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n under_o the_o same_o contain_v word_n for_o as_o much_o as_o by_o these_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la he_o show_v not_o the_o visible_a form_n of_o bread_n but_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o very_a body_n into_o which_o by_o his_o divine_a power_n he_o turn_v the_o bread_n and_o therefore_o 192_o none_o of_o all_o the_o father_n ever_o so_o expound_v those_o word_n of_o christ_n but_o contrariwise_o so_o namely_o theophylacte_n and_o damascene_fw-la he_o say_v not_o saithe_n theophylacte_n this_o be_v a_o figure_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o bread_n nor_o wine_n 14._o meaning_n their_o outward_a form_n say_v damascene_fw-la itself_o be_v not_o a_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n not_o so_o in_o no_o wise_a but_o it_o be_v the_o body_n itself_o of_o our_o lord_n deificate_v sith_o our_o lord_n himself_o saithe_v this_o be_v my_o body_n not_o the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n but_o my_o body_n and_o not_o the_o figure_n of_o my_o blood_n but_o my_o blood_n etc._n etc._n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n here_o be_v imagine_v a_o other_o strange_a kind_n of_o figure_n for_o christ_n body_n itself_o be_v now_o become_v a_o figure_n but_o hilarius_n say_v figura_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la extrà _fw-la videtur_fw-la the_o figure_n be_v that_o be_v see_v outward_o and_o s._n augustine_n say_v signum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la speciem_fw-la ingerit_fw-la òculis_fw-la himself_o a_o sign_n be_v a_o thing_n that_o offer_v a_o sight_n unto_o the_o eye_n wherefore_o by_o m._n hardinge_n judgement_n christ_n very_a body_n appear_v outwarde_o and_o be_v see_v in_o the_o sacrament_n with_o our_o corporal_a eye_n if_o so_o how_o then_o be_v it_o there_o secret_o as_o he_o say_v before_o and_o under_o coverte_a if_o not_o how_o then_o can_v it_o be_v call_v a_o figure_n in_o confessinge_v the_o one_o he_o must_v needs_o deny_v the_o other_o if_o christ_n body_n be_v a_o figure_n it_o be_v not_o in_o coverte_a if_o it_o be_v in_o coverte_a it_o be_v not_o a_o figure_n he_o will_v say_v the_o accident_n and_o show_n be_v figure_n of_o christ_n body_n there_o hide_v and_o again_o the_o same_o body_n so_o invisible_o hide_v be_v a_o figure_n of_o that_o body_n that_o die_v uisible_o upon_o the_o crosse._n thus_o where_o as_o other_o may_v not_o once_o
there_o be_v a_o body_n of_o truth_n or_o a_o very_a body_n in_o deed_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n here_o m._n hardinge_n courteous_o divise_v a_o âavourable_a excuse_n for_o tertullian_n not_o thinkinge_v it_o best_o be_v so_o ancient_a a_o father_n and_o so_o near_o to_o the_o apostle_n time_n utter_o to_o condemn_v he_o of_o folly_n he_o utter_v all_o this_o say_v he_o in_o heat_n of_o contention_n rash_o and_o unaduised_o and_o understand_v not_o what_o he_o say_v neither_o have_v any_o great_a regard_n to_o the_o exact_v use_v of_o his_o word_n how_o be_v it_o tertullian_n not_o only_o speak_v these_o word_n upon_o the_o sudden_a but_o also_o leisurely_o and_o with_o study_n wrotâ_n they_o and_o yet_o afterward_o quiet_o peruse_v and_o consider_v the_o same_o be_v never_o able_a to_o espy_v this_o fault_n but_o that_o such_o case_n of_o heat_n may_v sometime_o happen_v we_o have_v over_o good_a trial_n in_o m._n hardinge_n who_o as_o it_o now_o appear_v contention_n have_v cause_v so_o many_o way_n and_o so_o far_o to_o overreache_v the_o truth_n and_o to_o have_v so_o small_a regard_n to_o that_o he_o write_v s._n ambrose_n .2_o say_v apostolus_fw-la impudoratos_fw-la appellat_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la contentionibus_fw-la nituntur_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la ut_fw-la contentio_fw-la extorqueat_fw-la aliquid_fw-la imò_fw-la multa_fw-la quae_fw-la dicantur_fw-la contra_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la ut_fw-la intus_fw-la in_o animo_fw-la perdat_fw-la foris_fw-la victor_n abscedat_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la patitur_fw-la se_fw-la vinci_fw-la licet_fw-la sciat_fw-la vera_fw-la esse_fw-la quae_fw-la audit_n the_o apostle_n call_v they_o impudent_a that_o hold_v by_o contention_n for_o it_o can_v be_v choose_v but_o that_o contention_n must_v force_v a_o man_n to_o say_v some_o thing_n or_o rather_o many_o thing_n against_o his_o conscience_n that_o he_o lose_v in_o his_o mind_n within_o to_o the_o intent_n outwarde_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v the_o victory_n for_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v conquer_v no_o although_o he_o know_v the_o thing_n that_o he_o hear_v be_v never_o so_o true_a afterward_o be_v thus_o carry_v away_o with_o contention_n peccare_fw-la and_o more_o regard_v their_o own_o reputation_n than_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n as_o lactantius_n say_v they_o seek_v reason_n and_o shift_n to_o colour_n their_o error_n so_o seneca_n write_v of_o the_o poet_n ouide_v non_fw-la ignoravit_fw-la vitia_fw-la sva_fw-la sed_fw-la amavit_fw-la he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o his_o own_o fault_n but_o rather_o have_v a_o fancy_n to_o they_o touchinge_v gregorius_n neocaesarienââs_v s._n basiles_n excuse_n be_v good_a so_o s._n augustine_n write_n against_o the_o pelagian_n seem_v sometime_o to_o lean_a to_o far_o to_o the_o contrary_a and_o to_o become_v a_o manichée_o as_o also_o write_n against_o the_o manichée_n he_o seem_v sometime_o to_o be_v a_o pelagian_n 41._o the_o like_a s._n basile_n write_v of_o one_o dionysius_n that_o contendinge_v over_o earnest_o against_o the_o heretic_n sabellius_n seem_v to_o fall_v into_o the_o contrary_a heresy_n thus_o the_o holy_a father_n in_o the_o sway_n of_o disputation_n use_v oftentimes_o to_o enlarge_v their_o talk_n above_o the_o common_a course_n of_o truth_n but_o special_o when_o they_o entreat_v of_o the_o nature_n &_o effect_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n to_o the_o end_n to_o withdraw_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n from_o the_o sensible_a &_o corruptible_a creature_n that_o they_o see_v before_o they_o to_o the_o contemplation_n of_o thing_n spiritual_a that_o be_v in_o heaven_n in_o this_o sort_n s._n chrysostome_n say_v 4â_n figimus_fw-la dentes_fw-la in_o carne_n christi_fw-la we_o fasten_v our_o tooth_n in_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o again_o philogonio_n videmus_fw-la dominum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la in_o cunis_n iacentem_fw-la &_o fascijs_fw-la involutum_fw-la we_o see_v our_o lord_n lieinge_v in_o his_o cradel_n and_o swath_v in_o band_n and_o again_o turba_n circumstans_fw-la rubet_fw-la sanguine_a christi_fw-la 3._o the_o company_n stand_a about_o be_v make_v red_a with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n likewise_o again_o he_o say_v hic_fw-la sermo_n sanguine_a infectus_fw-la omnes_fw-la aspersit_fw-la these_o word_n be_v stain_v with_o blood_n have_v sprinkle_v all_o man_n 16_o so_o likewise_o s._n bernarde_n totum_fw-la christum_n desidero_fw-la videre_fw-la &_o tangere_fw-la &_o non_fw-la id_fw-la solùm_fw-la sed_fw-la accedere_fw-la ad_fw-la sacrosanctum_fw-la eius_fw-la lateris_fw-la vulnus_fw-la ostâum_fw-la arcae_fw-la quod_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o latere_fw-la â_o ut_fw-la totus_fw-la intrem_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la cor_fw-la jesu._n i_o desire_v to_o see_v whole_a christ_n and_o to_o touch_v he_o and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o also_o to_o come_v to_o the_o holy_a wound_n of_o his_o side_n which_o be_v the_o door_n that_o be_v make_v in_o the_o side_n of_o the_o ark_n that_o i_o may_v whole_o enter_v even_o unto_o the_o heart_n of_o jesus_n thus_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v evermore_o use_v upon_o occasion_n to_o force_v and_o avance_v their_o word_n above_o the_o tenoure_n of_o common_a speech_n now_o mark_v good_a christian_a reader_n how_o handsome_o m._n hardinge_n appli_v these_o thing_n unto_o his_o purpose_n certain_o tertullian_n in_o these_o word_n even_o by_o m._n hardinge_n own_o judgement_n enlarge_v nothing_o nor_o use_v any_o such_o contentious_a or_o fiery_a speech_n over_o and_o above_o the_o truth_n but_o rather_o contrariwise_o he_o aââteth_v &_o minish_v as_o much_o as_o he_o possible_o may_v of_o the_o truth_n for_o the_o thing_n that_o m._n hardinge_n say_v be_v christ_n very_a natural_a body_n tertullian_n say_v it_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n meet_v the_o thing_n that_o in_o deed_n and_o undoubted_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n that_o tertullian_n by_o m._n hardinge_n exposition_n call_v a_o show_n or_o accident_n of_o bread_n to_o be_v short_a that_o thing_n wherein_o rest_v all_o thing_n tertullian_n ãâã_d conclusion_n make_v nothing_o yet_o m._n hardinge_n favourable_o excuse_v he_o for_o that_o he_o write_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d as_o do_v gregorius_n neocaesariensis_n and_o therefore_o through_o heat_n of_o contention_n seem_v somewhat_o to_o overreache_v the_o truth_n thus_o he_o that_o call_v christ_n body_n a_o figure_n substance_n accident_n and_o abase_v his_o talk_n and_o speak_v less_o than_o he_o shall_v do_v by_o m._n hardinge_n divinity_n amplifi_v enlarge_v overreach_v and_o speak_v more_o than_o he_o shall_v do_v it_o be_v a_o very_a narrow_a hole_n that_o these_o man_n will_v not_o seek_v to_o shift_v out_o at_o origen_n expoundinge_a these_o word_n 7._o onlesse_a you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n say_v thus_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n s._n cyprian_n say_v chrisma_n significaâa_o &_o significantia_fw-la ijsdem_fw-la nominibus_fw-la censentur_fw-la the_o thing_n that_o signify_v and_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v signify_v be_v count_v both_o by_o one_o name_n s._n hierome_n say_v 26._o christ_n represent_v the_o verity_n of_o his_o body_n s._n augustine_n say_v 3_o christ_n deliver_v to_o his_o disciple_n the_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n gelasius_n call_v the_o sacrament_n similitudinem_fw-la &_o imaginem_fw-la a_o similitude_n and_o a_o image_n of_o christ_n body_n s._n basile_n call_v it_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o sampler_n dionysius_n call_v it_o signum_fw-la a_o token_n s._n ambrose_n use_v all_o these_o word_n together_o imago_fw-la figura_fw-la typus_fw-la similitudo_fw-la significatur_fw-la a_o image_n a_o figure_n a_o token_n a_o likeness_n it_o be_v signify_v time_n will_v not_o suffer_v i_o to_o reckon_v up_o the_o rest_n eutychem_n for_o to_o this_o purpose_n and_o with_o such_o word_n they_o write_v all_o and_o none_o otherwise_o and_o must_v we_o needs_o believe_v upon_o m_n hardinge_n report_n that_o all_o these_o father_n speak_v in_o such_o heat_n liturgia_fw-la and_o in_o such_o fury_n of_o contention_n and_o have_v no_o manner_n regard_v to_o the_o exact_v use_v of_o their_o word_n true_o 3._o as_o it_o be_v say_v before_o tertullian_n write_v grave_o and_o sober_o and_o without_o any_o token_n of_o impatient_a heat_n and_o that_o not_o light_o or_o sclender_o touchinge_v the_o matter_n with_o one_o hot_a word_n initiantur_fw-la or_o two_o as_o it_o be_v here_o suppose_a but_o clear_o proovinge_v the_o same_o by_o a_o substantial_a and_o full_a conclusion_n for_o to_o prove_v against_o martion_n the_o heretic_n that_o christ_n have_v the_o very_a substance_n and_o nature_n of_o a_o man_n body_n he_o use_v this_o reason_n a_o figure_n presuppose_v the_o verity_n of_o a_o thing_n whereof_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n but_o christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n the_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n therefore_o christ_n have_v in_o deed_n not_o a_o fantasy_n or_o a_o show_n but_o a_o natural_a and_o a_o very_a body_n the_o force_n hereof_o stand_v upon_o this_o ground_n that_o
he_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v bread_n and_o not_o that_o which_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v no_o man_n may_v be_v bold_a to_o work_v such_o open_a corruption_n but_o m._n hardinge_n for_o where_o as_o tertullians_n word_n be_v plain_a si_fw-mi scierit_fw-la maritus_fw-la tuus_fw-la panem_fw-la esse_fw-la credet_fw-la non_fw-la illum_fw-la panem_fw-la qui_fw-la dicitur_fw-la if_o thy_o husband_n know_v it_o be_v a_o infidel_n he_o will_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v bare_a bread_n but_o not_o that_o bread_n that_o it_o be_v call_v m._n hardinge_n think_v it_o better_a to_o translate_v it_o thus_o he_o will_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v bread_n but_o not_o he_o who_o it_o be_v call_v as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o personne_fw-fr of_o a_o man._n this_o dealing_v and_o the_o whole_a understand_v of_o tertullians_n mind_n be_v open_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o first_o article_n and_o in_o the_o seventeenth_o division_n certain_o false_a translation_n make_v no_o sufficient_a proufe_v now_o mark_v thou_o good_a christian_a reader_n into_o how_o many_o and_o how_o narrow_a straits_n m._n hardinge_n have_v cast_v himself_o to_o avoid_v the_o force_n of_o these_o few_o plain_a word_n of_o tertullian_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la figura_fw-la corporis_fw-la mei_fw-la this_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n first_o the_o outward_a and_o as_o he_o call_v it_o the_o holy_a form_n of_o bread_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n accident_n invisible_o hide_v under_o the_o accident_n seconde_o the_o same_o body_n so_o hide_v and_o invisible_a be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n visible_a three_o tertullian_n as_o it_o be_v here_o presume_v understand_v not_o the_o very_a grammatical_a and_o literal_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n four_o the_o same_o tertullian_n be_v carry_v away_o with_o heat_n and_o contention_n and_o either_o know_v not_o or_o care_v not_o what_o he_o say_v five_o by_o this_o new_a exposition_n he_o be_v make_v to_o join_v with_o martion_n the_o heretic_n against_o who_o he_o write_v and_o so_o to_o conclude_v direct_o against_o himself_o i_o pass_v over_o the_o fantasteinge_n of_o form_n accident_n outward_a element_n miraculous_a change_n secret_a presence_n and_o other_o like_a force_a term_n whereof_o tertullian_n know_v none_o to_o be_v short_a m._n hardinge_n with_o his_o strange_a construction_n and_o martion_n the_o old_a heretic_n hold_v both_o by_o one_o principle_n it_o be_v far_o better_o for_o a_o man_n that_o mean_v truth_n to_o leave_v these_o unsaverie_a and_o unsensible_a gloss_n and_o simple_o and_o plain_o to_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o this_o ancient_a learned_a father_n expound_v they_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la figura_fw-la corporis_fw-la mei_fw-la this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n glosa_n so_o shall_v tertullian_n agree_v both_o in_o sense_n and_o word_n with_o all_o the_o old_a catholic_a writer_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n so_o shall_v he_o agree_v with_o the_o common_a gloze_v note_v in_o the_o decree_n voco_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la significat_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la it_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n 3._o that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o signify_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n so_o shall_v he_o agree_v with_o maximus_n the_o greek_a scholiast_n upon_o dionysius_n signa_fw-la sunt_fw-la haec_fw-la non_fw-la autem_fw-la veritas_fw-la these_o be_v token_n but_o not_o the_o truth_n itself_o to_o conclude_v 1._o so_o shall_v tertullian_n agree_v with_o himself_o for_o thus_o he_o write_v christus_fw-la non_fw-la reprobavit_fw-la panem_fw-la quo_fw-la ipsum_fw-la corpus_fw-la suum_fw-la repraesentavit_fw-la christ_n refuse_v not_o bread_n wherewith_o he_o represent_v his_o own_o body_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .12_o division_n the_o like_a answer_n may_v be_v make_v to_o the_o objection_n bring_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n contra_fw-la adimantum_fw-la manichaeum_fw-la ca._n 13._o non_fw-la dubitavit_fw-la dominus_fw-la dicere_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la cùm_fw-la tamen_fw-la daret_fw-la signum_fw-la corporis_fw-la svi_fw-la our_o lord_n stick_v not_o to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o notwithstanding_o he_o give_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n say_v for_o this_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o s._n augustine_n in_o fight_a against_o the_o manichee_n oftentimes_o use_v not_o his_o own_o sense_n and_o meaning_n but_o those_o thing_n which_o by_o some_o mean_a how_o so_o ever_o it_o be_v may_v seem_v to_o geve_v he_o advantage_n against_o they_o so_o as_o he_o may_v put_v they_o to_o the_o worst_a as_o he_o witness_v himself_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr bono_fw-mi perseverantiae_fw-la ca._n 11._o &_o .12_o the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n s._n augustine_n saithe_n m._n hardinge_n in_o the_o chafe_n and_o rage_n of_o disputation_n sometime_o forget_v himself_o and_o utter_v his_o word_n unaduised_o and_o not_o only_o that_o but_o also_o afterward_o publissh_v the_o same_o his_o unaduised_a speech_n in_o open_a writing_n unto_o the_o world_n as_o a_o man_n séekinge_v only_o to_o conquer_v his_o adversary_n but_o whether_o by_o right_n or_o by_o wrong_n by_o truth_n or_o by_o falseheade_n he_o have_v no_o care_n but_o o_o gentle_a and_o easy_a heretic_n that_o upon_o such_o proof_n will_v so_o light_o yield_v unto_o s._n augustine_n easy_n also_o be_v these_o catholic_n that_o in_o so_o childish_a gheass_n will_v geve_v credit_n to_o m._n hardinge_n certain_o s._n augustine_n for_o his_o mildness_n and_o sobriety_n both_o in_o disputation_n and_o also_o otherwise_o have_v the_o praise_n above_o all_o other_o neither_o doothe_v there_o appear_v in_o that_o whole_a book_n against_o adimantus_n any_o token_n to_o the_o contrary_n some_o part_n of_o their_o variance_n grow_v upon_o occasion_n of_o these_o word_n sanguis_fw-la est_fw-la anima_fw-la the_o blood_n be_v the_o soul_n for_o declaration_n whereof_o s._n augustine_n without_o any_o manner_n heat_n of_o contention_n that_o may_v appear_v say_v thus_o ita_fw-la sanguis_fw-la est_fw-la anima_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la petra_n erat_fw-la christus_fw-la so_o be_v the_o blood_n the_o soul_n even_o as_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n and_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o join_v these_o three_o sentence_n all_o together_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o soul_n the_o rock_n be_v christ_n and_o this_o be_v my_o body_n as_o be_v all_o both_o of_o like_a meaning_n and_o also_o of_o like_a manner_n of_o utterance_n s._n augustine_n never_o know_v any_o of_o these_o m._n hardinge_n late_o invent_v holy_a form_z or_o covertes_n or_o secrecy_n but_o in_o most_o plain_a wise_a he_o saithe_v 12._o dabat_fw-la signum_fw-la corporis_fw-la svi_fw-la christ_n gâue_v a_o token_n of_o his_o body_n agréeinge_v therein_o both_o with_o himself_o and_o also_o with_o all_o other_o ancient_a catholic_a father_n but_o if_o m._n harding_n not_o show_v we_o any_o suspicion_n or_o token_n of_o inordinate_a heat_n in_o that_o reverend_n master_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 25._o may_v tell_v we_o only_o of_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v thus_o unaduised_o carry_v away_o with_o vehemency_n of_o disputation_n and_o tempest_n of_o talk_n then_o may_v he_o also_o easy_o dispatch_v all_o other_o the_o ancient_a learned_a father_n and_o say_v what_o so_o ever_o they_o write_v that_o like_v not_o he_o they_o write_v in_o a_o rage_n and_o in_o their_o fury_n but_o if_o s._n augustine_n be_v alive_a he_o will_v rather_o say_v that_o m._n hardinge_n be_v somewhat_o blow_v away_o with_o the_o wind_n and_o wave_n of_o contention_n and_o have_v much_o forget_v himself_o and_o talk_v in_o his_o heat_n he_o know_v not_o or_o care_v not_o what_o s._n ambrose_n upon_o occasion_n expoundinge_a these_o word_n saithe_v thus_o cùm_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la hoc_fw-la loco_fw-la animam_fw-la diceret_fw-la utique_fw-la significavit_fw-la aliud_fw-la esse_fw-la animam_fw-la aliud_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la when_o moses_n in_o this_o place_n call_v the_o blood_n the_o soul_n doubtless_o he_o mean_v thereby_o that_o the_o blood_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o soul_n a_o other_o notwithstanding_o he_o seem_v by_o word_n to_o make_v they_o one_o even_o so_o likewise_o may_v we_o say_v when_o christ_n utter_v these_o word_n this_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n he_o mean_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o his_o body_n a_o other_o notwithstanding_o the_o word_n seem_v to_o sound_v otherwise_o m._n hardinge_n the_o .13_o division_n gregory_n nazianzene_n oratione_fw-la 4._o in_o sanctum_fw-la pascha_fw-la show_v difference_n between_o the_o passeover_n of_o the_o law_n which_o the_o jew_n do_v eat_v and_o that_o which_o we_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v eat_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o which_o christ_n shall_v eat_v with_o we_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o father_n utter_v such_o word_n as_o whereby_o he_o call_v that_o we_o reeive_v here_o a_o
euangelium_fw-la est_fw-la dei_fw-la verbi_fw-la domini_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la praesentia_fw-la ad_fw-la humani_fw-la generis_fw-la salutem_fw-la incarnati_fw-la the_o gospel_n be_v the_o presence_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n incarnate_a unto_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n and_o therefore_o s._n augustine_n saithe_v nostra_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la daunt_v salutem_fw-la judaeorum_n sacramenta_fw-la promittebant_fw-la saluatorem_fw-la non_fw-la quòd_fw-la iam_fw-la acceperimus_fw-la vitam_fw-la aeternam_fw-la sed_fw-la quòd_fw-la iam_fw-la venerit_fw-la christus_fw-la qui_fw-la per_fw-la prophetas_fw-la pronuntiabatur_fw-la our_o sacrament_n do_v geve_v savation_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o jew_n promise_v a_o saviour_n i_o speak_v not_o this_o for_o that_o we_o have_v already_o attein_v euerlastinge_a life_n but_o for_o that_o christ_n be_v already_o come_v that_o be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o prophet_n out_o of_o these_o father_n word_n m._n hardinge_n reason_v in_o this_o wise_a the_o brightness_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v but_o a_o figure_n in_o comparison_n of_o that_o brightness_n that_o be_v to_o come_v ergo_fw-la christ_n body_n be_v secret_o hide_a under_o the_o outward_a form_n and_o accident_n of_o the_o sacrament_n how_o be_v it_o it_o may_v soon_o appear_v unto_o the_o discrete_a and_o indifferent_a reader_n that_o in_o all_o these_o word_n there_o be_v no_o manner_n mention_v neither_o of_o secrecy_n nor_o of_o presence_n nor_o of_o absence_n nor_o of_o form_n nor_o of_o element_n nor_o of_o accident_n nor_o in_o express_a word_n of_o any_o sacrament_n nazianzene_n notwithstanding_o he_o maiâ_n seem_v to_o touch_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n yet_o in_o deed_n he_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o spiritual_a food_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o it_o be_v plain_a both_o by_o the_o place_n itself_o and_o also_o by_o the_o word_n that_o immediate_o follow_v after_o the_o word_n that_o go_v before_o be_v these_o christus_fw-la bibet_fw-la nobiscum_fw-la nowm_fw-la vinum_fw-la in_o regno_fw-la patris_fw-la christ_n will_v drink_v with_o we_o new_a wine_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o father_n the_o word_n ãâã_d that_o follow_v be_v these_o quis_fw-la est_fw-la hic_fw-la porus_fw-la &_o quae_fw-la est_fw-la haec_fw-la oblectatio_fw-la nostra_fw-la quidem_fw-la discere_fw-la illius_fw-la verò_fw-la docere_fw-la doctrina_fw-la enim_fw-la etiam_fw-la docenti_fw-la alimenti_fw-la instar_fw-la est_fw-la what_o be_v this_o drink_n and_o what_o be_v this_o pleasure_n of_o our_o part_n it_o be_v to_o learn_v of_o christ_n part_n it_o be_v to_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n even_o unto_o he_o that_o teach_v be_v a_o kind_n of_o meat_n it_o be_v very_o much_o for_o m._n harding_n thus_o to_o conclude_v his_o imagination_n of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o these_o father_n that_o speak_v not_o one_o word_n of_o the_o sacrament_n touch_v that_o be_v here_o allege_v of_o secrete_n and_o privy_a be_v the_o catholic_a father_n do_v confess_v that_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a poenitentiae_fw-la so_o s._n augustine_n say_v quicunque_fw-la in_o manna_n christum_n intellexerunt_fw-la eundem_fw-la quem_fw-la nos_fw-la cibum_fw-la spiritualem_fw-la manducaverunt_fw-la as_o many_o as_o in_o manna_n understand_v christ_n feed_v of_o the_o same_o spiritual_a bread_n that_o we_o feed_v of_o again_o he_o say_v 45._o videte_fw-la ergo_fw-la fide_fw-la manente_fw-la signa_fw-la variata_fw-la ibi_fw-la petra_n christus_fw-la nobis_fw-la christus_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o altari_fw-la dei_fw-la ponitur_fw-la behold_v the_o faith_n stand_a one_o the_o sign_n or_o sacrament_n be_v change_v there_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n unto_o we_o that_o thing_n be_v christ_n that_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o altar_n as_o christ_n be_v now_o here_o so_o be_v christ_n then_o there_o and_o as_o christ_n be_v now_o in_o the_o bread_n so_o be_v christ_n then_o in_o the_o rock_n and_o none_o otherwise_o but_o what_o can_v be_v so_o plain_a as_o that_o nazianzene_n himself_o write_v who_o m._n hardinge_n have_v choose_v special_o for_o his_o author_n etc._n these_o be_v his_o word_n pellent_fw-la i_o ab_fw-la altaribus_fw-la at_o ego_fw-la novi_fw-la aliud_fw-la altar_n cvius_fw-la ea_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la nunc_fw-la videntur_fw-la exemplaria_fw-la tantùm_fw-la sunt_fw-la non_fw-la manu_fw-la aut_fw-la ascia_fw-la elaboratum_fw-la mentis_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la &_o contemplationis_fw-la ascensus_fw-la ibi_fw-la astabo_fw-la &_o acceptabilia_fw-la offeram_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la oblationem_fw-la &_o holocausta_fw-la quae_fw-la tantò_fw-la praestantiora_fw-la sunt_fw-la quà m_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la nunc_fw-la aguntur_fw-la quantò_fw-la veritas_fw-la potior_fw-la est_fw-la quà m_fw-la vmbra_fw-la they_o will_v drive_v i_o from_o the_o altar_n or_o communion_n table_n but_o i_o know_v a_o other_o altar_n whereof_o all_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v now_o see_v be_v but_o samplar_n not_o wrought_v by_o hand_n or_o instrument_n it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o the_o elevation_n of_o the_o heart_n there_o will_v i_o stand_v and_o offer_v up_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n which_o so_o far_o exceed_v the_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v make_v here_o as_o the_o truth_n exceed_v a_o shadow_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .14_o division_n certain_a father_n use_v the_o word_n figura_fw-la signum_fw-la &_o sacramentum_fw-la that_o be_v sign_n and_o sacrament_n in_o the_o same_o signification_n s._n augustine_n in_o libro_fw-la sententiarum_fw-la prosperi_n say_v thus_o caro_fw-la eius_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la forma_fw-la panis_n opertam_fw-la in_o sacramento_n accipimus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la eius_fw-la quem_fw-la sub_fw-la vini_fw-la specie_fw-la &_o sapore_fw-la potamus_fw-la caro_fw-la videlicet_fw-la carnis_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la est_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la carne_n &_o sanguine_a utroque_fw-la inuisibili_fw-la spirituali_fw-la intelligibili_fw-la signatur_fw-la visibile_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o palpabile_fw-la plenum_fw-la gratia_fw-la omnium_fw-la virtutum_fw-la &_o divina_fw-la maiestate_fw-la it_o be_v his_o flesh_n that_o we_o receive_v coover_v with_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o his_o blood_n that_o under_o the_o shape_n and_o savoure_n of_o wine_n we_o drink_v sooth_o flesh_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o blood_n by_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o blood_n both_o invisible_a spiritual_a intelligible_a our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n his_o visible_a and_o palpable_a body_n full_a of_o the_o grace_n of_o all_o virtue_n and_o divine_a majesty_n be_v signify_v or_o as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o sign_n note_v in_o these_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n we_o see_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n call_v a_o sacrament_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o the_o blood_n a_o sacrament_n of_o his_o blood_n in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v cover_v with_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n yet_o very_o and_o in_o substance_n present_a and_o likewise_o he_o let_v not_o to_o call_v this_o verity_n or_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o thus_o covert_o exhibit_v a_o sign_n of_o christ_n visible_a and_o palpable_a body_n so_o that_o the_o name_n of_o a_o sign_n do_v not_o import_v a_o separation_n from_o the_o truth_n but_o show_v a_o distincte_n manner_n of_o the_o truth_n exhibit_v and_o therefore_o accord_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o exhibitinge_v it_o be_v not_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n for_o that_o the_o flesh_n do_v not_o exhibit_v itself_o in_o his_o own_o shape_n but_o in_o a_o sacrament_n coover_v the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n in_o this_o saieinge_n of_o s._n augustine_n m._n hardinge_n seem_v special_o to_o note_v these_o three_o word_n forma_fw-la operta_fw-la and_o inuisibilis_fw-la which_o be_v answer_v i_o hoape_v the_o force_n of_o his_o collection_n will_v soon_o appear_v first_o if_o m._n hardinge_n will_v say_v that_o this_o word_n forma_fw-la must_v needs_o be_v take_v for_o the_o outward_a show_n and_o appearance_n of_o bread_n then_o must_v he_o needs_o fall_v into_o a_o great_a inconvenience_n and_o become_v either_o a_o patron_n or_o a_o scholar_n of_o the_o old_a heretic_n martion_n who_o upon_o the_o very_a same_o word_n erect_v his_o heresy_n and_o of_o these_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n forman_n serui_fw-la suscepit_fw-la reason_v then_o as_z m._n hardinge_n do_v now_o ergo_fw-la christ_n have_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o outward_a form_n and_o appearance_n or_o shape_v of_o a_o man_n body_n but_o it_o be_v know_v to_o the_o learned_a that_o as_o well_o emonge_a the_o philosopher_n as_o also_o emonge_a the_o old_a catholic_a learned_a father_n these_o word_n forma_fw-la and_o species_n be_v take_v not_o only_o for_o the_o outward_a appearance_n but_o also_o for_o nature_n and_o substance_n if_o self_n so_o s._n hierome_n imagine_v christ_n to_o say_v 11._o declinavi_fw-la ad_fw-la eos_fw-la deserens_fw-la regna_fw-la coelorum_fw-la ut_fw-la cum_fw-la eye_n vescerer_fw-la assumpta_fw-la forma_fw-la hominis_fw-la
blood_n the_o capernaite_n hear_v his_o word_n imagine_v even_o as_o m._n hardinge_n now_o do_v that_o he_o mean_v a_o very_a fleash_o eatinge_v with_o their_o bodily_a mouth_n and_o therefore_o begin_v to_o be_v offend_v and_o say_v his_o speech_n be_v over_o hard_a and_o depart_v from_o he_o upon_o occasion_n hereof_o s._n augustine_n write_v thus_o ipsi_fw-la erant_fw-la duri_fw-la non_fw-la sermo_fw-la christus_fw-la instruxit_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la remanserant_fw-la &_o ait_fw-la illis_fw-la spiritus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la vivificat_fw-la caro_fw-la autem_fw-la nihil_fw-la prodest_fw-la verba_fw-la quae_fw-la locutus_fw-la sum_fw-la vobis_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o vita_fw-la spiritualiter_fw-la intelligite_fw-la quod_fw-la locutus_fw-la sum_fw-la non_fw-la hoc_fw-la corpus_fw-la quod_fw-la videtis_fw-la manducaturi_fw-la estis_fw-la nec_fw-la bibituri_fw-la illum_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la quem_fw-la fusuri_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la i_o crucifigent_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la aliquod_fw-la vobis_fw-la commendavi_fw-la spiritualiter_fw-la intellectum_fw-la vivificabit_fw-la vos_fw-la they_o be_v hard_a christ_n word_n be_v not_o hard_a christ_n instruct_v they_o that_o remain_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o geve_v life_n the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v be_v spirit_n and_o life_n understand_v you_o spiritual_o that_o i_o have_v speak_v you_o shall_v not_o eat_v this_o body_n that_o you_o see_v neither_o shall_v you_o drink_v that_o blood_n that_o they_o shall_v sheadde_n that_o shall_v crucify_v i_o i_o have_v recommend_v unto_o you_o a_o certain_a sacrament_n be_v spiritual_o understand_v it_o will_v geve_v you_o life_n these_o word_n be_v plain_a of_o themselves_o and_o need_v no_o long_a construction_n the_o difference_n that_o m._n hardinge_n have_v divise_v bytweene_n christ_n body_n in_o substance_n and_o the_o self_n same_o body_n in_o respect_n of_o quality_n be_v a_o vain_a gloze_v of_o his_o own_o without_o substance_n for_o s._n augustine_n say_v not_o as_z m._n hardinge_n will_v fain_o have_v he_o to_o say_v you_o shall_v not_o eat_v this_o body_n with_o your_o bodily_a mouth_n quale_n videtis_fw-la under_o such_o condition_n and_o quality_n of_o mortality_n and_o corruption_n as_o yowe_o now_o see_v it_o but_o quod_fw-la videtis_fw-la that_o be_v yowe_o shall_v not_o eat_v the_o same_o body_n in_o nature_n and_o substance_n that_o now_o you_o see_v neither_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n at_o that_o time_n when_o he_o minister_v the_o holy_a communion_n and_o speak_v these_o word_n to_o his_o disciple_n endue_v with_o any_o such_o quality_n for_o it_o be_v neither_o spiritual_a nor_o invisible_a nor_o immortal_a but_o contrariwise_o earthly_a visible_a and_o subject_v to_o death_n to_o be_v short_a s._n augustine_n speak_v not_o one_o word_n neither_o of_o this_o carnal_a presence_n nor_o of_o secret_a be_v under_o coverte_n nor_o say_v as_o m._n hardinge_n saithe_v that_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n nor_o imagine_v in_o christ_n two_o sundry_a sort_n of_o natural_a body_n nor_o know_v any_o one_o of_o all_o these_o m._n hardinge_n strange_a collection_n thus_o only_o he_o say_v non_fw-la hoc_fw-la corpus_fw-la quod_fw-la videtis_fw-la manducaturi_fw-la estis_fw-la touchinge_v your_o bodily_a mouth_n you_o shall_v not_o eat_v this_o body_n of_o i_o that_o you_o see_v of_o which_o word_n m._n hardinge_n contrary_a to_o s._n augustine_n express_v and_o plain_a meaning_n as_o his_o common_a wont_a be_v conclude_v the_o contrary_a ergo_fw-la with_o your_o bodily_a mouth_n you_o shall_v eat_v this_o self_n same_o body_n in_o substance_n that_o you_o see_v now_o for_o as_o much_o as_o m._n hardinge_n will_v say_v we_o divise_v figure_n of_o our_o self_n without_o cause_n and_o that_o christ_n word_n be_v plain_a and_o ought_v simple_o to_o be_v take_v as_o they_o sound_v without_o any_o manner_n figure_n i_o think_v it_o therefore_o necessary_a in_o few_o word_n to_o show_v both_o what_o have_v leadde_v we_o and_o all_o the_o ancient_a writer_n and_o old_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o to_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o also_o how_o many_o and_o how_o strange_a and_o monstrous_a figure_n m._n hardinge_n with_o his_o brother_n be_v drive_v to_o use_v in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o same_o and_o to_o pass_v over_o all_o the_o old_a learned_a father_n which_o in_o their_o write_n common_o call_v the_o sacrament_n a_o representation_n a_o remembrance_n a_o memory_n a_o image_n a_o likeness_n a_o sampler_n a_o token_n a_o sign_n and_o a_o figure_n etc._n etc._n christ_n himself_o before_o all_o other_o seem_v to_o lead_v we_o hereunto_o both_o for_o that_o at_o the_o very_a institution_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n he_o say_v thus_o do_v you_o this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o also_o for_o that_o in_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n speak_v of_o the_o eatinge_v of_o his_o flesh_n he_o forewarn_v his_o disciple_n of_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n and_o show_v they_o that_o his_o very_a natural_a flesh_n fleashe_o receive_v can_v profit_v nothing_o moreover_o it_o be_v not_o agreeable_a neither_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o man_n really_n and_o in_o deed_n to_o eat_v a_o man_n body_n nor_o to_o a_o man_n body_n really_n and_o in_o deed_n without_o figure_n to_o be_v eat_v for_o that_o s._n augustine_n say_v be_v flagitium_fw-la &_o facinus_fw-la a_o horrible_a wickedness_n 16._o and_o again_o he_o saithe_v horribilius_fw-la est_fw-la humanam_fw-la carnem_fw-la manducare_fw-la quà m_fw-la perimere_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la humanum_fw-la bibere_fw-la quà m_fw-la fundere_fw-la it_o be_v a_o more_o horrible_a thing_n to_o eat_v man_n flesh_n than_o it_o be_v to_o kill_v it_o and_o to_o drink_v man_n blood_n than_o it_o be_v to_o shed_v it_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o conclude_v 9_o figura_fw-la ergo_fw-la est_fw-la therefore_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n cyrillus_n saithe_v sacramentum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la non_fw-la asseverat_fw-la hominis_fw-la manducationem_fw-la our_o sacrament_n avouch_v not_o the_o eatinge_v of_o a_o man_n again_o in_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n we_o find_v duo_o disparata_fw-la that_o be_v two_o sundry_a term_n of_o sundry_a signification_n 16_o and_o nature_n panis_n and_o corpus_n which_o as_o the_o learned_a know_fw-mi can_v possible_o be_v uerify_v the_o one_o of_o the_o other_o without_o a_o figure_n by_o side_n all_o this_o in_o every_o of_o these_o clause_n which_o so_o near_o touch_v christ_n institution_n there_o be_v a_o figure_n to_o drink_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o wine_n in_o the_o cup_n it_o be_v a_o figure_n to_o drink_v judgement_n theodoreti_n judgement_n be_v a_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o can_v be_v drunken_a with_o the_o mouth_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n my_o body_n that_o be_v give_v that_o be_v break_v in_o steed_n of_o that_o shall_v be_v give_v and_o that_o shall_v be_v break_v be_v a_o figure_n i_o be_o bread_n christ_n real_o and_o in_o deed_n be_v no_o material_a bread_n it_o be_v a_o figure_n the_o bread_n be_v the_o communication_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n in_o steed_n of_o these_o word_n it_o represent_v the_o communication_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n it_o be_v a_o figure_n the_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n the_o cup_n in_o deed_n and_o very_o be_v not_o the_o new_a testament_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n in_o every_o of_o these_o clause_n m._n hardinge_n must_v needs_o see_v and_o confess_v a_o figure_n and_o so_o it_o appear_v that_o in_o the_o very_a institution_n of_o christ_n holy_a mystery_n there_o be_v use_v a_o great_a many_o and_o sundry_a figure_n all_o notwithstanding_o both_o consonant_n to_o reason_n and_o also_o agreeable_a to_o god_n holy_a word_n but_o now_o mark_v well_o i_o beseech_v thou_o good_a christian_a reader_n how_o many_o and_o what_o kind_n of_o figure_n m._n hardinge_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o company_n have_v be_v force_v to_o imagine_v in_o these_o case_n first_o they_o say_v this_o pronowne_a hoc_fw-la this_o signify_v not_o this_o bread_n as_o all_o the_o old_a writer_n understande_v it_o but_z individuum_fw-la vagun_n which_o be_v neither_o bread_n nor_o any_o certain_a determine_a thing_n else_o but_o only_o one_o certain_a thing_n at_o large_a in_o generality_n this_o uerbe_n est_fw-la they_z expound_v thus_o est_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la transubstantiatur_fw-la such_o a_o figure_n as_o never_o be_v use_v of_o any_o old_a authoure_n either_o holy_a or_o profane_a or_o heretic_n or_o catholic_a or_o greek_a or_o latin_a in_o these_o word_n take_v you_o eat_v you_o this_o be_v my_o body_n they_o have_v find_v a_o figure_n call_v hysteron_fw-gr proteron_fw-gr which_o be_v when_o the_o whole_a speech_n be_v out_o of_o order_n and_o that_o set_v byhinde_v that_o shall_v go_v before_o for_o thus_o they_o be_v drive_v to_o shift_v it_o and_o turn_v it_o this_o be_v
christum_n persequuntur_fw-la qui_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la christiani_n dicuntur_fw-la amici_n tui_fw-la deus_fw-la &_o proximi_fw-la tui_fw-la adversus_fw-la te_fw-la appropinquaverunt_fw-la &_o stererunt_fw-la coniurasse_n videtur_fw-la contrate_n universitas_fw-la populi_fw-la christiani_n a_o minimus_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la maximum_fw-la a_o planta_fw-la pedis_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la verticem_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la sanitas_fw-la ulla_fw-la egressa_fw-la est_fw-la iniquitas_fw-la à _fw-la senioribus_fw-la judicibus_fw-la vicarijs_fw-la tuis_fw-la qui_fw-la videntur_fw-la regere_fw-la populum_fw-la tuum_fw-la arcem_fw-la zion_n occupaverunt_fw-la apprehenderunt_fw-la munitiones_fw-la &_o universam_fw-la deinceps_fw-la liberè_fw-la &_o potestatiuè_fw-fr tradiderunt_fw-la incendio_fw-la civitatem_fw-la they_o be_v now_o become_v the_o persecutor_n of_o christ_n that_o of_o his_o name_n be_v call_v christian_n o_o god_n thy_o friend_n that_o be_v neârest_v about_o thou_o approache_v near_o and_o stand_v against_o the._n the_o whole_a universal_a body_n of_o christian_a people_n seem_v to_o have_v conspire_v against_o thou_o even_o from_o the_o low_a unto_o the_o high_a wickedness_n proceed_v forth_o from_o thy_o vicar_n the_o elder_a judge_n that_o seem_v to_o govern_v thy_o people_n like_o heathen_n and_o infidel_n they_o have_v invade_v thy_o castel_n of_o zion_n which_o be_v thy_o holy_a church_n and_o have_v take_v all_o her_o hold_n and_o free_o and_o by_o authority_n have_v throw_v thy_o whole_a city_n into_o the_o fire_n again_o he_o say_v 6._o there_o remain_v now_o nothing_o but_o that_o antichrist_n the_o man_n of_o sin_n the_o child_n of_o perdition_n be_v revel_v seeinge_v therefore_o the_o resolution_n of_o these_o judge_n be_v oftentimes_o uncertain_a &_o doubtful_a i_o will_v not_o say_v as_o s._n bernarde_n seem_v to_o say_v ungodly_a and_o wicked_a we_o may_v the_o more_o indifferent_o and_o the_o better_a say_v now_o to_o m._n hardinge_n as_o s._n augustine_n sometime_o say_v to_o the_o heretic_n maximinus_n 3._o nec_fw-la ego_fw-la nicenam_fw-la synodum_fw-la tibi_fw-la nec_fw-la tu_fw-la mihi_fw-la ariminensem_fw-la debes_fw-la tanquam_fw-la praeiudicaâurus_fw-la obijcere_fw-la nec_fw-la ego_fw-la huius_fw-la authoritate_fw-la nec_fw-la tu_fw-la illius_fw-la teneris_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la authoritatibus_fw-la non_fw-la quorumcunque_fw-la proprijs_fw-la sed_fw-la quae_fw-la utriusque_fw-la sint_fw-la commune_v res_fw-la cum_fw-la re_fw-la causa_fw-la cum_fw-la causa_fw-la ratio_fw-la cum_fw-la ratione_fw-la decertet_fw-la neither_o will_v i_o prescribe_v against_o thou_o by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a nor_o mâist_v thou_o prescribe_v against_o i_o by_o the_o council_n of_o ariminun_n neither_o be_o i_o bind_v to_o this_o council_n nor_o thou_o to_o that_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v neither_o thou_o nor_o i_o but_o indifferent_a and_o common_a to_o we_o both_o let_v we_o compare_v matter_n with_o mater_fw-la cause_n with_o cause_n and_o reason_n with_o reason_n again_o he_o say_v in_o like_a sort_n to_o the_o heretic_n cresconius_n cresconium_fw-la non_fw-la debet_fw-la se_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christo_fw-la praeponere_fw-la etc._n etc._n 21._o cum_fw-la ille_fw-la semper_fw-la veraciter_fw-la iudicet_fw-la ecclesiastici_fw-la autem_fw-la judices_fw-la sicut_fw-la homines_fw-la plerunque_fw-la fallantur_fw-la the_o church_n say_v s._n augustine_n may_v not_o set_v herself_o above_o christ_n etc._n etc._n for_o christ_n evermore_o judge_v true_o but_o the_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n as_o be_v man_n be_v often_o deceive_v therefore_o we_o appeal_v from_o the_o church_n to_o christ_n from_o the_o party_n to_o the_o judge_n from_o the_o church_n defourm_v to_o the_o church_n reform_v from_o a_o church_n particular_a to_o the_o church_n catholic_a from_o the_o false_a to_o the_o true_a from_o the_o new_a to_o the_o old_a from_o a_o doubtful_a variable_a uncertain_a unaduised_a sentence_n to_o a_o sentence_n most_o firm_a most_o stable_a most_o certain_a most_o constante_n that_o shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o m._n hardinge_n the_o .8_o division_n now_o if_o m._n jewel_n be_v not_o so_o precise_a in_o his_o judgement_n of_o allowinge_v the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n as_o to_o condemn_v the_o church_n that_o follow_v in_o the_o next_o generation_n then_o we_o may_v allege_v unto_o he_o the_o twelfthe_o council_n of_o toledo_n in_o spain_n hold_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 680._o for_o proufe_v that_o many_o mass_n be_v celebrate_v in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n for_o the_o same_o appear_v plain_o by_o this_o decree_n of_o the_o father_n there_o relatum_fw-la nobis_fw-la est_fw-la quosdam_fw-la de_fw-la sacerdotibus_fw-la non_fw-la tot_fw-la vicibus_fw-la communionis_fw-la sanctae_fw-la gratiam_fw-la sumere_fw-la quot_fw-la sacrificia_fw-la in_o una_fw-la die_fw-la videntur_fw-la offer_n 5._o say_v in_o uno_fw-la die_fw-la si_fw-la plurima_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la deo_fw-la offerant_fw-la sacrificia_fw-la in_fw-la omnibus_fw-la se_fw-la oblationibus_fw-la à _fw-la communione_fw-la suspendunt_fw-la &_o in_o sola_fw-la tantùm_fw-la extrema_fw-la sacrificij_fw-la oblatione_fw-la communionis_fw-la sanctae_fw-la gratiam_fw-la sumunt_fw-la quasi_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la âoâies_fw-la illis_fw-la veâo_fw-la &_o singulari_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la participandum_fw-la quoties_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o molatio_fw-la facta_fw-la constiterit_fw-la 10._o nam_fw-la ecce_fw-la apostolus_fw-la dicit_fw-la nun_n qui_fw-la edunt_fw-la hostias_fw-la participes_fw-la sunt_fw-la altaris_fw-la certum_fw-la est_fw-la quòd_fw-la hi_o qui_fw-la sacrificantes_fw-la non_fw-la edunt_fw-la ãâã_d sunt_fw-la dominici_n sacramenti_fw-la quicunque_fw-la ergo_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la demceps_fw-la divino_fw-la altaâio_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la oblaturus_fw-la accesserit_fw-la &_o se_fw-la à _fw-la communione_fw-la suspenderit_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsa_fw-la qua_fw-la se_fw-la indecenter_n privauit_fw-la graââa_fw-la con_fw-la munionis_fw-la anno_fw-la ãâã_d repuââum_fw-la âe_n noverit_fw-la nam_fw-la quale_fw-la erit_fw-la illud_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la cvi_fw-la nec_fw-la ipse_fw-la sacrificans_fw-la particeps_fw-la esse_fw-la cognoscitur_fw-la ergo_fw-la modis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la âst_fw-la tânendum_fw-la ut_fw-la quoââescunque_fw-la sacrificans_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o altario_fw-la iâmolat_a toââs_fw-la perceptionis_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la christi_fw-la se_fw-la participem_fw-la praebeat_fw-la it_o be_v show_v unto_o we_o that_o there_o be_v certain_a priest_n who_o do_v not_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n so_o many_o time_n how_o many_o sacrifice_n they_o seem_v to_o offer_v in_o one_o day_n but_o if_o they_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n many_o sacrifice_n by_o themselves_o in_o one_o day_n in_o all_o those_o oblation_n they_o suspend_v themselves_o from_o the_o coââânion_n and_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n only_o at_o the_o last_o oblation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n as_o though_o they_o ought_v not_o so_o oftentimes_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o that_o true_a and_o singular_a sacrifice_n as_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v be_v do_v for_o behold_v the_o apostle_n saithe_v be_v not_o they_o which_o eat_v sacrifice_n 10._o partaker_n of_o the_o altar_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o who_o dooinge_a sacrifice_n do_v not_o eat_v be_v guilty_a of_o our_o lord_n sacrament_n wherefore_o what_o priest_n so_o âuer_o hereafter_o shall_v come_v unto_o the_o holy_a altar_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o suspend_v himself_o from_o the_o communion_n be_v it_o know_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o be_v repel_v and_o thrust_v away_o from_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o communion_n whereof_o he_o have_v unseem_o bereve_v himself_o whereby_o be_v meinie_n that_o he_o stand_v excommunicate_a for_o the_o space_n of_o one_o year_n for_o what_o a_o sacrifice_n shall_v that_o be_v whereof_o neither_o he_o himself_o that_o sacrifice_v be_v know_v to_o be_v partaker_n wherefore_o by_o all_o mean_v this_o be_v to_o be_v keep_v that_o how_o oftentimes_o so_o ever_o the_o priest_n do_v sacrifice_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n on_o the_o altar_n so_o oftentimes_o he_o receive_v and_o make_v himself_o partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n here_o by_o the_o word_n sacrifice_n and_o offer_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n the_o father_n understande_v the_o daily_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n communion_n ãâ¦ã_o for_o though_o the_o word_n missa_fw-la be_v of_o great_a antiquity_n and_o many_o time_n find_v in_o the_o âathers_n yet_o they_o use_v more_o common_o the_o word_n sacrifice_n neither_o can_v the_o enemy_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n expound_v this_o canon_n of_o the_o inward_a sacrifice_n of_o a_o man_n heart_n but_o of_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o the_o priest_n coâmeth_v to_o the_o holy_a altar_n to_o offer_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n offer_v on_o the_o altar_n for_o so_o be_v their_o word_n where_o he_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n which_o be_v the_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n thus_o much_o grant_v as_o by_o any_o reasonable_a understand_v it_o can_v be_v draw_v nor_o by_o rack_a can_v
ignorance_n omnes_fw-la chrysostoms_n saithe_n magna_fw-la adversus_fw-la peccatum_fw-la munitio_fw-la est_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la lectio_fw-la magnum_fw-la praecipitium_fw-la &_o profundum_fw-la barathrum_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la ignoratio_fw-la 3._o nihil_fw-la scire_fw-la de_fw-la divinis_fw-la legibus_fw-la magna_fw-la salutis_fw-la perditio_fw-la ea_fw-la res_fw-la &_o haereses_fw-la peperit_fw-la &_o vitam_fw-la corruptam_fw-la invexit_fw-la hoc_fw-la sursum_fw-la deorsum_fw-la miscuit_fw-la omne_fw-la the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o great_a fence_n against_o sin_n and_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o dangerous_a downefal_v and_o a_o great_a dungeon_n to_o know_v nothing_o of_o god_n law_n be_v the_o loss_n of_o salvation_n ignorance_n have_v bring_v in_o heresy_n and_o vicious_a life_n ignorance_n have_v turn_v all_o thing_n upsydowne_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n and_o all_o other_o godly_a father_n have_v evermore_o incourrage_v the_o people_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o evermore_o think_v the_o church_n of_o god_n to_o be_v in_o best_a case_n when_o the_o people_n be_v best_o instruct_v s._n paul_n say_v let_v the_o word_n of_o god_n dwell_v abundant_o amongst_o yowe_o 3_o polycarpus_n philippen_n saithe_v to_o the_o people_n confido_fw-la vos_fw-la bene_fw-la exercitatos_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o sacris_fw-la literis_fw-la my_o trust_n be_v that_o you_o be_v well_o instruct_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n origen_n 9_o say_v unto_o his_o people_n geve_v your_o diligence_n not_o only_o to_o hear_v god_n word_n in_o the_o church_n but_o also_o to_o be_v exercise_v in_o the_o same_o in_o your_o house_n at_o home_n and_o day_n and_o night_n to_o be_v studious_a in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n s._n augustine_n 33._o say_v read_v you_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o to_o that_o end_n god_n will_v have_v they_o write_v that_o we_o may_v receive_v comfort_n by_o they_o s._n hierome_n 3._o saithe_v as_o it_o be_v allege_v before_o laici_fw-la non_fw-la tantùm_fw-la sufficienter_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la abundanter_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la habere_fw-la debent_fw-la &_o se_fw-la inuicem_fw-la docere_fw-la the_o say_v people_n aught_o to_o have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o only_o sufficient_o but_o also_o abundant_o and_o to_o instruct_v one_o a_o other_o s._n chrysostome_n 5._o will_v the_o father_n with_o his_o child_n and_o the_o husband_n with_o his_o wife_n at_o home_n in_o his_o house_n to_o talk_v and_o reason_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n theodoretus_n write_v thus_o passim_fw-la videas_fw-la haec_fw-la nostratia_fw-la dogmata_fw-la etc._n etc._n you_o may_v common_o see_v that_o not_o only_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o people_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o tailor_n smith_n and_o clothe_v woorker_n and_o other_o artificer_n do_v understande_v the_o principle_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o further_o that_o not_o only_o learned_a wemenne_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o but_o also_o such_o wemenne_n as_o live_v by_o their_o labour_n and_o sewster_n and_o maid_n servant_n but_o also_o husbandmenne_n and_o ditcher_n and_o heardmenne_n and_o graffer_n can_v reason_v of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n and_o of_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o mankind_n a_o great_a deal_n more_o skilful_o then_o either_o plato_n or_o aristotle_n be_v ever_o able_a to_o do_v therefore_o origen_n 21._o saithe_v unto_o his_o hearer_n of_o the_o say_v people_n i_o dicente_fw-la quod_fw-la sentio_fw-la vos_fw-la decernite_fw-la &_o examinate_v si_fw-la quid_fw-la rectum_fw-la est_fw-la aut_fw-la minùs_fw-la rectum_fw-la while_o i_o speak_v that_o i_o think_v meet_v examine_v and_o judge_v you_o whether_o it_o be_v well_o or_o otherwise_o thus_o in_o old_a time_n the_o uulgare_a people_n and_o such_o as_o m._n hardinge_n call_v swine_n &_o rude_a and_o rasshe_v people_n and_o curious_a busy_a body_n be_v able_a not_o only_o to_o understande_v the_o scripture_n but_o also_o to_o judge_v of_o their_o preacher_n and_o therefore_o the_o wicked_a renegade_n emperor_n julianus_n reproove_v the_o christian_n even_o as_o m._n hardinge_n now_o do_v we_o for_o that_o they_o suffer_v their_o woman_n 7._o and_o child_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n but_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n truth_n for_o fear_n and_o conscience_n of_o their_o weakness_n have_v evermore_o use_v violent_o to_o take_v away_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o only_o from_o woman_n and_o child_n but_o also_o from_o all_o the_o whole_a people_n chrysostome_n saithe_v 44._o haeretici_fw-la sacerdotesâclaudunt_fw-la ianuas_fw-la veritatis_fw-la sciunt_fw-la enim_fw-la si_fw-la manifestata_fw-la fuerit_fw-la veritas_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la svam_fw-la esse_fw-la relinquendam_fw-la &_o se_fw-la de_fw-la sacerdotali_fw-la dignitate_fw-la ad_fw-la humilitatem_fw-la venturos_fw-la popularem_fw-la heretic_n priest_n shut_v up_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o truth_n for_o they_o know_v that_o if_o the_o truth_n once_o appear_v they_o must_v needs_o leave_v their_o church_n and_o from_o the_o dignity_n of_o their_o priesthood_n come_v down_o to_o the_o state_n of_o other_o people_n for_o tertullian_n 6._o saithe_v scriptura_fw-la divina_fw-la haereticorun_v fraud_n &_o furta_fw-la facilè_fw-la convincit_fw-la &_o detegit_fw-la the_o holy_a scripture_n will_v easy_o bewray_v and_o confound_v the_o guile_n and_o theafte_n of_o heretic_n christ_n saithe_v he_o that_o do_v ill_a hate_v the_o light_n and_o therefore_o they_o say_v as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o prophet_n amos_n tace_fw-la &_o ne_fw-la recorderis_fw-la nominis_fw-la domini_fw-la hold_v thy_o peace_n and_o never_o think_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o miserable_a be_v that_o religion_n that_o can_v stand_v without_o hidinge_v and_o suppressinge_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n finis_fw-la the_o xvi_n article_n of_o consecration_n under_o silence_z the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n or_o that_o it_o be_v then_o lawful_a for_o the_o priest_n to_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n close_o and_o in_o silence_n unto_o himself_o m._n hardinge_n the_o .1_o division_n the_o matter_n of_o this_o article_n be_v neither_o one_o of_o the_o higheste_n mystery_n nor_o one_o of_o the_o great_a key_n of_o our_o religion_n how_o so_o ever_o m._n jewel_n please_v himself_o with_o that_o report_n thinkinge_v thereby_o to_o impair_v the_o estimation_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o diversity_n of_o observation_n in_o this_o behalf_n show_v the_o indifferency_n of_o the_o thing_n for_o else_o if_o one_o manner_n of_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n have_v be_v think_v a_o necessary_a point_n of_o religion_n it_o have_v be_v everywhere_o uniform_a and_o invariable_a that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v consecrate_a by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n pronounce_v by_o the_o priest_n as_o in_o the_o personne_fw-fr of_o christ_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o which_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v change_v into_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n 213_o prove_v this_o thing_n have_v in_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o place_n and_o with_o consent_n of_o all_o invariable_o be_v doonne_v and_o so_o believe_v but_o the_o manner_n of_o pronounce_v the_o word_n concern_v silence_n or_o open_a utterance_n accord_v to_o diversity_n of_o place_n have_v be_v diverse_a the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n this_o saithe_n m._n hardinge_n be_v but_o a_o small_a key_n of_o our_o religion_n which_o thing_n may_v very_o well_o appear_v both_o otherwise_o and_o also_o by_o the_o small_a weight_n and_o sclendernes_n of_o his_o proof_n how_o be_v it_o in_o case_n of_o religion_n and_o in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n nothing_o ought_v to_o be_v judge_v small_a special_o that_o may_v deceiuâ_n the_o people_n uery_o how_o small_a so_o ever_o they_o will_v now_o have_v this_o key_n to_o seem_v as_o it_o have_v be_v heretofore_o cause_n of_o no_o small_a superstition_n so_o it_o have_v shut_v out_o god_n people_n from_o the_o sight_n and_o understand_v of_o our_o great_a mystery_n certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o religion_n of_o christ_n may_v well_o stand_v without_o this_o kind_n of_o mystical_a silence_n as_o it_o may_v also_o without_o transubstantiation_n or_o private_a mass_n or_o any_o other_o their_o like_a fantasy_n but_o if_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o small_a wherefore_o doothe_a m._n hardinge_n take_v so_o great_a pain_n to_o prove_v it_o and_o that_o by_o so_o great_a untruethe_n and_o so_o manifest_a fable_n wherefore_o be_v they_o not_o ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o christ_n himself_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n consecrate_a in_o silence_n 8._o and_o secrecy_n and_o that_o in_o like_a order_n and_o form_n as_o they_o do_v now_o or_o how_o dare_v the_o byshoppe_n in_o this_o present_a council_n of_o tridente_n 2._o so_o solemn_o to_o abanne_v and_o accurse_v all_o they_o that_o dare_v to_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o same_o so_o small_a a_o matter_n as_o this_o be_v now_o suppose_a to_o be_v shall_v never_o need_v so_o great_a a_o do_v but_o whether_o these_o word_n be_v
utter_v secret_o or_o aloud_o he_o imagine_v that_o by_o the_o power_n thereof_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v real_o and_o whole_o change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o untrueth_n hereof_o be_v manifest_o reproove_v by_o s._n augustine_n s._n chrysostome_n theodoretus_n gelasius_n and_o by_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o old_a father_n and_o be_v answer_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o tenthe_n article_n of_o this_o book_n certain_o this_o error_n neither_o be_v ever_o confirm_v in_o the_o latin_a church_n 1._o before_o the_o council_n of_o laterane_n in_o rome_n which_o be_v above_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n nor_o ever_o receive_v in_o the_o greek_a church_n 1215._o from_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n until_o this_o day_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .2_o division_n the_o greek_n in_o the_o easte_n church_n have_v think_v it_o good_a to_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n clara_n voce_fw-mi as_o we_o find_v in_o chrysostom_n mass_n and_o as_o bessarion_n write_v aâta_fw-la voce_fw-la that_o be_v plain_o out_o aloud_o or_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n sacerdos_n alta_fw-la voce_fw-la âuxta_fw-la orientalis_n ecclesiae_fw-la ritum_fw-la verba_fw-la illa_fw-la pronunciat_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la the_o priest_n saithe_n bessarion_n after_o the_o rite_n or_o manner_n of_o the_o east_n church_n pronounce_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o manner_n of_o loud_a pronounce_v be_v think_v good_a to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o greek_a church_n as_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v by_o that_o bessarion_n write_v who_o be_v a_o greek_a bear_v and_o bring_v up_o in_o learning_n among_o the_o greek_n know_v right_o well_o the_o order_n of_o that_o church_n to_o the_o intent_n the_o people_n may_v thereby_o for_o the_o better_a maintenance_n of_o their_o faith_n be_v stir_v and_o warn_v to_o geve_v token_n of_o consent_n and_o of_o belief_n thereto_o when_o the_o priest_n saithe_v he_o pronounce_v those_o word_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n the_o people_n stand_a by_o â_o n_z utraque_fw-la parte_fw-la that_o be_v first_o at_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o body_n and_o again_o at_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o blood_n answer_v amen_n as_o though_o they_o say_v thus_o true_o so_o it_o be_v as_o thou_o say_v for_o where_o as_o amen_o be_v a_o aduerbe_n of_o affirminge_v in_o hebrew_n in_o greek_a it_o signify_v so_o much_o as_o true_o and_o therefore_o the_o people_n answearinge_v amen_o to_o those_o word_n very_o 1459._o say_v they_o these_o gift_n set_v forth_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o we_o believe_v so_o we_o confess_v this_o far_a bessarion_n it_o be_v declare_v by_o clement_n lib._n 8._o constitutionum_fw-la apostolicarum_fw-la that_o the_o people_n say_v amen_o when_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n have_v be_v pronounce_v whereby_o we_o understande_v that_o order_n to_o have_v be_v take_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o same_o custom_n also_o may_v be_v geather_v out_o of_o s._n ambrose_n who_o saithe_v thus_o dicit_fw-la tibi_fw-la sacerdos_n corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o tu_fw-la dicis_fw-la amen_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la verum_fw-la quod_fw-la confitetur_fw-la lingua_fw-la teneat_fw-la affectus_fw-la de_fw-fr sacram._n li._n 4._o ca._n 5._o the_o priest_n saithe_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o thou_o say_v amen_o that_o be_v to_o say_v true_a hold_v with_o thy_o heart_n that_o which_o thou_o confess_v with_o the_o tongue_n he_o saithe_v likewise_o hereof_o de_fw-fr ijs_fw-la qui_fw-la initiantur_fw-la mysterijs_fw-la ca._n 9_o frustrà _fw-la ab_fw-la illis_fw-la respondetur_fw-la amen_o etc._n etc._n amen_o be_v answer_v in_o vain_a by_o they_o who_o dispute_n against_o that_o which_o be_v receive_v saithe_v leo._n sermone_fw-la 6._o de_fw-fr jeiunio_fw-la 7._o mensis_fw-la the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n it_o be_v clear_o witness_v by_o all_o these_o doctor_n against_o m._n hardinge_n and_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n be_v pronounce_v with_o a_o loud_a uoice_n and_o that_o the_o people_n not_o only_o hear_v but_o also_o understand_v and_o answer_v the_o same_o wherefore_o m._n harding_n can_v find_v but_o small_a relief_n in_o these_o authority_n uery_o in_o his_o church_n which_o he_o so_o often_o call_v ancient_a and_o only_a catholic_a the_o people_n neither_o answer_v nor_o understand_v nor_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n thus_o it_o appear_v he_o have_v allege_v these_o five_o doctor_n in_o three_o special_a point_n against_o himself_o m._n hardinge_n add_v hereto_o amen_o be_v as_o much_o as_o verum_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v true_a and_o therefore_o the_o people_n answearinge_v amen_o confess_v thereby_o that_o they_o believe_v the_o very_a real_a and_o substantial_a changinge_v of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v needless_a and_o out_o of_o season_n to_o renew_v this_o matter_n in_o this_o place_n but_o he_o think_v it_o better_a skill_n to_o speak_v from_o the_o purpose_n then_o utter_o to_o hold_v his_o peace_n and_o to_o say_v nothing_o first_o as_o it_o be_v say_v before_o the_o latin_a church_n never_o receive_v this_o new_a belief_n before_o the_o council_n of_o laterane_n hold_v in_o rome_n 1215._o the_o greek_a church_n never_o until_o this_o day_n therefore_o by_o m._n hardinge_n skille_v the_o people_n thus_o answearinge_v say_v amen_o to_o that_o thing_n that_o they_o believe_v not_o and_o so_o confirm_v the_o child_n eight_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o before_o it_o be_v bear_v in_o deed_n the_o people_n say_v amen_o to_o that_o they_o hear_v speak_v by_o the_o priest_n but_o the_o priest_n speak_v nothing_o neither_o of_o real_a presence_n nor_o of_o transubstantiation_n nor_o of_o accident_n without_o subject_a therefore_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a the_o people_n answer_n have_v relation_n to_o any_o such_o matter_n otherwise_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o answer_n that_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o speak_v the_o priest_n only_o utter_v these_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n whereunto_o the_o greek_n make_v answer_n in_o this_o sort_n as_o it_o be_v record_v in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n 9_o firmiter_fw-la credimus_fw-la verbis_fw-la illis_fw-la dominicis_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la fieri_fw-la we_o believe_v steadfast_o that_o by_o these_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n there_o be_v make_v a_o sacrament_n likewise_o s._n ambrose_n post_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la significatur_fw-la after_o the_o consecration_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v signify_v again_o ante_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la aliud_fw-la dicitur_fw-la post_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la sanguis_fw-la nuncupatur_fw-la et_fw-la tu_fw-la dicis_fw-la amen_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la verum_fw-la est_fw-la before_o the_o consecration_n it_o be_v call_v a_o other_o thing_n after_o consecration_n it_o be_v name_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o thou_o say_v amen_o that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v true_a so_o dionysius_n write_v unto_o sixtus_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 9_o of_o one_o that_o have_v be_v baptize_v emougste_a heretic_n gratiarum_fw-la actionem_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la audivit_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la illam_fw-la unà _fw-la cum_fw-la alijs_fw-la respondit_fw-la amen_o he_o hear_v the_o thankesgevinge_v in_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o same_o together_o with_o other_o he_o answer_v amen_n ãâã_d so_o s._n augustine_n fratres_n nostri_fw-la eadem_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la celebrantes_fw-la &_o vnum_fw-la amen_o respondentes_fw-la our_o brethren_n resortinge_v to_o one_o sacrament_n and_o answearinge_v all_o one_o amen_n this_o answearinge_v amen_o import_v not_o any_o sudden_a transubstantiation_n but_o a_o thankesgevinge_v unto_o god_n for_o our_o delivery_n by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n but_o leo_n say_v 33._o they_o answer_v amen_o in_o vain_a that_o dispute_n against_o the_o same_o thing_n 6._o that_o they_o receive_v for_o clear_v understand_v of_o which_o word_n it_o behoove_v thou_o good_a reader_n to_o remember_v that_o leo_n as_o well_o herein_o as_o also_o in_o sundry_a other_o place_n bend_v the_o whole_a force_n of_o his_o learning_n against_o the_o heretic_n eutyches_n who_o be_v erroure_n be_v this_o much_o like_o unto_o the_o common_a erroure_n that_o be_v now_o defend_v that_o christ_n body_n after_o his_o ascension_n be_v turn_v whole_o into_o the_o godhead_n and_o so_o be_v no_o long_o a_o man_n body_n against_o which_o erroure_n leo_n take_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n wherein_o the_o faithful_a people_n as_o with_o their_o bodily_a mouth_n they_o receive_v the_o mystical_a bread_n and_o wine_n so_o with_o their_o spirit_n and_o faith_n they_o receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o very_o and_o in_o truth_n and_o in_o witness_n thereof_o the_o receiver_n say_v amen_n but_o say_v leo_n he_o say_v amen_o in_o vain_a that_o deni_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o he_o receive_v that_o be_v to_o say_v
for_o otherwise_o he_o can_v say_v nothing_o and_o yet_o he_o know_v and_o be_v learned_a can_v choose_v but_o know_v that_o this_o be_v the_o old_a learned_a catholic_a father_n exposition_n touchinge_v these_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n and_o not_o we_o he_o know_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n tertullian_n saithe_v thus_o the_o pure_a sacrifice_n judaeos_fw-la that_o malachias_n speak_v of_o that_o shall_v be_v offer_v up_o in_o every_o place_n est_fw-la praedicatio_fw-la euangelij_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la finem_fw-la mundi_fw-la be_v the_o preachinge_a of_o the_o gospel_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n simplex_n oratio_fw-la de_fw-la conscientia_fw-la pura_fw-la the_o sacrifice_n that_o malachi_n mean_v malach._n be_v a_o devoute_a prayer_n proceedinge_v from_o a_o pure_a conscience_n he_o know_v that_o s._n hierome_n expound_v the_o same_o word_n in_o this_o wise_a dicit_fw-la orationes_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la domino_fw-la offerendas_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la in_o una_fw-la orbis_n provincia_fw-la judaea_n say_v in_o omni_fw-la loco_fw-la the_o prophet_n malachi_n mean_v hereby_o that_o the_o prayer_n of_o holy_a people_n shall_v be_v offer_v unto_o god_n ãâã_d not_o only_o in_o jewrie_n that_o be_v but_o one_o province_n of_o the_o world_n but_o also_o in_o all_o place_n he_o know_v that_o eusebius_n call_v the_o same_o sacrifice_n of_o malachi_n the_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o incense_n of_o prayer_n thus_o the_o holy_a catholic_a father_n expound_v these_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n and_o yet_o be_v they_o not_o therefore_o judge_v either_o overthwarte_a wreaster_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o horrible_a deceiver_n of_o the_o people_n now_o of_o the_o other_o side_n if_o it_o may_v please_v m._n hardinge_n to_o show_v forth_o but_o one_o ancient_a doctor_n or_o father_n that_o either_o by_o the_o example_n of_o melchisedeâ_n or_o by_o force_n of_o these_o word_n of_o malachi_n will_v conclude_v that_o the_o priest_n have_v authority_n and_o power_n to_o offer_v up_o uery_o and_o in_o deed_n the_o son_n of_o god_n unto_o his_o father_n he_o may_v happy_o win_v some_o credit_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .4_o division_n for_o where_o as_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n report_n that_o christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n take_v bread_n give_v thanks_n âª_o break_v it_o and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o again_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o be_v sheadde_a for_o you_o in_o remission_n of_o sin_n oblation_n by_o these_o word_n be_v word_n of_o sacrificinge_v and_o offer_v they_o show_v and_o set_v forth_o a_o oblation_n in_o act_n and_o deed_n though_o the_o term_n itself_o of_o oblation_n or_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o express_v albeit_o to_o some_o of_o excellent_a knowledge_n datur_fw-la here_o sound_v no_o less_o then_o offertur_fw-la or_o immolatur_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v be_v offer_v or_o sacrifice_v special_o the_o addition_n 2._o pro_fw-la vobis_fw-la withal_o consider_v for_o if_o christ_n say_v true_o as_o he_o be_v truth_n itself_o and_o guile_n be_v never_o find_v in_o his_o mouth_n then_o be_v his_o body_n present_o give_v and_o for_o we_o âª_o give_v at_o the_o time_n he_o speak_v the_o word_n âª_o that_o be_v at_o his_o supper_n for_o he_o say_v tense_n datur_fw-la be_v give_v not_o dabitur_fw-la shall_v be_v give_v 221_o savour_n and_o likewise_o be_v his_o blood_n sheadde_a in_o remission_n of_o sin_n at_o the_o time_n of_o that_o supper_n âª_o for_o the_o text_n have_v tense_n funditur_fw-la be_v sheadde_a but_o the_o gevinge_v of_o his_o body_n for_o we_o and_o the_o sheaddinge_a of_o his_o blood_n in_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v a_o oblation_n of_o the_o same_o ergo_fw-la christ_n offer_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n at_o the_o supper_n and_o thus_o datur_fw-la signify_v here_o as_o much_o as_o offertur_fw-la now_o this_o be_v truâ_n that_o our_o lord_n offer_v himself_o unto_o his_o father_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n have_v give_v commandment_n to_o his_o apostle_n to_o do_v the_o same_o that_o he_o there_o do_v who_o then_o he_o ordain_v priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n saie_v do_v this_o in_o my_o remembrance_n as_o clement_n do_v plain_o show_v lib._n 8._o apostol_n constitut._n cap._n ultimo_fw-la the_o same_o charge_n perteininge_v no_o less_o to_o the_o priest_n that_o be_v how_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o behalf_n then_o to_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o it_o doothe_v right_a well_o appear_v how_o so_o ever_o m._n jewel_n assure_v himself_o of_o the_o contrary_a and_o what_o so_o ever_o the_o devil_n have_v wrought_v and_o by_o his_o minister_n teach_v against_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n that_o priest_n have_v authority_n to_o offer_v up_o christ_n unto_o his_o father_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n here_o m._n hardinge_n begin_v to_o scan_v his_o tense_n to_o rip_v up_o syllable_n and_o to_o hunt_v for_o letter_n and_o in_o the_o end_n build_v up_o the_o high_a castle_n of_o his_o religion_n upon_o a_o gheasse_n i_o marvel_v that_o so_o learned_a a_o man_n will_v either_o use_v so_o unlearned_a argument_n or_o have_v such_o store_n of_o authority_n as_o he_o pretend_v will_v ever_o make_v so_o simple_a choice_n he_o say_v these_o word_n be_v give_v be_v shed_v be_v word_n of_o sacrificinge_v though_o the_o term_n itself_o of_o oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o express_v here_o m._n hardinge_n besides_o that_o he_o have_v imagine_v a_o strange_a construction_n of_o his_o own_o that_o never_o any_o learned_a man_n know_v before_o and_o so_o straggle_v alone_o and_o swerve_v from_o all_o the_o old_a father_n include_v also_o a_o repugnance_n and_o contradiction_n against_o himself_o for_o where_o as_o word_n and_o term_n sound_v both_o one_o thing_n the_o one_o be_v mere_a english_a the_o other_o borrow_v of_o the_o latin_a m._n harding_n saithe_v christ_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o his_o supper_n use_v the_o word_n of_o sacrifice_v and_o yet_o express_v not_o the_o term_n of_o sacrificinge_v such_o privilege_n these_o man_n have_v with_o shift_n of_o term_n to_o beguile_v the_o world_n for_o if_o christ_n use_v the_o word_n of_o sacrificinge_v how_o can_v m._n hardinge_n say_v he_o use_v not_o the_o term_n of_o sacrificinge_v and_o if_o he_o use_v not_o the_o term_n word_n and_o term_n be_v one_o thing_n how_o can_v he_o say_v he_o use_v the_o word_n uery_o if_o this_o latin_a word_n dare_v be_v sacrificare_fw-la and_o gevinge_v be_v sacrificinge_v 1â_n then_o 26._o where_o as_o s._n paul_n saithe_v 25._o if_o thy_o enemy_n be_v thirsty_a geve_v he_o drink_v and_o where_o as_o judas_n saithe_v what_o will_v you_o geve_v i_o and_o i_o will_v deliver_v he_o unto_o yowe_o and_o where_o as_o the_o foolish_a virgin_n say_v geve_v we_o part_n of_o your_o oâle_n etc._n etc._n in_o every_o of_o these_o and_o such_o other_o like_o place_n by_o this_o new_a divinity_n m._n hardinge_n will_v be_v able_a to_o find_v a_o sacrifice_n yet_o say_v he_o certain_a man_n of_o excellent_a knowledge_n have_v thus_o expound_v it_o it_o seem_v very_o strange_a that_o these_o so_o notable_a man_n of_o so_o excellent_a knowledge_n shall_v have_v no_o name_n perhaps_o he_o mean_v tapper_n of_o louvain_n or_o gropper_n of_o colaine_n of_o who_o he_o have_v borrow_v the_o whole_a substance_n wellnear_o of_o all_o this_o article_n how_o be_v it_o the_o demand_n be_v of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n not_o of_o any_o of_o these_o or_o other_o such_o petite_fw-fr father_n but_o christ_n saithe_v in_o the_o present_a tense_n this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v give_v not_o in_o the_o future_a tense_n that_o shall_v be_v give_v and_o likewise_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n supper_n that_o present_o be_v shed_v not_o in_o the_o future_a tense_n that_o shall_v be_v shed_v therefore_o christ_n sacrifice_v his_o body_n and_o shed_v his_o blood_n present_o at_o the_o supper_n here_o m._n hardinge_n be_v drive_v to_o control_v the_o old_a common_a translation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n not_o only_o that_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o s._n hierome_n &_o have_v be_v evermore_o general_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n and_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o council_n of_o tridente_n but_o also_o that_o be_v still_o use_v &_o continue_a in_o his_o own_o mass_n book_n i_o grant_v in_o the_o greek_a it_o be_v write_v datur_fw-la be_v give_v not_o dabitur_fw-la shall_v be_v give_v but_o here_o the_o present_a tense_n accord_v to_o the_o common_a phrase_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v use_v for_o the_o future_a chrysostome_n read_v it_o thus_o 35._o dabitur_fw-la shall_v be_v give_v not_o datur_fw-la be_v give_v origen_n likewise_o read_v not_o effunditur_fw-la be_v shed_v but_o effundetur_fw-la shall_v be_v shed_v and_o in_o this_o sort_n chrysostome_n also_o expound_v it_o effundetur_fw-la pro_fw-la multis_fw-la
hoc_fw-la dicens_fw-la ostendit_fw-la quòd_fw-la passio_fw-la eius_fw-la est_fw-la mysterium_fw-la salutis_fw-la humanae_fw-la per_fw-la quod_fw-la etiam_fw-la discipulos_fw-la consolatur_fw-la be_v shed_v for_o many_o thus_o saieinge_v he_o show_v that_o his_o passion_n be_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n and_o by_o the_o same_o he_o comfort_v his_o disciple_n catenâ_n again_o he_o saithe_v de_fw-fr passione_n &_o cruse_n sva_fw-la loquebatur_fw-la christ_n utteringe_v these_o word_n of_o the_o sacrament_n speak_v of_o his_o passion_n and_o of_o his_o crosse._n to_o be_v short_a if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o christ_n shed_v his_o blood_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o that_o uery_o real_o and_o in_o deed_n as_o m._n hardinge_n alone_o strange_o avouch_v and_o noman_n else_o i_o trow_v beside_o he_o then_o can_v he_o no_o more_o say_v the_o same_o be_v a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n and_o so_o must_v he_o yield_v up_o the_o strong_a tower_n of_o all_o his_o hold_v for_o if_o the_o sacrifice_n that_o christ_n make_v at_o his_o supper_n be_v unbloudy_a how_o do_v christ_n there_o shed_v his_o blood_n if_o christ_n as_o m._n hardinge_n say_v do_v there_o shed_v his_o blood_n how_o can_v that_o sacrifice_n be_v call_v uncloudy_a but_o to_o leave_v these_o fantasy_n and_o vain_a shyfte_n christ_n give_v his_o body_n to_o be_v break_v and_o his_o blood_n to_o be_v shed_v not_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n but_o only_o upon_o his_o cross_n and_o no_o where_o else_o 53._o there_o he_o bear_v our_o iniquity_n there_o be_v he_o rend_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o in_o that_o only_a respect_n we_o receive_v his_o body_n and_o embrace_v it_o and_o have_v fruit_n of_o it_o in_o this_o respect_n s._n paul_n say_v 6._o god_n forebid_v i_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o any_o thing_n savinge_v only_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n therefore_o this_o new_a article_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o real_a sacrificinge_n &_o sheaddinge_a of_o christ_n blood_n at_o the_o table_n neither_o be_v true_a in_o itself_o nor_o hitherto_o by_o m._n hardinge_n any_o way_n prove_v notwithstanding_o the_o great_a store_n and_o choice_n of_o his_o authority_n for_o as_o much_o as_o christ_n never_o give_v neither_o his_o apostle_n nor_o any_o their_o successor_n commission_n to_o do_v more_o in_o that_o behalf_n than_o he_o himself_o have_v do_v to_o say_v that_o any_o mortal_a man_n have_v power_n and_o authority_n real_o and_o in_o deed_n to_o sacrifice_v the_o son_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o manifest_a and_o wicked_a blasphemy_n the_o great_a and_o gross_a error_n wherewith_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o disciple_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n have_v deceive_v the_o world_n notwithstanding_o as_o for_o clemens_n who_o m._n hardinge_n so_o often_o call_v the_o apostle_n fellow_n as_o he_o be_v but_o late_o start_v up_o and_o come_v abroad_o and_o therefore_o have_v not_o yet_o get_v sufficient_a credit_n and_o be_v here_o bring_v in_o dumb_a &_o saieinge_v nothing_o so_o be_v he_o not_o worthy_a of_o further_a answer_n how_o be_v it_o m._n hardinge_n do_v great_a wrong_n otherwise_o to_o report_v his_o author_n word_n than_o he_o find_v they_o true_o his_o clemens_n what_o so_o ever_o he_o be_v say_v not_o the_o priest_n have_v commission_n or_o power_n to_o offer_v up_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 30._o his_o word_n be_v plain_a to_o the_o contrary_a antitypon_n regalis_fw-la corporis_fw-la christian_a offerte_fw-la offer_v you_o up_o not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o sign_n or_o sacrament_n of_o the_o royal_a body_n of_o christ._n likewise_o again_o he_o say_v offerimus_fw-la tibi_fw-la regi_fw-la &_o deo_fw-la iuxta_fw-la institutionem_fw-la christi_fw-la hunc_fw-la panen_n &_o hoc_fw-la poculun_n we_o offer_v up_o unto_o thou_o our_o king_n and_o god_n not_o the_o very_a body_n of_o thy_o son_n real_o 8._o &_o in_o deed_n but_o this_o bread_n and_o this_o cup_n accord_v to_o christ_n institution_n it_o be_v a_o great_a prerogative_n for_o m._n hardinge_n both_o to_o make_v doctor_n of_o his_o own_o and_o also_o to_o geve_v they_o his_o own_o construction_n neither_o do_v christe_o by_o these_o word_n do_v you_o this_o in_o my_o remembrance_n erect_v any_o new_a succession_n of_o sacrificer_n to_o offer_v he_o up_o real_o unto_o his_o father_n nor_o ever_o do_v any_o ancient_a learned_a father_n so_o expound_v it_o christ_n meaning_n be_v clear_a by_o the_o word_n that_o follow_v for_o he_o saithe_v not_o only_o do_v you_o this_o but_o he_o add_v also_o in_o my_o remembrance_n which_o dooinge_a pertain_v not_o only_o unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n as_o m._n hardinge_n imagine_v but_o also_o to_o the_o whole_a people_n and_o therefore_o s._n paul_n saithe_v not_o only_o to_o the_o minister_n but_o also_o to_o the_o whole_a congregation_n of_o corinthe_n âª_o as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v this_o erâade_n and_o drink_v this_o cup_n you_o shall_v show_v forth_o and_o publish_v the_o lord_n death_n until_o âe_v come_v likewise_o s._n chrysostome_n appli_v the_o same_o not_o only_o to_o the_o cleregie_n but_o also_o to_o the_o whole_a people_n of_o his_o church_n of_o antioch_n thus_o he_o saithe_v 61._o hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la in_o memoriam_fw-la beneficij_fw-la mei_fw-la salutis_fw-la vestrae_fw-la do_v you_o this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o my_o benefit_n and_o of_o your_o salvation_n of_o these_o weak_a position_n m._n hardinge_n without_o the_o warrant_n or_o authority_n of_o any_o learned_a father_n reason_v thus_o christ_n saithe_v this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v give_v for_o you_o do_v this_o in_o my_o remembrance_n ergo_fw-la the_o priest_n have_v power_n to_o offer_v up_o the_o son_n of_o god_n unto_o his_o father_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .5_o division_n that_o christ_n offer_v himself_o to_o his_o father_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o that_o priest_n by_o those_o word_n do_v this_o in_o my_o remembrance_n have_v not_o only_a authority_n but_o also_o a_o special_a commandment_n to_o do_v the_o same_o and_o that_o the_o figure_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o the_o prophecy_n of_o malachi_n pertain_v to_o this_o sacrifice_n and_o make_v proufe_v of_o the_o same_o let_v we_o see_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n what_o doctrine_n the_o apostle_n have_v leave_v to_o the_o church_n eusebius_n caesariensis_n have_v these_o word_n 10._o horrorem_fw-la afferentia_fw-la mensae_n christi_fw-la sacrificia_fw-la supremo_fw-la deo_fw-la offer_n per_fw-la eminentissimum_fw-la omnium_fw-la ipsius_fw-la pontificem_fw-la edocti_fw-la sumus_fw-la we_o be_v teach_v saithe_v he_o to_o offer_v unto_o our_o supreme_a âod_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n table_n which_o cause_n we_o to_o tremble_v and_o quake_v for_o fear_n by_o his_o bishop_n high_a of_o al._n here_o he_o call_v christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n god_n bishop_n high_a of_o all_o bishop_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n table_n he_o callethe_v 222_o âª_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n because_o at_o the_o table_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n be_v sacrifice_v and_o offer_v the_o same_o and_o for_o that_o it_o be_v his_o very_a body_n and_o very_a blood_n imagination_n only_o i_o hantasie_n and_o figure_n set_v apart_o he_o term_v these_o sacrifice_n as_o common_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v horrible_a causinge_a tremble_n and_o fear_n and_o where_o as_o he_o saithe_v we_o have_v be_v teach_v to_o offer_v these_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n doubtless_o he_o mean_v by_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v this_o in_o my_o remembrance_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o clement_n in_o his_o eight_o book_n often_o cite_v speak_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n offer_v by_o the_o apostle_n common_o add_v these_o word_n secundum_fw-la ipsius_fw-la ordinationem_fw-la or_o ipso_fw-la ordinante_fw-la whereby_o he_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v christ_n own_o ordinance_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o priest_n offer_v up_o the_o son_n of_o god_n m._n hardinge_n have_v here_o bring_v in_o eusebius_n a_o ancient_a father_n that_o never_o once_o name_v any_o such_o oblation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o much_o be_v he_o oppress_v and_o encumber_v with_o his_o store_n true_a it_o be_v the_o ministration_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n be_v oftentimes_o of_o the_o old_a learned_a father_n call_v a_o sacrifice_n not_o for_o that_o they_o think_v the_o priest_n have_v authority_n to_o sacrifice_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o for_o that_o therein_o we_o offer_v up_o unto_o god_n thank_n and_o praise_n for_o that_o great_a sacrifice_n once_o make_v upon_o the_o crosse._n so_o saithe_v s._n augustine_n 1â_n in_o isto_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la est_fw-la gratiarum_fw-la actio_fw-la &_o commemoratio_fw-la carnis_fw-la christi_fw-la sacrifice_n quam_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la obtulit_fw-la in_o this_o
sacrifice_n be_v a_o thankesgeuânge_n and_o a_o remembrance_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o have_v offer_v for_o us._n ãâã_d likewise_o eusebius_n saithe_v christ_n after_o all_o other_o thing_n do_v make_v a_o marvelous_a oblation_n and_o a_o pass_v sacrifice_n unto_o his_o father_n upon_o his_o cross_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o we_o all_o gevinge_v unto_o we_o to_o offer_v continual_o unto_o god_n a_o remembrance_n in_o steed_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n so_o nazianzenus_n call_v the_o holy_a communion_n a_o figure_n of_o that_o great_a mystery_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n this_o it_o be_v that_o eusebius_n call_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o lord_n table_n which_o also_o he_o call_v sacrificium_fw-la laudis_fw-la the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n but_o eusebius_n saithe_v further_o this_o sacrifice_n be_v dreadful_a and_o cause_v the_o heart_n to_o quake_v m._n hardinge_n may_v not_o well_o gather_v by_o any_o force_n of_o these_o word_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v real_o offer_v up_o by_o the_o priest_n unto_o his_o father_n for_o all_o thing_n what_o so_o ever_o that_o put_v we_o in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o majesty_n and_o judgemente_n of_o god_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n be_v call_v dreadful_a saint_n cyril_n saithe_v 40._o lectio_fw-la divinarum_fw-la &_o terribilium_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la the_o read_n of_o the_o divine_a and_o terrible_a scripture_n s._n chrysostome_n call_v the_o word_n of_o baptism_n verba_fw-la arcana_fw-la &_o metuenda_fw-la &_o horribiles_fw-la canon_n dogmatum_fw-la de_fw-fr coelo_fw-la transmissorum_fw-la the_o secret_a and_o dreadful_a word_n and_o terrible_a rule_n of_o the_o doctrine_n that_o come_v from_o heaven_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o hand_n and_o uoice_n of_o the_o deacon_n he_o say_v thus_o manu_fw-la illa_fw-la tremenda_fw-la &_o continua_fw-la voice_fw-la clamans_fw-la alios_fw-la vocat_fw-la alios_fw-la arcet_fw-la with_o that_o terrible_a hand_n and_o continual_a voice_n crieinge_v some_o he_o call_v in_o and_o some_o he_o put_v of_o this_o sacrifice_n make_v the_o heart_n to_o tremble_v for_o that_o therein_o be_v lay_v forth_o the_o mystery_n that_o be_v âidden_v from_o world_n and_o generation_n the_o horror_n of_o sin_n the_o death_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o he_o take_v our_o heaviness_n and_o bear_v our_o sorrow_n and_o be_v wound_v for_o our_o offence_n and_o be_v rend_v and_o torment_v for_o our_o wickedness_n that_o he_o be_v carry_v like_o a_o innocent_a lamb_n unto_o the_o slaughter_n that_o he_o cry_v unto_o his_o father_n o_o god_n o_o my_o god_n why_o haste_v thou_o thus_o forsake_v i_o there_o we_o call_v to_o remembrance_n all_o the_o cause_n and_o circumstance_n of_o christ_n death_n the_o shame_n of_o the_o cross_n the_o darkeninge_v of_o the_o air_n the_o shakinge_v of_o the_o earth_n the_o rent_v of_o the_o uele_n the_o cleavinge_v of_o the_o rock_n the_o open_n of_o the_o grave_n the_o descendinge_v into_o hell_n and_o the_o conqueringe_v of_o the_o devil_n therefore_o chrysostome_n say_v 17._o quamuis_fw-la quis_fw-la lapis_fw-la effet_fw-fr illa_fw-la nocte_fw-la audita_fw-la quomodò_fw-la cum_fw-la discipulis_fw-la tristis_fw-la fuerit_fw-la quomodò_fw-la traditus_fw-la quomodò_fw-la ligatus_fw-la quomodò_fw-la abductus_fw-la quomodò_fw-la iudicatus_fw-la quomodò_fw-la denique_fw-la omnia_fw-la passus_fw-la cera_fw-la mollior_fw-la fiet_fw-la &_o terram_fw-la &_o omnem_fw-la terrae_fw-la cogitationem_fw-la abijciet_fw-la any_o man_n hear_v of_o the_o order_n of_o that_o night_n how_o christ_n be_v moorneful_a emonge_n his_o disciple_n how_o he_o be_v deliver_v how_o he_o be_v bind_v how_o he_o be_v leadde_a away_o how_o he_o be_v arreign_v and_o how_o meek_o he_o suffer_v all_o that_o be_v do_v unto_o he_o be_v he_o as_o hard_a as_o a_o stone_n yet_o will_v he_o be_v as_o save_v as_o wax_n and_o will_v throw_v both_o the_o earth_n and_o all_o earthe_o cogitation_n away_o from_o he_o thus_o saithe_v nicolaus_n cabasilas_n one_o of_o master_n hardinge_n late_a greek_a doctor_n hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la in_o meam_fw-la commemorationem_fw-la say_fw-la quaenam_fw-la est_fw-la haec_fw-la commemoratio_fw-la etc._n etc._n do_v you_o this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o but_o what_o be_v this_o remembrance_n how_o do_v we_o consider_v our_o lord_n in_o the_o holy_a ministration_n what_o do_v we_o conceive_v he_o dooinge_a how_o dealing_v what_o suffer_n what_o think_v we_o what_o speak_v we_o of_o he_o do_v we_o imagine_v of_o he_o in_o that_o time_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n that_o he_o heal_v the_o blind_a that_o he_o raise_v the_o dead_a that_o he_o stay_v the_o wind_n or_o that_o with_o a_o few_o loaf_n he_o feed_v thousand_o which_o be_v token_n that_o he_o be_v god_n omnipotent_a no_o not_o so_o but_o rather_o we_o call_v to_o remembrance_n such_o thing_n as_o declare_v his_o weakness_n his_o cross_n his_o passion_n his_o death_n in_o respect_n of_o those_o thing_n he_o say_v do_v you_o this_o in_o my_o remembrance_n the_o priest_n both_o by_o his_o word_n and_o also_o by_o the_o whole_a circumstance_n of_o his_o dooinge_a seem_v to_o say_v thus_o christ_n come_v to_o his_o passion_n thus_o he_o be_v wound_v in_o the_o side_n thus_o he_o die_v thus_o blood_n and_o water_n issue_v and_o stream_v from_o his_o wound_n these_o consideration_n thus_o lay_v before_o our_o eye_n be_v able_a to_o cause_v any_o godly_a heart_n to_o quake_v and_o tremble_v as_o for_o the_o real_a offer_v up_o of_o christ_n in_o sacrifice_n that_o learned_a father_n eusebius_n say_v nothing_o uery_o it_o be_v but_o a_o simple_a sophism_n to_o say_v this_o sacrifice_n be_v dreadeful_a and_o cause_v we_o to_o quake_v ergo_fw-la the_o priest_n offer_v up_o the_o son_n of_o god_n unto_o his_o father_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .6_o division_n that_o christ_n sacrifice_v himself_o at_o his_o supper_n hesychius_n affirm_v with_o these_o word_n quod_fw-la dnns_fw-la iussit_fw-la levit._fw-la 4._o ut_fw-la sacerdos_n virulum_fw-la pro_fw-la peccato_fw-la oblaturus_fw-la ponat_fw-la manum_fw-la super_fw-la capuâ_n eius_fw-la &_o iugulet_fw-la eum_fw-la coram_fw-la domino_fw-la christum_n âignificat_fw-la quem_fw-la nemo_fw-la obtulit_fw-la sed_fw-la nec_fw-la immolare_fw-la poterat_fw-la nisi_fw-la semetipsum_fw-la ipse_fw-la ad_fw-la patiendum_fw-la tradidisset_fw-la propter_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la dicebat_fw-la 10._o potestatem_fw-la habeo_fw-la ponendi_fw-la animam_fw-la meam_fw-la &_o potestatem_fw-la habeo_fw-la iterum_fw-la sumendi_fw-la eam_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o praeuâniens_fw-la semetipsum_fw-la in_o coena_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la immolavit_fw-la quod_fw-la sciunt_fw-la qui_fw-la mysteriorum_fw-la percipiunt_fw-la virtutem_fw-la that_o our_o lord_n command_v saithe_v he_o the_o priest_n which_o shall_v offer_v a_o calf_n for_o sin_n to_o put_v his_o hand_n upon_o his_o head_n and_o to_o stick_v he_o before_o our_o lord_n it_o signify_v christ_n who_o noman_n have_v offer_v neither_o can_v any_o man_n sacrifice_v he_o except_o he_o have_v deliver_v himself_o to_o suffer_v for_o the_o which_o he_o say_v not_o only_o i_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v down_o my_o soul_n deed_n and_o i_o have_v power_n to_o take_v it_o again_o but_o also_o preventinge_v it_o he_o offer_v up_o himself_o in_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o they_o know_v that_o receive_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o mystery_n by_o these_o word_n of_o hesychius_n we_o learn_v that_o christ_n offer_v and_o sacrifice_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n twice_o first_o in_o that_o holy_a supper_n unbloude_o when_o he_o take_v bread_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o break_v it_o etc._n etc._n without_o division_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n for_o it_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n and_o afterward_o on_o the_o cross_n with_o sheddinge_a of_o his_o blood_n and_o that_o be_v it_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o word_n preventinge_v the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o it_o may_v well_o be_v say_v christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v up_o himself_o unto_o his_o father_n albeit_o not_o real_o and_o in_o deed_n but_o accord_v to_o m._n hardinge_n own_o distinction_n in_o a_o figure_n or_o in_o a_o mystery_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o we_o say_v christ_n be_v offer_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o as_o s._n john_n saithe_v 13._o agnus_n occisus_fw-la ab_fw-la origine_fw-la mundi_fw-la the_o lamb_n be_v slay_v from_o the_o begin_v of_o the_o world_n as_o christâ_n be_v slay_v at_o the_o table_n so_o be_v he_o sacrifice_v at_o the_o table_n but_o he_o be_v not_o slay_v at_o the_o table_n uery_o and_o in_o deed_n but_o only_o in_o a_o mysteriâ_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o sacrifice_v at_o the_o table_n really_n and_o in_o deed_n but_o only_o in_o a_o mystery_n so_o saithe_v s._n augustine_n 23._o nun_n semel_fw-la immolatus_fw-la est_fw-la christus_fw-la in_o semetipso_fw-la et_fw-la ramen_fw-la in_o sacramento_n non_fw-la tantùm_fw-la per_fw-la omnes_fw-la paschae_fw-la solennitates_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la omni_fw-la die_fw-la populis_fw-la immolatur_fw-la nec_fw-la utique_fw-la
secundum_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la tradita_fw-la sunt_fw-la mysteria_fw-la celebrantes_fw-la &_o gratias_fw-la deo_fw-la pro_fw-la salute_v nostra_fw-la agentes_fw-la we_o sacrifice_n 10._o and_o offer_v up_o unto_o god_n the_o remembrance_n of_o that_o great_a sacrifice_n usinge_v the_o holy_a mystery_n according_o as_o christ_n have_v deliver_v they_o and_o gevinge_v god_n thank_n for_o our_o salvation_n and_o that_o ireneus_fw-la mean_v not_o any_o such_o real_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n malachi_n nor_o may_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a so_o be_v take_v it_o be_v evidente_a by_o the_o plain_a word_n that_o follow_v touchinge_v the_o same_o for_o thus_o he_o saithe_v speak_v of_o the_o very_a same_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v mention_v by_o malachi_n sacrificia_fw-la non_fw-la sanctificant_fw-la hominem_fw-la sed_fw-la conscientia_fw-la eius_fw-la qui_fw-la offer_v existens_fw-la pura_fw-la sanctificat_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la the_o sacrifice_n do_v not_o sanctify_v the_o man_n but_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o offerer_n be_v pure_a sanctifi_v the_o sacrifice_n i_o trow_v m._n hardinge_n will_v not_o say_v the_o priest_n be_v not_o sanctify_v by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o priest_n for_o that_o be_v blasphemy_n and_o yet_o thus_o must_v he_o needs_o say_v if_o ireneus_fw-la mean_v the_o real_a sacrificinge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o m._n hardinge_n have_v divise_v a_o great_a many_o reply_n to_o the_o contrary_n first_o he_o faith_n the_o offer_v up_o of_o prayer_n praise_n and_o thankesgevinge_v can_v be_v call_v a_o new_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o same_o be_v make_v by_o moses_n aaron_n the_o prophet_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n in_o the_o old_a law_n this_o objection_n serve_v well_o to_o control_n tertullian_n s._n augustine_n and_o s._n hierome_n and_o other_o learned_a father_n that_o thus_o have_v take_v it_o who_o by_o m._n hardinge_n judgement_n write_v unaduised_o they_o know_v not_o what_o hereunto_o ireneus_fw-la himself_o answer_v thus_o oblationes_fw-la hic_fw-la 34._o oblationes_fw-la illic_fw-la sacrificia_fw-la in_o populo_fw-la israenl_n sacrificia_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la say_fw-la species_n immutata_fw-la est_fw-la tantum_fw-la quip_n cùm_fw-la iam_fw-la non_fw-la à _fw-la seruis_fw-la sed_fw-la à _fw-la liberis_fw-la offeruntur_fw-la there_o be_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n there_o be_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o new_a there_o be_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n there_o be_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n only_o the_o manner_n or_o form_n be_v change_v for_o now_o they_o be_v offer_v not_o by_o bonde_n man_n as_o before_o but_o by_o free_a man_n in_o like_a sense_n write_v angelomus_n 3._o mandatum_fw-la nowm_fw-la scribo_fw-la vobis_fw-la non_fw-la alterum_fw-la sed_fw-la ipsum_fw-la quod_fw-la dixi_fw-la vetus_fw-la idem_fw-la est_fw-la noâum_fw-la i_o write_v unto_o yowe_o a_o new_a commandment_n none_o other_o but_o that_o i_o call_v the_o old_a the_o self_n same_o be_v the_o new_a and_o it_o be_v call_v a_o new_a sacrifice_n saithe_n chrysostome_n 3._o because_o it_o proceed_v from_o a_o new_a mind_n and_o be_v offer_v not_o by_o fiere_fw-la and_o smoke_n but_o by_o grace_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o in_o this_o consideration_n ireneus_fw-la think_v david_n say_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n 21._o o_o sing_v unto_o the_o lord_n a_o new_a song_n m._n hardinge_n saithe_v further_o the_o word_n of_o malachi_n may_v in_o no_o wise_a be_v take_v for_o the_o oblation_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o crosse._n for_o that_o saithe_v he_o be_v do_v at_o one_o time_n only_o and_o in_o one_o certain_a place_n in_o golgotha_n without_o the_o gate_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o not_o in_o every_o place_n yet_o m._n hardinge_n may_v easy_o understande_v that_o the_o remembrance_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n and_o thankesgevinge_v for_o the_o same_o may_v be_v make_v at_o all_o time_n &_o in_o all_o place_n and_o therefore_o eusebius_n as_o it_o be_v note_v before_o call_v our_o sacrifice_n 3._o magni_fw-la illius_fw-la sacrificij_fw-la memoriam_fw-la the_o remembrance_n of_o that_o great_a sacrifice_n and_o the_o thankesgevinge_v which_o we_o yield_v unto_o god_n for_o our_o salvation_n dionysius_n call_v it_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o figurative_a sacrifice_n and_o s._n augustine_n saithe_v cùm_fw-la credimus_fw-la in_o christum_n ex_fw-la ipsis_fw-la reliquijs_fw-la cogitationis_fw-la christus_fw-la nobis_fw-la quotidiè_fw-la immolatur_fw-la 75._o when_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n even_o of_o the_o very_a remanentes_fw-la of_o our_o cogitation_n in_o what_o place_n so_o ever_o we_o be_v christ_n be_v sacrifice_v unto_o we_o every_o day_n likewise_o s._n hierome_n saithe_v cùm_fw-la audimus_fw-la sermonem_fw-la domini_fw-la 147._o caro_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la eius_fw-la in_o auribus_fw-la nostris_fw-la funditur_fw-la when_o we_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o blood_n be_v pour_v out_o into_o our_o ear_n and_o where_o as_o m._n hardinge_n saithe_v further_o est_fw-la that_o the_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o devotion_n can_v altogether_o be_v call_v pure_a and_o therefore_o can_v be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v confess_v that_o all_o our_o righteousness_n in_o respect_n of_o many_o imperfection_n may_v be_v compare_v as_o the_o prophet_n esai_n saithe_v unto_o a_o filthy_a clout_n yet_o in_o respect_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o in_o christ_n the_o prophet_n david_n saithe_v thowe_n shall_v wash_v i_o and_o i_o will_v be_v white_a than_o the_o snow_n how_o be_v it_o herein_o i_o will_v remit_v m._n hardinge_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o they_o who_o be_v authority_n he_o can_v well_o deny_v eusebius_n call_v our_o prayer_n mundun_v sacrificium_fw-la a_o pure_a sacrifice_n tertullian_n saithe_v we_o make_v sacrifice_n unto_o our_o god_n scapulam_fw-la for_o the_o safety_n of_o our_o emperor_n christ_n pura_fw-la prece_fw-la with_o a_o pure_a prayer_n s._n hierome_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christian_a prayer_n saithe_v thus_o a_o pure_a sacrifice_n be_v offer_v unto_o i_o in_o every_o place_n not_o in_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n 8._o but_o in_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v short_a s._n paul_n saithe_v volo_fw-la viros_fw-la precari_fw-la in_o omni_fw-la loco_fw-la levantes_fw-la manus_fw-la puras_fw-la i_o will_v puritatis_fw-la that_o man_n shall_v pray_v in_o all_o place_n liftinge_v up_o pure_a hand_n unto_o god_n touchinge_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o lord_n table_n eusebius_n write_v thus_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d he_o give_v we_o a_o remembrance_n in_o steed_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o offer_v up_o continual_o unto_o god_n 1._o and_o this_o he_o call_v incruentum_fw-la &_o rationabile_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la the_o unbloudy_a and_o reasonable_a sacrifice_n this_o saithe_n iraeneus_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n this_o sacrifice_n the_o church_n receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o same_o the_o apostle_n receive_v of_o christ_n that_o make_v all_o thing_n new_a m._n hardinge_n the_o .10_o division_n now_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o s._n cyprian_n have_v write_v to_o this_o purpose_n because_o his_o work_n be_v common_a to_o be_v short_a i_o will_v rehearse_v his_o word_n in_o english_a if_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n 16._o which_o be_v christ_n none_o but_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v sooth_o it_o behove_v we_o to_o obey_v and_o do_v that_o which_o christ_n do_v and_o command_v to_o be_v do_v for_o if_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o god_n very_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o himself_o first_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o command_v the_o same_o to_o be_v do_v in_o his_o remembrance_n very_o that_o priest_n do_v occupy_v the_o office_n of_o christ_n true_o who_o do_v by_o imitation_n the_o same_o thing_n that_o christ_n do_v and_o then_o he_o offer_v to_o god_n the_o father_n in_o the_o church_n a_o true_a and_o a_o perfect_a sacrifice_n if_o he_o begin_v to_o offer_v right_a so_o as_o he_o see_v christ_n himself_o to_o have_v offer_v this_o far_a s._n cyprian_n how_o can_v this_o article_n be_v avouch_v in_o more_o plain_a word_n 227_o christ_n he_o saithe_v that_o christ_n offer_v himself_o to_o his_o father_n in_o his_o supper_n and_o likewise_o command_v we_o to_o do_v the_o same_o âª_o here_o we_o have_v prow_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a and_o have_v always_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v lawful_a for_o the_o 228_o word_n priest_n to_o offer_v up_o christ_n unto_o his_o father_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o three_o holy_a martyr_n two_o greek_n and_o one_o latin_a most_o notable_a in_o sundry_a respect_n of_o antiquity_n of_o the_o room_n they_o bear_v in_o christ_n church_n of_o learning_n
apostle_n saithe_n s._n ambrose_n only_a s._n john_n except_v be_v all_o marry_v &_o yet_o nevertheless_o the_o same_o s._n john_n only_o except_v as_o it_o be_v think_v be_v all_o martyr_n 11._o spiridion_n be_v a_o marry_a bishop_n and_o yet_o as_o sozomenus_n write_v he_o be_v thereby_o nothing_o hinder_v neither_o to_o discharge_v his_o duty_n nor_o to_o any_o other_o godly_a purpose_n tertullian_n be_v a_o priest_n as_z appeareth_z by_o s._n hierome_n and_o marry_v deterior_fw-la as_o appear_v by_o his_o own_o book_n write_v to_o his_o wife_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o as_o some_o report_n be_v a_o martyr_n s._n hilary_n be_v a_o reverend_n father_n and_o bishop_n of_o poiteer_n and_o yet_o marry_v as_o may_v be_v geather_v by_o his_o epistle_n write_v to_o his_o daughter_n abra._n and_o to_o leave_v infinite_a other_o scriptorib_n s._n chrysostome_n saithe_v ita_fw-la pretiofa_fw-mi res_fw-la est_fw-la matrimonium_fw-la ut_fw-la possis_fw-la cum_fw-la eo_fw-la ad_fw-la sanctum_fw-la episcopatus_fw-la solium_fw-la subvehi_fw-la vtere_fw-la moderatè_fw-la nuptijs_fw-la &_o eris_fw-la primus_fw-la in_o regno_fw-la coelorum_fw-la so_o precious_a a_o thing_n be_v matrimony_n that_o with_o the_o same_o thou_o may_v be_v promote_v even_o unto_o the_o bishop_n chair_n cermanicis_fw-la use_v marriage_n with_o discretion_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v the_o chief_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n s._n hierome_n saithe_v hodiè_fw-la quoque_fw-la plurimi_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la habent_fw-la matrimonia_fw-la filiam_fw-la even_o now_o a_o great_a number_n of_o priest_n live_v in_o matrimony_n thus_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n and_o many_o other_o learned_a father_n 2._o and_o godly_a bishop_n be_v marry_v and_o as_o m._n hardinge_n saithe_v in_o his_o mirth_n and_o pleasance_n have_v their_o sister_n and_o yoke_v fellow_n but_o how_o and_o with_o what_o sister_n or_o fellow_n a_o great_a number_n of_o the_o wiâelesse_a sort_n of_o m._n hardinge_n side_n be_v yokte_v 7._o for_o very_a regard_n of_o honesty_n it_o may_v not_o be_v utter_v epiphanius_n write_v thus_o of_o certain_a of_o his_o time_n repudiant_fw-la nuptias_fw-la at_o non_fw-la libidinem_fw-la in_o honore_fw-la enim_fw-la apud_fw-la illos_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la sanctitas_fw-la sed_fw-la hypocrisis_fw-la they_o refuse_v marriage_n but_o not_o filthy_a lust_n jovinianum_fw-la for_o they_o esteem_v not_o holiness_n but_o hypocrisy_n who_o seethe_v not_o that_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n priest_n bishop_n and_o cardinal_n notwithstanding_o they_o be_v utter_o forebidden_v to_o have_v wife_n ãâã_d yet_o be_v easy_o allow_v to_o have_v concubine_n they_o themselves_o have_v confess_v it_o by_o these_o word_n unto_o the_o world_n etiam_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la urbe_fw-la romana_fw-la meretrices_fw-la ut_fw-la matronae_fw-la incedunt_fw-la per_fw-la urbem_fw-la seu_fw-la mula_fw-la vehuntur_fw-la quas_fw-la assectantur_fw-la de_fw-la media_fw-la die_fw-la nobiles_fw-la familiares_fw-la cardinalium_fw-la clericique_fw-la even_o here_o in_o this_o city_n of_o rome_n harlotte_n pass_v through_o the_o street_n or_o ride_v upon_o their_o mule_n like_o honest_a gentlewoman_n and_o gentleman_n of_o the_o cardinals_n band_n and_o priest_n at_o noon_n day_n wait_v upon_o they_o as_o touchinge_v they_o who_o it_o so_o much_o gréeve_v you_o m._n hardinge_n to_o be_v call_v martyr_n you_o have_v slay_v not_o only_o such_o and_o such_o who_o it_o like_v you_o by_o your_o own_o name_n if_o you_o have_v not_o forget_v your_o own_o name_n to_o call_v renegate_n but_o also_o great_a number_n of_o other_o more_o cardinalium_fw-la marry_a unmarried_a learned_a unlearned_a old_a yonge_n boies_n maid_n laiemenne_n priest_n bishop_n archebishoppe_n without_o mercy_n you_o scourge_v they_o with_o rod_n you_o set_v burn_v torch_n to_o their_o hand_n you_o cut_v of_o their_o tongue_n you_o hang_v they_o you_o behead_v they_o you_o burn_v they_o to_o ash_n you_o take_v the_o poor_a innocent_a babe_n fall_n from_o the_o mother_n womb_n and_o throw_v it_o cruel_o into_o the_o fire_n brief_o you_o do_v with_o they_o what_o so_o ever_o your_o pleasure_n be_v the_o worst_a word_n that_o proceed_v from_o they_o be_v this_o o_o lord_n forgeve_v they_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o do_v o_o lord_n jesu_n receive_v my_o spirit_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n you_o stand_v by_o and_o delit_v your_o eye_n with_o the_o sight_n you_o dig_v up_o the_o poor_a carcase_n of_o god_n saint_n that_o have_v be_v bury_v long_o before_o you_o serve_v they_o solemn_o with_o process_n and_o ascit_v they_o to_o appear_v at_o your_o consistory_n and_o by_o public_a sentence_n adjudge_v they_o to_o die_v the_o second_o death_n and_o so_o to_o the_o perpetual_a shame_n of_o your_o cruel_a folly_n you_o wreakte_v your_o anger_n upon_o the_o dead_a o_o m._n hardinge_n your_o conscience_n know_v these_o be_v no_o lie_n they_o be_v write_v in_o the_o eye_n and_o heart_n of_o many_o thousand_o these_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o your_o religion_n o_o what_o reckeninge_v will_v you_o yield_v when_o so_o much_o innocent_a blood_n shall_v be_v require_v at_o your_o hand_n and_o where_o you_o say_v we_o must_v pull_v the_o old_a martyr_n out_o of_o heaven_n to_o place_v our_o own_o for_o that_o our_o doctrine_n and_o they_o as_o you_o beaâe_v we_o in_o hand_n be_v quite_o contrary_a all_o this_o be_v but_o a_o néedeles_a ostentation_n of_o idle_a word_n if_o vaunt_n be_v proof_n than_o be_v this_o matter_n full_o end_v but_o we_o say_v that_o in_o these_o case_n that_o i_o have_v move_v you_o be_v not_o able_a to_o allege_v one_o sufficient_a clause_n or_o sentemce_n of_o your_o side_n out_o of_o any_o of_o all_o the_o old_a learned_a father_n and_o hitherto_o your_o muster_n appear_v but_o very_o simple_a notwithstanding_o the_o great_a promise_n of_o your_o store_n certain_o the_o holy_a father_n &_o martyr_n of_o god_n will_v say_v unto_o you_o we_o know_v not_o your_o private_a mass_n we_o know_v not_o your_o half_a communion_n we_o know_v not_o your_o strange_a unknowen_a prayer_n we_o know_v not_o your_o adoration_n of_o corruptible_a creature_n we_o know_v not_o this_o sacrificinge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n we_o know_v not_o your_o new_a religion_n we_o know_v not_o you_o god_n open_v the_o eye_n of_o your_o heart_n that_o you_o may_v see_v the_o miserable_a state_n you_o stand_v in_o &_o recover_v the_o place_n that_o you_o have_v lose_v and_o find_v your_o name_n write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .12_o division_n leave_v no_o small_a number_n of_o place_n that_o may_v be_v recite_v out_o of_o diverse_a other_o doctor_n i_o will_v bring_v two_o of_o two_o worthy_a bishop_n one_o of_o chrysostome_n the_o other_o of_o s._n ambrose_n confirminge_v this_o truth_n chrysostom_n 17._o word_n be_v these_o pontifex_fw-la noster_fw-la ille_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la hostiam_fw-la mundantem_fw-la nos_fw-la obtulit_fw-la ipsam_fw-la offerimus_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la quae_fw-la tunâ_n oblata_fw-la quidem_fw-la consumi_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la hoâ_n autem_fw-la quod_fw-la nos_fw-la facimus_fw-la in_fw-la commemorationem_fw-la sit_fw-la eius_fw-la quod_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la hoc_fw-la ââim_fw-la facite_fw-la inquit_fw-la in_fw-la mei_fw-la commemorationem_fw-la he_o be_v our_o bishop_n that_o have_v offer_v up_o the_o host_n which_o cleanse_v us._n the_o same_o do_v we_o offer_v also_o now_o which_o though_o it_o be_v then_o offer_v yet_o can_v not_o be_v consume_v but_o this_o that_o we_o do_v be_v do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o that_o which_o be_v do_v for_o do_v you_o this_o saithe_v he_o 38._o in_o my_o remembrance_n s._n ambrose_n saithe_v thus_o vidimus_fw-la principem_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la ad_fw-la nos_fw-la venientem_fw-la vidimus_fw-la &_o audivimus_fw-la offerentem_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la suum_fw-la sequamur_fw-la ut_fw-la possumus_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la ut_fw-la offeramus_fw-la pro_fw-la populo_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la ersi_fw-la infirmi_fw-la merito_fw-la tamen_fw-la honorabiles_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la quia_fw-la etsi_fw-la christus_fw-la non_fw-la videtur_fw-la offer_n tamen_fw-la ipse_fw-la offertur_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la quando_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la offertur_fw-la we_o have_v see_v the_o prince_n of_o priest_n come_v to_o we_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v he_o offer_v for_o we_o his_o blood_n let_v we_o that_o be_v priest_n follow_v he_o as_o we_o may_v that_o we_o may_v offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o people_n be_v though_o weak_a in_o merit_n yet_o honourable_a for_o the_o sacrifice_n because_o albeit_o christ_n be_v not_o see_v to_o offer_v yet_o he_o be_v offer_v in_o earth_n when_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v offer_v of_o these_o our_o lord_n word_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o and_z which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o and_o for_o many_o here_o s._n ambrose_n exhort_v the_o priest_n to_o offer_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o people_n and_o will_v they_o to_o be_v more_o regard_v then_o common_o they_o be_v now_o a_o day_n for_o this_o sacrifice_n sake_n though_o otherwise_o they_o be_v of_o
in_o remembrance_n theoria_fw-la and_o in_o grace_n germanus_n hereof_o write_v thus_o non_fw-la amplius_fw-la super_fw-la terram_fw-la sumus_fw-la say_fw-la in_o throno_fw-la dei_fw-la regi_fw-la assistimus_fw-la in_o coelis_fw-la ubi_fw-la christus_fw-la est_fw-la we_o be_v no_o long_o upon_o the_o earth_n but_o we_o be_v assistante_fw-la unto_o the_o king_n in_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n where_o christ_n be_v for_o that_o lamb_n sake_n who_o we_o thus_o see_v and_o thus_o have_v present_a what_o so_o ever_o we_o pray_v our_o tear_n beg_v not_o in_o vain_a for_o he_o be_v our_o advocate_n 2._o and_o mediator_n and_o evermore_o make_v intercession_n for_o us._n what_o so_o ever_o we_o desire_v the_o father_n in_o his_o name_n 8._o shall_v be_v do_v unto_o us._n thus_o the_o angel_n 7._o and_o archangel_n as_o chrysostome_n by_o way_n of_o amplification_n saithe_v 16._o liftinge_v up_o and_o show_v forth_o and_o presentinge_v unto_o god_n in_o heaven_n that_o body_n of_o christ_n incomprehen_n make_v their_o prayer_n for_o mankind_n and_o thus_o they_o say_v for_o they_o we_o pray_v 3._o o_o lord_n who_o thou_o lovedste_v so_o tender_o that_o for_o their_o salvation_n it_o please_v thou_o to_o suffer_v death_n and_o to_o yield_v thy_o soul_n upon_o the_o cross_n for_o they_o we_o pray_v for_o who_o thou_o have_v give_v thy_o blood_n and_o offer_v up_o this_o body_n this_o certain_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o chrysostom_n word_n and_o therefore_o he_o saithe_v again_o whether_o we_o pray_v for_o the_o church_n or_o for_o the_o minister_n or_o for_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o earth_n our_o prayer_n be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n only_o in_o christ_n and_o for_o his_o sake_n touchinge_v that_o he_o write_v further_a of_o the_o presence_n and_o assistance_n of_o angel_n and_o heavenly_a power_n it_o be_v the_o ordinary_a manner_n and_o course_n of_o chrysostom_n eloquence_n and_o serve_v he_o both_o to_o beautify_v the_o matter_n and_o also_o to_o stir_v up_o and_o inflame_v the_o hearer_n mind_n and_o that_o not_o only_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n but_o also_o at_o all_o other_o holy_a assembly_n and_o public_a prayer_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v unto_o the_o people_n hebrae_fw-la angeli_fw-la sunt_fw-la ubique_fw-la &_o maximè_fw-la in_o domo_fw-la dei_fw-la adsunt_fw-la regi_fw-la &_o omne_fw-la plena_fw-la sunt_fw-la incorporeis_fw-la illis_fw-la virtutibus_fw-la the_o angel_n of_o god_n be_v everywhere_o but_o special_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n they_o be_v assistance_n unto_o the_o king_n and_o all_o place_n be_v full_a of_o spiritual_a power_n in_o like_a manner_n of_o amplification_n he_o saithe_v ascensione_n the_o martyr_n be_v here_o present_a in_o the_o church_n if_o thou_o will_v see_v they_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o thy_o faith_n and_o thou_o shall_v see_v a_o great_a company_n so_o say_v s._n basile_n the_o angel_n of_o god_n be_v present_a among_o we_o and_o mark_v and_o register_v they_o 2._o that_o keep_v their_o fast_n so_o saithe_v tertullian_n let_v noman_n be_v hard_a to_o believe_v that_o the_o holy_a angel_n of_o god_n be_v present_a and_o temper_v the_o water_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n this_o be_v it_o baptismo_fw-la that_o chrysostome_n mean_v by_o his_o vehement_n exornation_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o angel_n and_o where_o as_o m._n hardinge_n saithe_v he_o have_v pass_v over_o a_o hundred_o authority_n and_o more_o that_o may_v be_v allege_v to_o like_a purpose_n this_o be_v one_o of_o his_o accustom_a colour_n and_o a_o artificial_a shift_n of_o his_o rhetoric_n uery_o hitherto_o he_o have_v not_o find_v one_o authority_n to_o prove_v that_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o question_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .2_o division_n s._n ambrose_n in_o his_o funeral_n oration_n of_o the_o death_n of_o valentinian_n the_o emperor_n call_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n the_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a mystery_n and_o the_o oblation_n of_o our_o mother_n by_o which_o term_n he_o understand_v the_o church_n saithe_v that_o he_o will_v prosecute_v the_o holy_a soul_n of_o that_o emperor_n with_o the_o same_o this_o father_n write_n upon_o the_o .38_o psalm_n exhort_v priest_n to_o follow_v christ_n that_o as_o he_o offer_v for_o we_o his_o blood_n so_o priest_n offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o people_n his_o word_n be_v these_o vidimus_fw-la principem_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o have_v see_v the_o prince_n of_o priest_n come_n unto_o we_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v he_o offer_v for_o we_o his_o blood_n let_v we_o that_o be_v priest_n follow_v as_o we_o can_v so_o as_o we_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o people_n though_o weak_a in_o merit_n yet_o honourable_a for_o the_o sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n this_o objection_n be_v easy_o answer_v s._n ambrose_n saithe_v that_o in_o the_o congregation_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n he_o will_v offer_v up_o unto_o god_n praise_n and_o thankesgevinge_v for_o that_o godly_a emperor_n valentinian_n but_o he_o saithe_v not_o that_o he_o will_v offer_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n unto_o god_n his_o father_n or_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n for_o the_o emperor_n therefore_o m._n hardinge_n may_v well_o have_v past_o this_o authority_n over_o emonge_a the_o rest_n neither_o do_v s._n ambrose_n think_v that_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n be_v in_o purgatory_n whereas_o m._n hardinge_n imagine_v he_o may_v be_v relieve_v but_o contrariwise_o he_o presume_v he_o undoubted_o to_o be_v in_o heaven_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v of_o he_o quae_fw-la nam_fw-la est_fw-la haec_fw-la anima_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o be_v this_o soul_n imperat._n that_o look_v forth_o as_o the_o day_n star_n beautiful_a as_o the_o moon_n choose_v as_o the_o sun_n o_o blissed_a soul_n thou_o look_v down_o from_o aboove_o upon_o we_o be_v here_o beneath_o thou_o have_v escape_v the_o darkness_n of_o this_o world_n thou_o be_v bright_a as_o the_o moon_n thou_o shineste_a as_o the_o sun_n further_o he_o saithe_v cum_fw-la fratre_fw-la coniunctus_fw-la aeternae_fw-la vitæ_fw-la fruitur_fw-la voluptate_fw-la beati_fw-la ambo_fw-la be_v now_o with_o his_o brother_n he_o enjoy_v the_o pleasure_n of_o everlasting_a life_n bliss_v be_v they_o both_o therefore_o the_o sacrifice_n that_o s._n ambrose_n make_v be_v not_o a_o propitiatory_a or_o satisfactory_a or_o other_o like_a mass_n whereby_o m._n hardinge_n think_v himself_o able_a to_o bail_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n but_o only_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o thankesgevinge_v for_o that_o godly_a emperor_n be_v now_o in_o heaven_n the_o other_o place_n of_o s._n ambrose_n as_o it_o nothing_o touch_v this_o question_n so_o it_o be_v already_o answer_v full_o and_o at_o large_a artic._n 6._o divi._n 7._o and_o artic._n 17._o divi_z 12._o m._n hardinge_n the_o .3_o division_n that_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v profitable_o make_v for_o other_o s._n gregory_n witness_v very_o plain_o homilia_fw-la 37._o expound_v the_o place_n of_o s._n luke_n cap._n 14._o alioqui_fw-la legationem_fw-la mitten_n ea_fw-la quae_fw-la pacis_fw-la sunt_fw-la postulat_fw-la else_o he_o send_v forth_o a_o ambassade_n and_o sue_v for_o peace_n hereupon_o he_o saithe_v thus_o mittamus_fw-la ad_fw-la dominum_fw-la legationem_fw-la nostram_fw-la flendo_fw-la sacras_fw-la hostias_fw-la offerendo_fw-la singulariter_fw-la namque_fw-la ad_fw-la absolutionem_fw-la nostram_fw-la oblaâa_fw-la cum_fw-la lachrimis_fw-la &_o benignitate_fw-la mentis_fw-la sacri_fw-la altaris_fw-la hostia_fw-la suffragatur_fw-la let_v we_o send_v to_o our_o lord_n our_o ambassade_n with_o weep_v geve_v almose_n and_o offer_v of_o holy_a hostes._n for_o the_o host_n of_o the_o holy_a altar_n that_o be_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n offer_v with_o tear_n and_o with_o the_o merciful_a bounty_n of_o our_o mind_n help_v we_o singulare_o to_o be_v assoil_v in_o that_o homily_n he_o show_v that_o the_o oblation_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o this_o sacrament_n present_a which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o mass_n be_v help_n and_o comfort_v not_o only_o to_o they_o that_o be_v present_a but_o also_o to_o they_o that_o be_v absent_a both_o quick_a and_o dead_a which_o he_o prove_v by_o example_n of_o his_o own_o knowledge_n who_o so_o list_v to_o see_v antiquity_n for_o proufe_v hereof_o and_o that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n bishop_n and_o priest_n in_o the_o dreadful_a sacrifice_n offer_v and_o pray_v for_o other_o as_o for_o everystate_n and_o order_n of_o man_n and_o also_o for_o holesomenesse_n of_o the_o air_n and_o for_o fertility_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n etc._n etc._n let_v he_o read_v the_o eight_o book_n of_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n set_v forth_o by_o clement_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v none_o of_o those_o article_n that_o m._n hardinge_n have_v take_v in_o hand_n to_o prove_v and_o therefore_o as_o his_o manner_n be_v he_o show_v we_o one_o thing_n for_o a_o other_o this_o kind_n
death_n until_o i_o come_v i_o mean_v that_o they_o that_o die_v for_o the_o lord_n death_n may_v reaste_v under_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o sacrament_n after_o this_o he_o return_v again_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o bliss_v martyr_n under_o the_o altar_n in_o heaven_n legimus_fw-la plaerósque_fw-la justorum_fw-la abrahae_fw-la sinibus_fw-la refoveri_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o read_v saithe_n s._n augustine_n that_o many_o just_a man_n be_v refreash_v in_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o that_o many_o be_v in_o the_o pleasure_n of_o paradise_n yet_o noman_n deserve_v better_a than_o the_o martyr_n to_o reaste_v there_o in_o heaven_n where_o as_o christ_n be_v both_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o priest_n i_o mean_v that_o they_o may_v enjoy_v god_n favour_n by_o the_o offer_v of_o that_o sacrifice_n and_o may_v receive_v the_o blissinge_a and_o ministry_n of_o that_o priest_n hereby_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o heaven_n and_o not_o of_o earth_n nor_o of_o purgatory_n of_o the_o soul_n receive_v aboove_o and_o not_o of_o the_o body_n bury_v beneathe_v for_o all_o these_o thing_n s._n john_n by_o revelation_n see_v in_o heaven_n and_o for_o proufe_v hereof_o s._n augustine_n add_v further_a inter_fw-la coeteros_fw-la igitur_fw-la martyr_n quos_fw-la sub_fw-la ara_n dei_fw-la consistere_fw-la praedicamus_fw-la etiam_fw-la beatas_fw-la illas_fw-la infantum_fw-la lactentium_fw-la pro_fw-la christo_fw-la priâitias_fw-la martyrum_fw-la laudemus_fw-la therefore_o amongst_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o martyr_n who_o we_o say_v to_o be_v under_o the_o altar_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n let_v we_o commend_v those_o bliss_v first_o fruit_n of_o suckinge_v infant_n that_o be_v martyr_n for_o christ_n this_o be_v s._n augustine_n plain_n and_o undoubted_a meaning_n but_o m._n hardinge_n to_o serve_v his_o turn_n be_v fain_o of_o soul_n to_o make_v body_n of_o joie_n to_o make_v pain_n and_o of_o heaven_n to_o make_v purgatory_n and_o yet_o in_o all_o this_o great_a a_o do_v find_v neither_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la nor_o his_o mass_n thus_o be_v it_o lawful_a for_o these_o man_n to_o carry_v about_o and_o to_o use_v their_o reader_n touchinge_v the_o substance_n of_o this_o doctrine_n which_o m._n hardinge_n now_o at_o last_o upon_o better_a advice_n seem_v in_o some_o part_n to_o mislike_v notwithstanding_o it_o be_v not_o long_o sithence_o general_o receive_v both_o in_o school_n and_o church_n and_o count_v catholic_n 15._o origen_n that_o ancient_a learned_a father_n write_v thus_o quod_fw-la sanctificatur_fw-la per_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o per_fw-la obsecrationem_fw-la non_fw-la sâapte_v natura_fw-la sanctificat_fw-la utentem_fw-la nam_fw-la id_fw-la si_fw-la esset_fw-la sanctificaret_fw-la etiam_fw-la illum_fw-la qui_fw-la comedit_fw-la indignè_fw-la domino_fw-la the_o thing_n that_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o prayer_n of_o his_o own_o nature_n or_o exit_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la sanctifi_v not_o he_o that_o use_v it_o for_o otherwise_o it_o shall_v sanctify_v he_o that_o eat_v unwoorthy_o of_o the_o lord_n again_o he_o saithe_v 25._o assiduitas_fw-la communicationis_fw-la &_o alia_fw-la similia_fw-la non_fw-la ipsae_fw-la sunt_fw-la justitiae_fw-la sed_fw-la conditurae_fw-la habentur_fw-la justitiarum_fw-la res_fw-la autem_fw-la spirituales_fw-la quae_fw-la ex_fw-la se_fw-la ipsis_fw-la justitiae_fw-la sunt_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la judicium_fw-la misericordia_fw-la &_o fides_n the_o often_o usinge_v of_o the_o communion_n and_o other_o like_a thing_n be_v not_o righteousness_n itself_o of_o itself_o or_o of_o the_o work_n that_o there_o be_v wrought_v but_o only_o the_o seasoninge_a and_o set_v forth_o of_o righteousness_n but_o the_o spiritual_a thing_n which_o be_v righteousness_n itself_o be_v call_v judgement_n mercy_n and_o faith_n so_o s._n hierome_n 10._o ne_fw-la quis_fw-la confidat_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la solo_fw-la quòd_fw-la baptizatus_fw-la est_fw-la aut_fw-la in_o esca_fw-la spirituali_fw-la vel_fw-la potu_fw-la putet_fw-la deum_fw-la sibi_fw-la parcere_fw-la si_fw-la peccaverit_fw-la let_v noman_n presume_v of_o this_o thing_n only_o that_o he_o be_v baptise_a nor_o let_v he_o think_v that_o god_n for_o receivinge_v the_o spiritual_a meat_n or_o drink_v the_o spiritual_a cup_n exit_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la will_v pardon_n he_o if_o he_o offend_v so_o s._n augustine_n 80._o non_fw-fr ait_fw-fr mundi_fw-la estis_fw-la propter_fw-la baptisma_fw-la quo_fw-la loti_fw-la estis_fw-la sed_fw-la propter_fw-la verbum_fw-la quod_fw-la locutus_fw-la sum_fw-la vobis_fw-la christ_n saithe_v not_o you_o be_v clean_o for_o the_o baptism_n sake_n wherewith_o you_o be_v wassh_v but_o for_o the_o word_n sake_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v unto_o you_o 10._o and_o again_o foelix_fw-la venture_n qui_fw-la te_fw-la portavit_fw-la etc._n etc._n bliss_v be_v that_o womb_n that_o bear_v thou_o but_o christ_n answer_v nay_o bliss_v be_v they_o that_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o keep_v the_o same_o that_o be_v to_o say_v my_o mother_n who_o you_o call_v bliss_v thereof_o be_v bliss_v for_o that_o she_o keep_v the_o word_n of_o god_n likewise_o again_o virginitate_fw-la materna_fw-la propinquitas_fw-la nihil_fw-la matri_fw-la profuisset_fw-la nisi_fw-la foelicius_fw-la christum_n in_o cord_n quà m_fw-la in_o carne_n gestasset_fw-la the_o nearenes_n of_o mother_n blood_n shall_v have_v profit_v christ_n mother_n nothing_o at_o all_o unless_o she_o have_v more_o bliss_o carry_v christe_o in_o her_o heart_n then_o in_o her_o body_n uery_o to_o asscribe_v felicity_n or_o remission_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o inward_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n unto_o any_o manner_n outward_a action_n what_o so_o ever_o it_o be_v a_o superstitious_a a_o gross_a and_o a_o jewishe_a error_n origen_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o circumcision_n write_v thus_o 5._o circuncisionis_fw-la nisi_fw-la reddatur_fw-la ratio_fw-la nutus_fw-la tantùm_fw-la est_fw-la circuncisio_n &_o opus_fw-la mutum_fw-la unless_o there_o be_v a_o reason_n yield_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o circumcision_n it_o be_v but_o a_o outward_a show_n and_o a_o dumb_a labour_n and_o avail_v nothing_o and_o touchinge_v the_o use_n and_o order_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n christ_n saithe_v not_o do_v this_o for_o remission_n of_o your_o sin_n but_o do_v this_o in_o my_o remembrance_n the_o only_a and_o everlasting_a sacrifice_n for_o sin_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n crucify_a upon_o the_o crosse._n he_o sit_v now_o in_o the_o nature_n and_o substance_n of_o our_o flesh_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n and_o evermore_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o and_o be_v the_o only_a sacrifice_n and_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n what_o so_o ever_o doctrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o this_o doctrine_n be_v wicked_a and_o blasphemous_a and_o as_o m._n hardinge_n have_v confess_v injurious_a to_o the_o glory_n and_o cross_n of_o christ_n finis_fw-la the_o xxi_o article_n of_o lord_n and_o god._n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n or_o that_o then_o any_o christian_a man_n call_v the_o sacrament_n his_o lord_n and_o god_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .1_o division_n this_o word_n sacrament_n as_o be_v declare_v before_o be_v of_o the_o father_n take_v two_o way_n 239_o father_n either_o for_o the_o only_a outward_a form_n of_o bread_n take_v and_o wine_n which_o be_v the_o holy_a sign_n of_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n present_a and_o under_o they_o contain_v or_o for_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o it_o consist_v of_o the_o outward_a form_n and_o also_o of_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n 240_o meaning_n very_o present_a 34._o 240_o which_o s._n augustine_n call_v the_o invisible_a grace_n and_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 240_o and_o ireneus_fw-la call_v it_o rem_fw-la coelestem_fw-la the_o heavenly_a thing_n as_o that_o other_o rem_fw-la terrenam_fw-la the_o earthly_a thing_n take_a the_o first_o way_n as_o emonge_o the_o learned_a father_n it_o be_v never_o take_v no_o christian_a man_n ever_o honour_v it_o with_o the_o name_n of_o lord_n and_o god_n for_o that_o be_v plain_a idolatry_n to_o attribute_v the_o name_n of_o the_o creator_n to_o the_o creature_n but_o take_v in_o the_o second_o signification_n as_o no_o ancient_a father_n ever_o take_v it_o it_o have_v always_o of_o christian_a people_n and_o of_o the_o learned_a father_n of_o the_o church_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o lord_n and_o god_n and_o of_o right_a so_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v for_o else_o be_v it_o impiety_n and_o a_o denial_n of_o god_n not_o to_o call_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o name_n of_o lord_n and_o god_n who_o be_v not_o only_o in_o truth_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n after_o which_o manner_n he_o be_v there_o exit_fw-la vi_o sacramenti_fw-la but_o also_o the_o inseparable_a conjunction_n of_o both_o nature_n in_o unity_n of_o person_n exit_fw-la necessaria_fw-la concomitantia_fw-la whole_a christ_n god_n and_o man_n that_o the_o holy_a father_n call_v the_o sacrament_n take_v in_o this_o sense_n lord_n and_o god_n i_o may_v prove_v it_o by_o many_o
roof_n but_o only_o speak_v the_o word_n only_o come_v by_o thy_o word_n thy_o word_n be_v thy_o sight_n again_o he_o saithe_v 1._o per_fw-la euangelistarum_fw-la prae_fw-la dicationem_fw-la per_fw-la svi_fw-la corporis_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la per_fw-la gloriosae_fw-la crucis_fw-la signaculum_fw-la nobiscum_fw-la deus_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la nos_fw-la &_o in_o nobis_fw-la god_n be_v with_o we_o and_o come_v to_o we_o and_o be_v within_o we_o by_o the_o preachinge_a of_o the_o evangelist_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o glorious_a crosse._n likewise_o again_o fideles_fw-la credunt_fw-la aduentum_fw-la verbi_fw-la 2._o &_o libenter_fw-la recipiunt_fw-la dominum_fw-la suum_fw-la the_o faithful_a believe_v the_o come_n of_o the_o word_n and_o glad_o receive_v their_o lord_n so_o saithe_v s._n augustine_n sancti_fw-la qui_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la accipiunt_fw-la christum_n in_fw-la manu_fw-la &_o in_o front_n the_o holy_a man_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n receive_v christ_n in_o their_o hand_n poenitentia_fw-la and_o in_o their_o forehead_n so_o likewise_o tertullian_n cùm_fw-la te_fw-la ad_fw-la fratrum_fw-la genua_fw-la protendis_fw-la christum_n contrectas_fw-la when_o thou_o fall_v down_o to_o touch_v thy_o brethren_n knee_n thou_o touch_v christ._n thus_o be_v christ_n touch_v thus_o be_v christ_n receive_v thus_o be_v christ_n present_v thus_o christ_n enter_v under_o our_o roof_n as_o christ_n enter_v into_o we_o by_o a_o godly_a minister_n by_o his_o word_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n by_o the_o cross_n and_o by_o the_o poor_a even_o so_o he_o enter_v into_o we_o by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n âuen_o so_o i_o say_v &_o none_o other_o wise_a and_o at_o every_o such_o entere_n of_o christ_n we_o ought_v to_o say_v o_o lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a that_o thou_o i_o shall_v enter_v under_o my_o roof_n now_o if_o these_o word_n be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v call_v lord_n and_o god_n then_o be_v the_o likewise_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o a_o cross_n draw_v in_o the_o forehead_n and_o that_o a_o godly_a bishop_n or_o minister_n be_v call_v lord_n and_o god_n here_o also_o appear_v a_o great_a untrueth_n in_o m._n hardinge_n translation_n for_o where_o as_o origen_n saithe_v et_fw-la tu_fw-la ergo_fw-la humilians_fw-la teâpsum_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o thou_o therefore_o humble_v thou_o self_n follow_v this_o centurion_n and_o say_v lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a that_o thou_o shall_v enter_v under_o my_o roof_n mean_v thereby_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o humble_v our_o self_n unto_o christ_n &_o to_o say_v unto_o he_o lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a etc._n etc._n m._n hardinge_n think_v it_o better_o come_v to_o corrupt_v yâ_z place_n &_o to_o translate_v it_o in_o steed_n of_o him_o for_o thus_o he_o write_v origen_n exhort_v he_o that_o shall_v receive_v it_o to_o humble_v himself_o and_o to_o say_v unto_o it_o lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a etc._n etc._n and_o so_o by_o open_a fraud_n and_o by_o falsifie_v his_o author_n word_n without_o fear_n or_o blushinge_v he_o teach_v god_n people_n to_o worship_v a_o creature_n in_o steed_n of_o god_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .2_o division_n s._n cyprian_n in_o sermone_fw-la de_fw-la lapsis_fw-la tell_v how_o a_o man_n who_o have_v deny_v god_n in_o time_n of_o persecution_n have_v notwithstanding_o the_o sacrifice_n by_o the_o priest_n do_v prive_o with_o other_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n not_o be_v able_a to_o eat_v it_o nor_o to_o handle_v it_o open_v his_o hand_n find_v that_o he_o bear_v ash_n where_o he_o add_v these_o word_n documento_fw-la unius_fw-la ostensum_fw-la est_fw-la dominum_fw-la recedere_fw-la cùm_fw-la negatur_fw-la by_o this_o example_n of_o one_o man_n it_o be_v show_v that_o our_o lord_n depart_v away_o when_o âe_n be_v deny_v the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n this_o gheasse_n hang_v not_o of_o s._n cyprian_n word_n but_o of_o m._n hardinge_n exposition_n for_o s._n cyprian_n call_v the_o sacrament_n neither_o lord_n nor_o god_n the_o man_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o have_v deny_v god_n in_o time_n of_o persequâtion_n and_o nevertheless_o afterwards_o receivinge_v the_o holy_a communion_n emonge_v other_o christian_n open_v his_o hand_n and_o find_v the_o sacrament_n turn_v into_o ash_n by_o this_o miracle_n saithe_n s._n cyprian_n we_o be_v teach_v to_o understande_v that_o god_n when_o he_o be_v deny_v depart_v from_o us._n i_o trow_v m._n hardinge_n will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n have_v ever_o deny_v god_n and_o yet_o by_o his_o exposition_n god_n be_v depart_v and_o go_v from_o it_o nor_o will_v he_o say_v that_o this_o man_n have_v deny_v the_o sacrament_n for_o he_o come_v among_o other_o to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n but_o he_o have_v dissemble_v and_o forsake_a god_n and_o therefore_o god_n have_v likewise_o forsake_v he_o and_o in_o token_n thereof_o he_o cause_v the_o sacrament_n to_o mulder_n into_o ash_n in_o his_o hand_n so_o s._n augustine_n 13._o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o of_o the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n say_v thus_o si_fw-mi sancta_fw-la malos_fw-la fugiant_fw-la utrunque_fw-la fugiat_fw-la if_o these_o holy_a thing_n baptism_n and_o priesthood_n flee_v from_o ill_a man_n let_v they_o both_o flee_v from_o they_o as_o well_o the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o prosper_v saithe_n 1â3_n non_fw-la locorum_fw-la interuallis_fw-la vel_fw-la acceditur_fw-la ad_fw-la deum_fw-la vel_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la disceditur_fw-la similitudo_fw-la facit_fw-la proximum_fw-la dissimilitudo_fw-la longinquum_fw-la we_o neither_o come_v to_o god_n nor_o go_v from_o god_n by_o distance_n of_o place_n the_o likeness_n of_o mind_n make_v we_o near_o the_o unlikeness_n remoove_v we_o far_o of_o when_o one_o deuterius_n a_o arian_n bishop_n will_v have_v baptise_a a_o man_n after_o his_o blasphemous_a sort_n 17._o sudden_o the_o water_n be_v sink_v away_o and_o the_o fonte_fw-la stand_v dry_a the_o like_a story_n be_v utter_v also_o by_o socrates_n &_o by_o other_o this_o miracle_n be_v likewise_o a_o token_n that_o god_n when_o he_o be_v deny_v depart_v from_o us._n yet_o may_v not_o m._n hardinge_n conclude_v hereof_o that_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n be_v therefore_o call_v lord_n and_o god_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .3_o division_n the_o same_o s._n cyprian_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o pater_n nostâr_n declaringe_v the_o fourthe_a petition_n of_o it_o ââue_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n understand_v it_o to_o contain_v a_o desire_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n in_o this_o bless_a sacrament_n and_o saithe_n ideo_fw-la panem_fw-la nostrum_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la christum_n dari_fw-la nobis_fw-la quotidie_fw-la petimus_fw-la ut_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la manemus_fw-la &_o viâimus_fw-la à _fw-la sanctificatione_n &_o corpore_fw-la eius_fw-la non_fw-la recedamus_fw-la therefore_o we_o ask_v our_o daily_a bread_n that_o be_v to_o say_v christ_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o âª_o which_o abide_v and_o live_v in_o christ_n depart_v not_o from_o the_o state_n of_o holiness_n and_o communion_n of_o his_o body_n 242_o live_v here_o s._n cyprian_n call_v the_o sacrament_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v in_o deed_n there_o present_a real_o so_o as_o in_o the_o place_n allege_v before_o he_o call_v it_o lord_n and_o i_o ween_v our_o adversary_n will_v imbarre_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n no_o less_o then_o of_o the_o name_n of_o lord_n or_o god_n onlesse_a they_o make_v less_o of_o christ_n then_o of_o lord_n and_o god_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n here_o m._n hardinge_n avouch_v three_o sundry_a untruethe_n with_o one_o breath_n for_o s._n cyprian_n neither_o in_o these_o word_n call_v the_o sacrament_n christ_n nor_o in_o the_o word_n before_o call_v it_o lord_n nor_o anywhere_o ever_o say_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v real_o present_v in_o the_o sacrament_n untruethes_n shall_v not_o so_o rifely_a flow_v from_o a_o good_a divine_a it_o be_v true_a that_o s._n cyprian_a saithe_n that_o christ_n be_v our_o bread_n even_o the_o same_o bread_n that_o come_v from_o heaven_n and_o geve_v life_n to_o the_o world_n which_o bread_n who_o so_o ever_o eat_v shall_v live_v for_o ever_o 44._o so_o saithe_v s._n basile_n christ_n be_v call_v our_o life_n our_o way_n our_o bread_n our_o vine_n our_o light_n our_o swearde_n which_o word_n must_v be_v take_v not_o gross_o nor_o according_a to_o that_o sound_v in_o the_o letter_n but_o of_o a_o mystical_a and_o spiritual_a meaning_n therefore_o as_o christ_n be_v our_o spiritual_a swearde_n our_o spiritual_a light_n our_o spiritual_a uine_n our_o spiritual_a way_n and_o our_o spiritual_a life_n so_o be_v he_o also_o our_o spiritual_a bread_n origen_n saithe_v ne_o mireris_fw-la quòd_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la caro_fw-la dicitur_fw-la 7._o nam_fw-la &_o panis_n &_o lac_n &_o olera_fw-la dicitur_fw-la &_o
seipsum_fw-la quis_fw-la audeat_fw-la manducare_fw-la dominum_fw-la suum_fw-la et_fw-la tamen_fw-la ait_fw-la qui_fw-la manducat_fw-la i_o vivet_fw-la propter_fw-la i_o what_o manner_n a_o voice_n be_v it_o that_o you_o have_v hear_v of_o our_o lord_n invitinge_v and_o biddinge_a we_o to_o the_o feast_n who_o have_v invite_v who_o have_v he_o invite_v and_o who_o have_v make_v preparation_n the_o lord_n have_v invite_v the_o servant_n and_o have_v prepare_v sacrament_n himself_o to_o be_v meat_n for_o they_o who_o dare_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o eat_v his_o lord_n and_o yet_o he_o saithe_v he_o that_o eat_v i_o shall_v live_v for_o cause_n of_o i_o cyrillus_n account_v 246_o body_n the_o sacrament_n for_o christ_n and_o god_n the_o word_n and_o for_o god_n 6._o in_o this_o saie_v qui_fw-la carnem_fw-la christi_fw-la manducat_fw-la vitam_fw-la habet_fw-la aeternam_fw-la habet_fw-la enim_fw-la haec_fw-la caro_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la quod_fw-la naturaliter_fw-la vita_fw-la est_fw-la proptereà _fw-la dicit_fw-la quia_fw-la ego_fw-la resuscitabo_fw-la eum_fw-la in_o novissimo_fw-la die_fw-la ego_fw-la enim_fw-la dixit_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la quod_fw-la comedetur_fw-la resuscitabo_fw-la eum_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la alius_fw-la ipse_fw-la est_fw-la quà m_fw-la caro_fw-la sva_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o that_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n have_v life_n everlasting_a for_o this_o flesh_n have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o natural_o be_v life_n therefore_o saithe_v he_o that_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o in_o the_o last_o day_n for_o i_o quothe_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v eat_v shall_v raise_v he_o up_o again_o for_o he_o be_v no_o other_o than_o his_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n it_o be_v true_a that_o s._n augustine_n saithe_v that_o christ_n prepare_v himself_o to_o be_v meat_n for_o us._n for_o christ_n himself_o say_v he_o that_o eat_v i_o shall_v live_v through_o i_o neither_o be_v it_o so_o needful_a for_o proufe_v hereof_o to_o borrow_v s._n augustine_n word_n out_o of_o beda_n he_o may_v have_v find_v the_o same_o meaning_n both_o in_o s._n augustine_n himself_o and_o also_o in_o other_o old_a father_n in_o sundry_a place_n s._n augustine_n write_v thus_o 29._o panis_n est_fw-la &_o panis_n est_fw-la &_o panis_n est_fw-la deus_fw-la pater_fw-la deus_fw-la filius_fw-la &_o deus_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sanctus_n deus_fw-la qui_fw-la tibi_fw-la that_fw-mi nihil_fw-la melius_fw-la quam_fw-la tibi_fw-la that_fw-mi it_o be_v bread_n it_o be_v bread_n and_o it_o be_v bread_n mean_v thereby_o not_o the_o sacrament_n but_o the_o spiritual_a bread_n of_o life_n god_n the_o father_n god_n the_o son_n and_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n god_n that_o geve_v it_o unto_o thou_o geve_v thou_o no_o better_a thing_n than_o himself_o so_o s._n hierome_n sancti_fw-la vescuntur_fw-la coelesti_fw-la pane_n 4._o &_o saturantur_fw-la omni_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la eundem_fw-la habentes_fw-la dominun_n quem_fw-la &_o cibum_fw-la holy_a man_n eat_v the_o heavenly_a bread_n and_o be_v fill_v with_o every_o word_n of_o god_n have_v the_o same_o lord_n that_o be_v their_o meat_n so_o s._n gregory_n praesepe_fw-la natus_fw-la implevit_fw-la qui_fw-la cibum_fw-la semetipsum_fw-la mortalium_fw-la mentibus_fw-la praebuit_fw-la be_v bear_v he_o fill_v the_o mânger_n that_o give_v himself_o meat_n to_o the_o mind_n or_o soul_n of_o man_n in_o this_o sense_n and_o none_o otherwise_o cyrillus_n saithe_v i_o that_o be_v to_o say_v my_o body_n that_o shall_v be_v eat_v shall_v raise_v he_o up_o again_o for_o christ_n be_v none_o other_o than_o his_o flesh_n all_o these_o saieinge_n be_v true_a and_o out_o of_o question_n yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o m._n hardinge_n will_v gather_v hereof_o be_v not_o true_a that_o be_v that_o either_o s._n augustine_n or_o any_o of_o these_o holy_a father_n ever_o call_v the_o sacrament_n either_o lord_n or_o god_n or_o christ_n himself_o s._n augustine_n in_o diverse_a place_n teach_v we_o that_o christ_n body_n itself_o 59_o and_o the_o sacrament_n thereof_o be_v sundry_a thing_n and_o the_o difference_n he_o open_v in_o this_o sort_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v receive_v inwardly_o with_o the_o mind_n but_o the_o sacrament_n be_v outwarde_o press_v and_o bruesed_a with_o the_o tooth_n and_o therefore_o he_o call_v the_o sacrament_n panem_fw-la domini_fw-la the_o bread_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o christ_n himself_o he_o callethe_v panem_fw-la dominum_fw-la the_o bread_n that_o be_v our_o lord_n and_o expoundinge_a these_o word_n of_o christ_n geve_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n he_o saithe_v thus_o 2._o this_o daily_o bread_n we_o may_v understande_v either_o for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o we_o receive_v every_o day_n as_o then_o the_o whole_a people_n use_v to_o do_v or_o for_o that_o spiritual_a food_n of_o christ_n body_n itself_o of_o which_o our_o lord_n saithe_v work_v you_o the_o meat_n that_o perish_v not_o and_o again_o i_o be_o that_o bread_n of_o life_n that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n here_o we_o see_v a_o other_o notable_a difference_n bitwéene_v christ_n body_n itself_o and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o if_o it_o have_v please_v m._n hardinge_n to_o have_v take_v better_o view_v of_o his_o place_n thus_o he_o may_v have_v see_v s._n augustine_n himself_o even_o in_o the_o same_o place_n expound_v himself_o for_o thus_o he_o saithe_v nulli_fw-la est_fw-la aliquatenus_fw-la ambigendum_fw-la 10._o tunc_fw-la unumquenque_fw-la fidelium_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la domini_fw-la participem_fw-la fieri_fw-la quando_fw-la in_o baptismate_fw-la membrum_fw-la christi_fw-la efficitur_fw-la nec_fw-la alienari_fw-la ab_fw-la illius_fw-la panis_n calicisque_fw-la consortio_fw-la etiam_fw-la si_fw-la antequam_fw-la panem_fw-la illum_fw-la comedat_fw-la &_o calicem_fw-la bibat_fw-la de_fw-la hoc_fw-la saeculo_fw-la in_o unitate_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la constitutus_fw-la abscedat_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la enim_fw-la illius_fw-la participatione_fw-la ac_fw-la beneficio_fw-la non_fw-la privatur_fw-la quando_fw-la ipse_fw-la hoc_fw-la quod_fw-la illud_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la significat_fw-la invenit_fw-la noman_n may_v anywyse_o doubt_n but_o that_o every_o faithful_a man_n be_v then_o make_v partetaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n when_o in_o baptism_n he_o be_v make_v a_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o put_v from_o the_o fellowship_n of_o that_o bread_n and_o cup_n although_o he_o depart_v this_o life_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n body_n before_o he_o eat_v of_o that_o bread_n or_o drink_v of_o that_o cup_n for_o he_o lose_v not_o the_o partetaking_n and_o benefit_n of_o that_o sacrament_n so_o long_o as_o he_o find_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n itself_o which_o be_v signify_v by_o that_o sacrament_n here_o s._n augustine_n teach_v we_o that_o a_o faithful_a man_n be_v partetaker_n of_o christ_n body_n itself_o you_o although_o he_o receive_v not_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o as_o s._n augustine_n in_o these_o word_n here_o allege_v by_o m._n hardinge_n saithe_v 7_o christus_fw-la praeparavit_fw-la cibum_fw-la seipsum_fw-la so_o write_n upon_o s._n john_n he_o saithe_v thus_o christus_fw-la invitavit_fw-la nos_fw-la ad_fw-la euangelium_fw-la suum_fw-la &_o ipse_fw-la cibus_fw-la noster_fw-la est_fw-la quo_fw-la nihil_fw-la dulcius_fw-la sed_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la habeat_fw-la palatum_fw-la in_o cord_n christ_n have_v call_v we_o unto_o his_o gospel_n and_o he_o himself_o be_v our_o meat_n than_o which_o meat_n there_o be_v nothing_o sweet_a if_o a_o man_n have_v wherewith_o to_o taste_v it_o in_o his_o heart_n so_o again_o he_o saithe_v deus_fw-la panis_n intus_fw-la est_fw-la animae_fw-la meae_fw-la 1._o god_n be_v the_o inward_a bread_n not_o to_o enter_v into_o my_o bodily_a mouth_n but_o of_o my_o soul_n thus_o we_o see_v the_o one_o part_n of_o m._n hardinge_n tale_n be_v true_a that_o christ_n himself_o be_v our_o bread_n but_o the_o other_o partâ_n be_v unture_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v that_o bread_n and_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a form_n of_o reasoninge_v to_o say_v thus_o christ_n be_v our_o food_n we_o eat_v he_o with_o our_o soul_n and_o with_o our_o spirit_n and_o live_v by_o he_o ergo_fw-la the_o sacrament_n in_o s._n augustine_n time_n be_v call_v lord_n and_o god_n the_o error_n &_o falshead_n of_o this_o argument_n besides_o sundry_a other_o infirmity_n stand_v in_o the_o equivocation_n or_o double_a take_n of_o this_o word_n eat_v which_o have_v relation_n sometime_o to_o the_o material_a mouth_n of_o our_o body_n sometime_o to_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o spiritual_a mouth_n of_o our_o soul_n s._n john_n say_v christ_n have_v wassh_v we_o with_o his_o blood_n 3._o and_o s._n bernarde_n saithe_v lavemur_fw-la in_o sanguine_a eius_fw-la let_v we_o bathe_v ourselves_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n yet_o m._n hardinge_n may_v not_o hereof_o conclude_v that_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n in_o deed_n and_o uery_o be_v that_o blood_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .8_o division_n noman_n
jewel_n promise_v to_o geve_v over_o and_o subscribe_v if_o any_o one_o may_v be_v find_v now_o we_o shall_v see_v what_o truth_n be_v in_o his_o word_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o by_o these_o few_o well_o consider_v it_o may_v easy_o appear_v unto_o the_o discrete_o reader_n that_o none_o of_o all_o these_o ancient_a father_n neither_o ireneus_fw-la nor_o origen_n nor_o cyprian_a nor_o chrysostome_n nor_o ambrose_n nor_o augustine_n nor_o cyrillus_n for_o aught_o that_o may_v appear_v by_o their_o word_n ever_o call_v the_o sacrament_n either_o lord_n or_o christ_n or_o divine_a substance_n or_o god_n or_o himself_o or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o their_o god_n notwithstanding_o m._n hardinge_n have_v take_v some_o pain_n by_o guileful_a translation_n and_o unaduised_a asseveration_n to_o make_v some_o appearance_n of_o the_o same_o s._n hierome_n saithe_v 26._o falsi_fw-la testes_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la eodem_fw-la sensu_fw-la dicta_fw-la proferunt_fw-la quo_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la they_o that_o report_v word_n in_o other_o sense_n word_n than_o they_o be_v speak_v be_v false_a witness_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .10_o division_n in_o the_o weigh_v of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n little_a occasion_n of_o wicked_a scoff_n and_o blasphemy_n against_o this_o bless_a sacrament_n shall_v remain_v to_o they_o that_o be_v not_o blind_v with_o that_o gross_a and_o fond_a error_n himself_o that_o deni_v the_o inseparabilitie_n of_o christ_n but_o affirm_v in_o this_o mystery_n to_o be_v present_a his_o fâeashe_n only_o without_o blood_n soul_n and_o godhead_n which_o be_v confute_v by_o plain_a scripture_n christ_n raise_v from_o the_o dead_a now_o die_v no_o more_o rom._n 6._o he_o suffer_v himself_o no_o more_o to_o be_v divide_v 1._o cor._n 1._o every_o spirit_n that_o lose_v jesus_n this_o be_v antichriste_n 1._o joan._n 4._o hereof_o it_o follow_v that_o if_o christ_n be_v very_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o it_o be_v other_o where_o sufficient_o prove_v then_o be_v he_o there_o entire_a and_o whole_a flesh_n blood_n and_o soul_n whole_a christ_n god_n and_o man_n for_o the_o inseparable_a union_n of_o both_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n which_o matter_n be_v more_o ample_o declare_v in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n in_o the_o end_n m._n harding_n confirm_v this_o doctrine_n by_o the_o confutation_n of_o a_o error_n which_o for_o the_o novelty_n and_o strangeness_n of_o it_o may_v easy_o seem_v to_o be_v his_o own_o and_o therefore_o ought_v of_o right_a to_o be_v call_v m._n hardinge_n error_n for_o i_o believe_v it_o be_v never_o neither_o defend_v nor_o imagine_v by_o any_o other_o he_o surmise_v there_o be_v some_o that_o either_o have_v say_v or_o else_o may_v say_v that_o christ_n flesh_n be_v present_a really_n in_o the_o sacrament_n how_o be_v it_o dead_a and_o bloodless_a and_o utter_o void_a both_o of_o soul_n and_o godheade_n this_o be_v a_o new_a error_n never_o tame_v or_o touch_v before_o this_o time_n as_o for_o we_o we_o do_v constant_o believe_v and_o confess_v that_o christ_n the_o very_a natural_a son_n of_o god_n receive_v our_o flesh_n of_o the_o blissed_a virgin_n &_o that_o where_o so_o ever_o that_o flesh_n be_v there_o be_v also_o both_o the_o godheade_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o this_o undoubted_a truth_n m._n hardinge_n geather_v a_o impertinent_a conclusion_n for_o thus_o he_o reason_v if_o christ_n be_v very_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o sacrament_n then_o be_v he_o there_o intiere_a and_o whole_a god_n and_o man._n in_o deed_n the_o first_o be_v grant_v the_o rest_n must_v needs_o follow_v but_o how_o be_v m._n harding_n so_o well_o assure_v of_o the_o first_o what_o old_a doctor_n or_o ancient_a father_n ever_o teach_v he_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v real_o and_o fleash_o present_a under_o these_o form_n or_o fantasy_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n if_o the_o learned_a father_n say_v so_o it_o be_v good_a to_o show_v it_o if_o they_o say_v not_o so_o it_o be_v great_a shame_n to_o plead_v it_o uery_o all_o that_o m._n hardinge_n have_v yet_o say_v be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v it_o now_o good_a christian_a reader_n for_o thy_o better_a satisfaction_n in_o this_o case_n be_v so_o dangerous_a wherein_o who_o so_o err_v be_v a_o idolater_n &_o know_v not_o god_n it_o may_v please_v thou_o brief_o to_o consider_v both_o the_o ancient_a godly_a father_n undoubted_a judgement_n touch_v this_o sacrament_n and_o also_o the_o ancient_a order_n and_o usage_n of_o the_o same_o first_o 11._o concern_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n in_o this_o behalf_n s._n chrysostome_n saithe_v in_o vasis_fw-la sanctificatis_fw-la non_fw-la verum_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la say_fw-la mysterium_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la continetur_fw-la in_o the_o holy_a vessel_n not_o the_o very_a or_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v contain_v s._n augustine_n say_v âos_v interrogo_fw-la vos_fw-la fratres_n dicite_fw-la mihi_fw-la quid_fw-la plus_fw-la videtur_fw-la vobis_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la a_o verbum_fw-la christi_fw-la si_fw-mi vultis_fw-la verè_fw-la respondere_fw-la hoc_fw-la dicere_fw-la debetis_fw-la quòd_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la minus_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la quà m_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la i_o demand_v of_o you_o this_o question_n my_o brethren_n answer_v i_o whether_o think_v you_o be_v great_a the_o body_n of_o christ_n mean_v thereby_o the_o sacrament_n or_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n if_o you_o will_v answer_n true_o this_o must_v you_o say_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v no_o less_o than_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n s._n hierome_n say_v ego_fw-la corpus_fw-la jesu_fw-la euangelium_fw-la puto_fw-la âª_o et_fw-la quamuis_fw-la 147._o quod_fw-la christus_fw-la dicit_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la manducat_fw-la meam_fw-la carnen_n etc._n etc._n possit_fw-la intelligi_fw-la de_fw-la mysterio_fw-la tamen_fw-la veriùs_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la âius_fw-la sermo_n scripturarum_fw-la est_fw-la i_o take_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n to_o be_v the_o gospel_n and_o all_o be_v it_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n he_o that_o eat_v not_o my_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n veriùs_n may_v be_v take_v of_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o in_o true_a sense_n the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n likewise_o saithe_v origen_n quòd_fw-la si_fw-la circa_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la seruandum_fw-la tanta_fw-la utimini_fw-la tautela_fw-la quomodò_fw-la putatis_fw-la minoris_fw-la esse_fw-la periculi_fw-la verbun_n dei_fw-la neglexisse_fw-la quà m_fw-la corpus_fw-la eius_fw-la if_o you_o take_v such_o heed_n in_o keâpinge_v the_o sacrament_n creature_n which_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n how_o can_v you_o think_v there_o be_v less_o danger_n 13._o in_o despisinge_v the_o word_n of_o god_n then_o there_o be_v in_o despisinge_a the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o god_n it_o the_o sacrament_n be_v in_o deed_n and_o real_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o our_o very_a lord_n and_o god_n thus_o to_o compare_v it_o with_o a_o creature_n and_o to_o make_v it_o inferior_a unto_o the_o same_o as_o s._n augustine_n s._n hierome_n origen_n and_o other_o godly_a father_n do_v it_o be_v great_a blasphemy_n s._n augustine_n saithe_v 5._o plus_fw-fr est_fw-la unus_fw-la deus_fw-la quà m_fw-la unus_fw-la baptismus_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la est_fw-la baptismus_fw-la deus_fw-la say_fw-la ideò_fw-la magnum_fw-la aliquid_fw-la est_fw-la quia_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la est_fw-la dei_fw-la one_o god_n be_v more_o than_o one_o baptism_n for_o baptism_n be_v no_o god_n but_o yet_o be_v baptism_n a_o great_a thing_n because_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o god_n origen_n that_o great_a learned_a father_n say_v 15._o ille_fw-la panis_n qui_fw-la sanctificatur_fw-la per_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o obsecrationem_fw-la iuxta_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la habet_fw-la materiale_a in_o ventrem_fw-la abit_fw-la &_o in_o secessum_fw-la eijcitur_fw-la the_o bread_n that_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o prayer_n touchinge_v the_o material_a part_n of_o it_o which_o be_v the_o sacrament_n enter_v into_o the_o belly_n and_o pass_v into_o the_o draught_n these_o word_n be_v horrible_a to_o be_v speak_v if_o the_o sacrament_n in_o deed_n be_v christ_n and_o god_n s._n ambrose_n expoundinge_a these_o word_n of_o christ_n patriarcharum_fw-la geve_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n say_v thus_o hodiè_fw-la that_fw-mi nobis_fw-la hunc_fw-la panem_fw-la quem_fw-la ipse_fw-la quotidiè_fw-la sacerdos_n consecrat_fw-mi suis_fw-la verbis_fw-la possumus_fw-la &_o ipsum_fw-la dominum_fw-la accipere_fw-la qui_fw-la ait_fw-la ego_fw-la sum_fw-la panis_n aquavitae_fw-la even_o this_o day_n christ_n geve_v we_o this_o daily_o bread_n that_o be_v the_o sacrament_n which_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o priest_n doothe_v daily_o consecrate_v with_o his_o own_o word_n we_o may_v take_v the_o same_o daily_a bread_n also_o for_o our_o
new_a thing_n with_o the_o old_a and_o still_o to_o alter_v new_a for_o new_a until_o both_o their_o wit_n and_o their_o speech_n begin_v to_o fail_v they_o here_o note_n good_a reader_n that_o in_o this_o whole_a article_n m._n hardinge_n have_v allege_v no_o manner_n doctor_n nor_o old_a nor_o new_a the_o reason_n thereof_o be_v this_o for_o that_o of_o the_o old_a doctor_n he_o have_v none_o to_o allege_v and_o of_o his_o new_a doctor_n he_o be_v ashamed_a finis_fw-la the_o xxv_n article_n whether_o the_o fourme_n be_v the_o sacrament_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n or_o that_o the_o accident_n or_o form_z or_o show_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o not_o rather_o that_o bread_n and_o wine_n itself_o m._n hardinge_n the_o .1_o division_n for_o as_o much_o as_o by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n word_n pronounce_v by_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o consecration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v 253_o prove_v real_o present_a the_o substance_n of_o bread_n 253_o turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o substance_n of_o wine_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o blood_n the_o bread_n which_o be_v consume_v a_o way_n by_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o divine_a substance_n as_o chrysostome_n saithe_v paschali_fw-la and_o now_o be_v become_v the_o bread_n which_o be_v form_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n and_o decoct_v with_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o passion_n in_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n as_o s._n ambrose_n saithe_v omniâ_n can_v not_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n nor_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o blood_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o be_v before_o be_v the_o sacrament_n for_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v become_v the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n the_o blood_n and_o so_o now_o they_o be_v not_o and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o then_o neither_o be_v they_o sacrament_n therefore_o that_o the_o outward_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o remain_v be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o not_o the_o very_a bread_n and_o wine_n itself_o it_o follow_v by_o sequel_n of_o reason_n or_o consequent_a of_o understand_v deduce_v out_o of_o the_o first_o truth_n ââdice_n which_o of_o s._n basile_n in_o a_o epistle_n ad_fw-la sozopolitano_n speak_v against_o certain_a that_o go_v about_o to_o raise_v up_o again_o the_o old_a heresy_n of_o valentinus_n be_v call_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d of_o which_o sequel_n of_o reason_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n many_o conclusion_n may_v be_v deduce_v in_o case_n of_o want_n of_o express_a scripture_n which_o way_n of_o reasonninge_a basile_n use_v against_o heretic_n as_o also_o sundry_a other_o father_n where_o manifest_a scripture_n may_v not_o be_v allege_v the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n m._n hardinge_n presume_v that_o his_o new_a fantasy_n of_o transubstantiation_n must_v needs_o stand_v for_o good_a and_o therefore_o imagininge_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v whole_o remoove_v and_o can_v be_v the_o sacrament_n he_o think_v he_o may_v well_o conclude_v that_o the_o form_z &_o show_v that_o be_v leafte_v behind_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o sacrament_n but_o this_o error_n be_v soon_o reproove_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o old_a catholic_a father_n of_o the_o church_n s._n augustine_n saithe_v infant_n quod_fw-la videtis_fw-la panis_n est_fw-la the_o thing_n that_o you_o see_v speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o a_o form_n or_o a_o accident_n but_o very_o bread_n s._n chrysostome_n caesarium_fw-la theodoretus_n gelasius_n eâtychem_n and_o other_o learned_a father_n confess_v by_o manifest_a and_o express_v word_n that_o there_o remain_v still_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o very_a nature_n and_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n therefore_o this_o doctrine_n be_v build_v upon_o a_o false_a ground_n and_o can_v stand_v but_o chrysostome_n saithe_v the_o bread_n be_v consume_v by_o the_o force_n of_o the_o divine_a presence_n and_o s._n ambrose_n saithe_n m._n hardinge_n report_v the_o same_o 2._o it_o be_v great_a frowardness_n whatsoever_o any_o one_o or_o other_o of_o the_o father_n happen_v to_o utter_v in_o vehemency_n and_o heat_n of_o talk_n contra._n to_o dissemble_v the_o manner_n of_o their_o speech_n and_o to_o draw_v and_o force_v the_o same_o violent_o to_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o letter_n paulus_n saithe_v in_o fraudem_fw-la legis_fw-la facit_fw-la qui_fw-la saluis_fw-la verbis_fw-la legis_fw-la sententiam_fw-la eius_fw-la circumuenit_fw-la he_o do_v wrong_v to_o the_o law_n that_o folowinge_v only_o the_o bare_a word_n defraud_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o law_n s._n cyprian_n saithe_v 3._o passio_fw-la christi_fw-la est_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la quod_fw-la offerimus_fw-la the_o sacrifice_n that_o we_o offer_v be_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n chrysostome_n saithe_v 16._o baptisma_fw-la christi_fw-la sanguis_fw-la eius_fw-la est_fw-la the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n be_v christ_n blood_n and_o again_o he_o saithe_v in_o mysterijs_fw-la sanguis_fw-la ex_fw-la christi_fw-la latere_fw-la hauritur_fw-la encaenijs_fw-la in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v draw_v out_o of_o his_o side_n s._n gregory_n saithe_v christus_fw-la iterum_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la mysterio_fw-la moritur_fw-la sanguis_fw-la in_o this_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n christ_n be_v put_v to_o death_n again_o i_o trow_v m._n hardinge_n will_v not_o so_o strait_o force_v we_o to_o believe_v only_o upon_o the_o sight_n of_o these_o bare_a word_n either_o that_o the_o holy_a communion_n be_v christ_n passion_n or_o that_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n be_v christ_n blood_n or_o that_o christ_n be_v slay_v and_o put_v to_o death_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n or_o that_o christ_n blood_n at_o that_o time_n be_v draw_v and_o pour_v from_o his_o side_n and_o that_o without_o help_v of_o figure_n uery_o real_o and_o in_o deed_n by_o such_o manner_n of_o amplification_n and_o kind_a of_o speech_n s._n chrysostome_n say_v the_o bread_n be_v consume_v not_o for_o that_o theâe_n remain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n no_o bread_n at_o all_o but_o for_o that_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n that_o there_o be_v lay_v forth_o and_o represent_v before_o we_o the_o material_a bread_n seem_v nothing_o for_o otherwise_o chrysostome_n most_o plain_o confess_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n remain_v stil._n these_o be_v his_o word_n caesarium_fw-la in_o sacramento_n manet_fw-la natura_fw-la panis_n in_o the_o sacrament_n there_o remain_v still_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o as_o he_o saithe_v the_o bread_n be_v consume_v encaenijs_fw-la even_o so_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o seem_v to_o say_v the_o priest_n be_v consume_v his_o word_n be_v these_o ne_fw-fr pute_fw-la te_fw-la accipere_fw-la divinum_fw-la corpus_fw-la ab_fw-la homine_fw-la 51._o think_v not_o that_o thou_o receive_v the_o divine_a body_n of_o a_o man._n and_o to_o like_o purpose_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n non_fw-la baptizaris_fw-la à _fw-la sacerdote_fw-la deus_fw-la ipâe_fw-la tenet_fw-la caput_fw-la tuum_fw-la thou_o be_v not_o baptise_a of_o the_o priest_n it_o be_v god_n himself_o that_o hold_v thy_o head_n thus_o the_o holy_a father_n intreatinge_v of_o the_o sacrament_n use_v to_o avance_v our_o mind_n from_o the_o sensible_a and_o corruptible_a element_n to_o the_o cogitation_n of_o the_o heavenly_a thing_n that_o thereby_o be_v represent_v and_o therefore_o chrysostome_n say_v mysteria_fw-la omne_fw-la interioribus_fw-la oculis_fw-la videnda_fw-la sunt_fw-la 2._o we_o must_v behold_v all_o mystery_n with_o our_o inner_a eye_n 83._o which_o inner_a eye_n doubtless_o have_v no_o regard_n to_o any_o corruptible_a and_o outward_a thing_n hereby_o the_o feebleness_n of_o m._n hardinge_n sequel_n may_v soon_o appear_v true_a it_o be_v that_o he_o further_o say_v in_o case_n of_o want_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o may_v sometime_o guide_v ourselves_o by_o discourse_n and_o drift_n of_o reason_n 28._o notwithstanding_o s._n augustine_n saithe_v haec_fw-la consuetudo_fw-la periculosa_fw-la est_fw-la the_o custom_n hereof_o be_v very_o dangerous_a but_o in_o this_o case_n m._n hardinge_n want_v neither_o the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o authority_n of_o anciente_a doctor_n it_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o manifest_a word_n of_o s._n paul_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n of_o s._n augustine_n of_o theodoretus_n of_o gelasius_n and_o of_o other_o more_o holy_a father_n both_o greek_n and_o latin_n that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n âª_o after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n the_o very_a nature_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n remain_v stil._n it_o be_v much_o for_o m._n hardinge_n to_o forsake_v all_o these_o and_o to_o trust_v only_o to_o a_o bare_a shift_n of_o simple_a reason_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .2_o division_n and_o
stew_n that_o have_v divise_v unto_o themselves_o a_o strange_a religion_n without_o either_o scripture_n or_o ancientâ_n counsel_n or_o old_a doctor_n or_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o have_v turn_v their_o back_n to_o godâ_n that_o have_v deceive_v the_o people_n that_o hauâ_n make_v the_o house_n of_o god_n a_o cave_n of_o thief_n who_o so_o many_o kingedome_n and_o country_n and_o infinite_a thousand_o of_o godly_a people_n have_v foresaken_v from_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o express_a word_n have_v command_v we_o to_o depart_v 18._o for_o so_o it_o be_v write_v come_v away_o from_o she_o o_o my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o parâetakers_n of_o her_o sin_n lest_o you_o be_v also_o partetaker_n of_o her_o plague_n will_v you_o counsel_v we_o m._n hardinge_n to_o forsake_v the_o word_n of_o life_n and_o the_o company_n of_o all_o they_o that_o have_v give_v their_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o join_v with_o these_o you_o say_v we_o may_v have_v the_o example_n and_o company_n of_o one_o staphylus_n and_o balduinus_n and_o wicelius_n that_o have_v do_v the_o like_a you_o may_v also_o have_v add_v the_o example_n and_o company_n of_o judas_n the_o traitor_n of_o julianus_n the_o renegade_n â_o and_o of_o other_o the_o like_a of_o who_o s._n peter_n saithe_v they_o be_v turn_v back_o to_o feed_v upon_o their_o vomit_n as_o shameless_a dog_n and_o to_o wallow_v again_o in_o their_o mire_n as_o filthy_a swine_v i_o will_v say_v nothing_o of_o you_o m._n hardinge_n notwithstanding_o you_o know_v who_o example_n you_o have_v follow_v tertullian_n saithe_v thus_o persecutione_fw-la christus_fw-la ait_fw-la fugite_fw-la de_fw-la civitate_fw-la in_o civitatem_fw-la sic_fw-la enim_fw-la quidam_fw-la argumentabatur_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o ipse_fw-la fugitiws_fw-la christ_n say_v flee_v from_o city_n to_o city_n so_o there_o be_v one_o that_o use_v to_o reason_n but_o he_o himself_o be_v a_o fugitive_n i_o consider_v well_o their_o doing_n and_o stand_v in_o horror_n of_o their_o end_n some_o such_o of_o your_o side_n have_v die_v in_o miserable_a desperation_n with_o terrible_a witness_n against_o themselves_o that_o they_o have_v wrought_v against_o their_o own_o conscience_n as_o it_o be_v faitheful_o testify_v unto_o the_o world_n one_o of_o these_o three_o as_o it_o be_v report_v and_o open_o publish_v by_o they_o that_o know_v he_o best_o have_v alter_v his_o whole_a faith_n seven_o time_n within_o the_o space_n of_o seventeen_o year_n and_o therefore_o be_v well_o resemble_v to_o the_o old_a apostata_fw-la ecebolius_n 2._o s._n peter_n say_v it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o they_o never_o to_o have_v know_v the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n then_o have_v once_o receive_v knowledge_n afterward_o to_o turn_v away_o from_o âª_o the_o holy_a commandment_n 10._o it_o be_v a_o horrible_a thing_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o live_n god_n 6._o s._n paul_n saithe_v who_o so_o have_v once_o receive_v the_o light_n of_o god_n and_o have_v feel_v the_o sweetness_n of_o the_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o have_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o have_v once_o taste_v of_o the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n and_o afterward_o fall_v away_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o such_o a_o one_o to_o be_v renew_v by_o repentance_n i_o wish_v you_o in_o god_n and_o unfeigned_o m._n hardinge_n to_o be_v ware_n hereby_o these_o word_n and_o example_n be_v marvelous_a horrible_a although_o these_o 2._o and_o such_o other_o can_v deny_v god_n yet_o god_n can_v deny_v himself_o 3._o what_o saithe_v s._n paul_n if_o certain_a of_o they_o be_v fall_v away_o shall_v their_o infidelity_n make_v frustrate_v the_o faith_n of_o god_n god_n forebidde_v for_o god_n be_v true_a and_o all_o man_n be_v liar_n of_o your_o personne_fw-fr as_o i_o promise_v i_o will_v say_v nothing_o god_n work_v be_v wonderful_a 9_o he_o call_v who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o make_v hard_a he_o call_v paul_n from_o his_o horse_n elizaeus_n from_o the_o plough_n the_o apostle_n from_o their_o net_n and_o the_o thief_n on_o the_o cross_n upon_o the_o sudden_a but_o if_o some_o simple_a one_o or_o other_o of_o they_o who_o you_o so_o uncourteous_o have_v despise_v shall_v say_v thus_o unto_o you_o m._n harding_n not_o long_o since_o you_o teach_v we_o the_o gospel_n even_o in_o like_a sort_n and_o form_n in_o all_o respect_n as_o it_o be_v teach_v we_o now_o we_o remember_v both_o your_o word_n and_o also_o the_o manner_n and_o courage_n of_o your_o utterance_n you_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o paper_n wall_n and_o paint_a fire_n of_o purgatory_n you_o say_v rome_n be_v the_o sink_n of_o sodom_n you_o say_v your_o mass_n be_v a_o heap_n of_o idolatry_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n you_o wissh_v your_o voice_n have_v be_v equal_a with_o the_o great_a belle_fw-fr of_o oseney_n that_o you_o may_v ring_n as_o you_o then_o say_v in_o the_o duleare_v of_o the_o deaf_a papist_n noman_n be_v so_o vehement_a and_o so_o earnest_a as_o you_o the_o whole_a university_n and_o city_n of_o oxford_n the_o cross_n at_o paul_n and_o other_o like_a place_n of_o great_a concourse_n can_v well_o record_n it_o you_o bid_v we_o then_o believe_v you_o upon_o your_o credit_n and_o we_o believe_v you_o the_o prince_n die_v a_o other_o be_v place_v sudden_o you_o have_v quite_o forget_v all_o that_o you_o have_v teach_v we_o before_o and_o have_v as_o sudden_o learn_v other_o thing_n all_o contrary_a to_o the_o former_a which_o you_o tell_v we_o you_o never_o know_v before_o and_o yet_o with_o one_o face_n and_o one_o conscience_n you_o require_v we_o earnest_o to_o believe_v you_o still_o even_o as_o we_o have_v do_v before_o as_o though_o your_o bare_a word_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n âª_o and_o what_o so_o ever_o you_o shall_v say_v true_a or_o false_a we_o simple_a people_n be_v bind_v of_o necessity_n to_o believe_v you_o how_o be_v it_o we_o think_v if_o you_o tell_v we_o truth_n now_o than_o you_o deceive_v we_o before_o if_o you_o tell_v we_o truth_n before_o than_o you_o deceive_v we_o now_o and_o thus_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o this_o way_n or_o that_o way_n you_o have_v deceive_v us._n and_o how_o may_v we_o know_v whether_o you_o speak_v as_o you_o think_v or_o dissemble_v with_o we_o now_o 1._o as_o you_o do_v before_o sure_o s._n james_n show_v we_o that_o a_o man_n of_o double_a mind_n be_v ever_o unconstante_n in_o all_o his_o way_n we_o marvel_v how_o you_o can_v attain_v to_o all_o this_o doctrine_n special_o in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n but_o most_o of_o all_o in_o such_o perfection_n for_o the_o scripture_n be_v large_a and_o we_o hear_v say_v the_o council_n be_v sundry_a the_o doctor_n volume_n be_v long_o and_o many_o so_o sudden_o in_o seven_o day_n to_o read_v they_o all_o and_o so_o to_o read_v they_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a you_o may_v by_o your_o eloquence_n persuade_v we_o many_o thing_n but_o this_o one_o thing_n you_o can_v never_o persuade_v us._n you_o want_v time_n it_o be_v not_o credible_a it_o be_v not_o possible_a therefore_o you_o must_v needs_o say_v you_o be_v teach_v these_o thing_n even_o as_o the_o prophet_n be_v by_o revelation_n if_o any_o of_o all_o your_o old_a hearer_n will_v thus_o put_v you_o in_o remembrance_n alas_o what_o answer_n can_v you_o make_v he_o but_o it_o be_v not_o you_o m._n hardinge_n it_o be_v the_o time_n if_o the_o time_n have_v be_v one_o you_o have_v still_o continue_v one_o but_o you_o be_v force_v to_o know_v that_o you_o know_v not_o and_o to_o think_v that_o you_o think_v not_o and_o so_o to_o believe_v that_o you_o believe_v not_o how_o be_v it_o s_o hilary_n saithe_v quae_fw-la ex_fw-la necessitate_n est_fw-la fides_n non_fw-la est_fw-la force_v faith_n be_v no_o faith_n you_o say_v who_o so_o ever_o shall_v attempt_v to_o answer_v your_o book_n shall_v sweat_v in_o vain_a his_o labour_n shall_v be_v as_o be_v the_o commendation_n of_o baldenesse_n or_o of_o ignorance_n or_o of_o folly_n as_o a_o floorishe_a as_o a_o smoke_n as_o a_o smood_a and_o as_o i_o know_v not_o what_o the_o force_n of_o your_o eloquence_n be_v so_o invincible_a no_o truth_n be_v able_a to_o withstand_v it_o such_o affiance_n you_o will_v seem_v to_o have_v in_o the_o beauty_n of_o your_o cause_n here_o i_o beseech_v you_o geve_v i_o leave_v once_o again_o to_o put_v you_o in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o content_n and_o substance_n of_o your_o travail_n think_v you_o in_o soothe_v m._n harding_n or_o will_v you_o have_v we_o to_o think_v that_o your_o maim_a allegation_n your_o untrue_a translation_n your_o wrested_a exposition_n your_o council_n never_o hold_v your_o canon_n never_o nor_o make_v nor_o
not_o head_n extra_n de_fw-fr election_n &_o electi_fw-la potestate_fw-la bonif._n s._n fundamenta_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la quasi_fw-la quodam_fw-la capite_fw-la dona_fw-la âua_fw-la omne_fw-la diffundit_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la socraâes_n li._n 3._o ca._n 21._o matthae_fw-la 3._o actor_n 19_o paul_n the_o head_n as_o well_o as_o peter_n cregor_n li._n 4._o epis._n â8_o august_n contra_fw-la literas_fw-la petiliani_fw-la li._n 1._o ca._n 5._o august_n contra_fw-la epistolam_fw-la farââniant_fw-la li._n 2._o c._n 8._o gregor_n li._n 4._o epist_n 38._o the_o .125_o untruth_n âª_o for_o peter_n only_o except_v either_o of_o these_o title_n rest_v yet_o unprove_v esai_n 36._o daniel_n cap._n 7._o matth._n 24._o daniel_n 8._o 2._o thessalon_n 2._o aeneas_n silvius_n cyprian_n in_o sermone_fw-la de_fw-la jeiunio_fw-la &_o tent_n at_o joan_n origen_n in_o matthae_n tractat_fw-la 12._o dist._n 99_o primae_fw-la sedis_fw-la sozom._n li._n 3._o ca._n 8._o council_n aphric_n epist._n ad_fw-la coelest_n gregor_n li._n 4._o epist._n 34._o 38._o etc._n etc._n anno._n domini_fw-la 602._o de_fw-fr maior_n &_o obedien_fw-mi unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ibiden_v in_o glosa_n 9_o ques_n 3._o nemo_fw-la dist._n â1_n inferior_a sedes_fw-la esai_n 10._o de_fw-fr concessione_n praebendae_fw-la in_fw-la glosa_fw-la glosa_fw-la de_fw-fr electio_fw-la &_o electi_fw-la potestate_fw-la significasti_fw-la significasti_fw-la dist._n 40._o si_fw-mi pp._n extra_n de_fw-fr constitution_n licet_fw-la durand_n li._n 2._o 2._o de_fw-fr translatio_fw-la episcopi_n quâto_n in_o closa_n closa_n de_fw-fr concessio_fw-la praebendâ_n proposuit_fw-la in_o glosa_n glosa_n de_fw-fr maior_n &_o obedien_fw-mi unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la clem._n de_fw-fr appellationib_fw-la pastoralis_fw-la pastoralis_fw-la de_fw-fr maior_n &_o obedien_fw-mi solitae_fw-la in_o glosa_fw-la glosa_fw-la desenten_n &_o re_fw-la iudicata_fw-la ad_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la psalm_n 91._o 91._o dist._n 96._o si_fw-mi imperator_fw-la in_o glosa_n glosa_n dist._n 96._o satis_fw-la evidenter_fw-la evidenter_fw-la johan._n 22._o de_fw-fr verbor_fw-la signifiâ_n in_o glosa_fw-la cum_fw-la inter_fw-la inter_fw-la in_o council_n lateranen_n sub_fw-la julio_n julio_n 1._o corin._n 4._o 4._o 11._o quaest._n 2._o privilegium_fw-la privilegium_fw-la 25._o quaest._n 2._o sic_fw-la decet_fw-la the_o .126_o untruth_n for_o m._n harding_n be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o people_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v thus_o teach_v matth._n ãâã_d marâ_n 14_o luc._n 22._o 1._o cor._n 11._o luc._n ãâã_d the_o .127_o untruth_n for_o this_o be_v no_o part_n of_o our_o doctrine_n dissension_n and_o contradiction_n of_o m._n hardings_n side_n io._n fischerus_fw-la contra_fw-la captivita_fw-la babilonican_n n._n 8._o &_o o._n d._n smythe_n de_fw-fr eucharist_n stephan_n gardinerus_n d._n smythe_n ste._n gardener_n in_o the_o devil_n sophistry_n fol._n 6._o de_fw-fr con._n dist._n 2._o ego_fw-la berengarius_fw-la ste._n gardiner_n in_o the_o devil_n sophistry_n foe_fw-mi 15._o de_fw-fr con._n dist._n 2._o ego_fw-la bereng_n manibus_fw-la tractari_fw-la frangi_fw-la dentibus_fw-la atteri_fw-la hierom._n ad_fw-la gala_n cap._n 1._o pan._n de_fw-fr leg._n &_o senatuscon_n &_o long_fw-mi consuetud_fw-ge contra_fw-la legem_fw-la august_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o operib_n ca._n 4._o figure_n augustin_n super_fw-la leviticum_fw-la quaest_n 57_o 1._o corin._n 10._o basil._n de_fw-fr poenitentia_fw-la âª_o augustin_n ãâã_d psalmum_fw-la 3._o tertul._n contra_fw-la marcionem_fw-la li._n 4._o ambros._n the_o illig_a qui_fw-la initiantur_fw-la mysterijs_fw-la cap._n ultimo_fw-la augusti_fw-la de_fw-la doctrina_fw-la christiana_n li._n 3._o cap._n 5._o the_o bondage_n of_o the_o soul_n figure_n ibidem_fw-la the_o death_n of_o the_o soul_n deutero_fw-la 5._o exod_n 20._o psalm_n 5._o galat._n 3_o roman_n 5._o chrysost._n ad_fw-la populum_fw-la antioch_n hom._n 60._o ephes._n 5._o 1._o john_n 4._o sursum_fw-la corda_fw-la chrysost._n in_o â_o corint_fw-la 10._o hom._n 24._o augustin_n in_o johan_n tractat_fw-la 50._o bernard_n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la domini_fw-la figure_n ephes._n 3_o the_o .128_o untruth_n join_v with_o dangerous_a doctrine_n joan._n 6._o 1._o corinth_n 2._o ambrosi_n in_o psalm_n 118._o sermo_n 18._o augustin_n de_fw-fr câuita_fw-la li._n 2d_o ca._n 20._o non_fw-la solùm_fw-la augustin_n de_fw-fr utilitate_fw-la poenitentiae_fw-la ca._n 1._o manducaverunt_fw-la eundem_fw-la cibum_fw-la quem_fw-la nos_fw-la augustin_n in_o sermone_fw-la ad_fw-la infant_n citatur_fw-la a_o beda_n 1._o cor._n 10._o quando_fw-la ipse_fw-la hoc_fw-la quod_fw-la illud_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la significat_fw-la invenit_fw-la the_o .129_o untruth_n loin_v with_o untrue_a report_n for_o we_o understand_v these_o word_n of_o christ_n very_a flesh_n and_o blood_n ca._n 6._o john_n 6._o spiritual_a eatinge_v augustin_n iâ_n psalm_n 98._o basilius_n in_o psal._n 33._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d august_n epist._n 95._o august_n in_o joan._n tracta_fw-la 26._o ibidem_fw-la de_fw-fr consecratione_fw-la dist._n 2._o in_o quibus_fw-la origen_n in_o canti_fw-la cantico_n hom_n 2._o tertulâ_n de_fw-fr resurrecti_fw-la carnis_fw-la chrysost._n ex_fw-la varijs_fw-la locis_fw-la in_o matthae_fw-la hom_n 9_o augustin_n in_o joan._n tracta_fw-la 26._o chrysostom_n in_o johan._n hom_n 47._o augustin_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_n li._n 3._o ca._n 16_o origen_n in_o prologo_fw-la in_o cantica_fw-la canticorum_fw-la hieronym_n li._n 3._o in_o matthae_n cap._n 17._o augustin_n in_o johan_n tracta_fw-la 11._o tertull._n de_fw-fr resurrectione_n carnis_fw-la nico._n lyra_n in_o psalm_n 110._o origen_n in_o prologo_fw-la in_o cantica_fw-la canticorum_fw-la raban_n maurus_n li._n 1._o ca._n 31._o augustin_n johan_n tracta_fw-la 26._o a_o simple_a proufe_v for_o christ_n like_o wise_a show_v his_o omnipotent_a power_n in_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n augustin_n in_o joan._n tractat_fw-la 27_o illi_fw-la enim_fw-la putabant_fw-la eum_fw-la erogaturum_fw-la corpus_fw-la suum_fw-la certè_fw-la vel_fw-la tunc_fw-la intelligetis_fw-la quòd_fw-la gratiae_n eius_fw-la non_fw-la consumitur_fw-la morsibus_fw-la chrysost._n in_o 1._o corin._n 10._o ho._n 24_o hieronym_n ad_fw-la hedibian_a quae_fw-la 2._o cyrill_n ad_fw-la objection_n theodor._n anathematis_fw-la 11._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d nico._n lyra_n in_o psalm_n 110._o chrysostom_n in_o matthae_n hom_n 51._o august_n in_o johan_n tract_n 5._o august_n contra_fw-la literas_fw-la petiliani_fw-la li._n 3._o ca._n 49._o leo_fw-la de_fw-la nativita_fw-la sermone_fw-la 4._o the_o .130_o untruth_n for_o not_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n ever_o use_v any_o of_o these_o term_n touchinge_v christ_n presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o .131_o untruth_n for_o m_n hardiâge_v himself_o be_v force_v in_o the_o same_o word_n to_o acknowledge_v a_o great_a many_o figure_n accord_v to_o the_o letter_n hoc_fw-la est._n erit_fw-la tradituâ_n frangitur_fw-la facite_fw-la panis_n accepit_fw-la benedixit_fw-la fregit_fw-la dedit_fw-la august_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_n li._n 3._o ca._n 5._o origen_n hom._n 7._o in_o leviticum_fw-la tertull._n contra_fw-la marcio_n li._n 4._o augustiin_n in_o psalm_n 3._o augustin_n ad_fw-la bonifacium_fw-la epist_n 23._o the_o .132_o untruth_n for_o the_o father_n never_o use_v these_o term_n the_o .133_o untruth_n for_o biside_n s_o augustine_n s._n hââârome_n s._n ambrosâ_n and_o other_o johan._n scotus_n and_o bertramus_n write_v here_o of_o 200._o year_n before_o berengaââ_n the_o .134_o untruth_n for_o the_o old_a writer_n in_o this_o case_n use_v they_o never_o berengarius_fw-la the_o .33_o division_n johannes_n scotus_n bertramus_n lanfrancus_fw-la de_fw-fr sacramen_fw-la eucharistiae_fw-la ambros._n de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la li._n 4._o ca._n 4._o sacramentum_fw-la &_o res_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la acta_fw-la apost_n c._n 3._o augustin_n de_fw-fr con._n dist._n 2._o qui_fw-la manducas_fw-la augustin_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_n augustin_n ad_fw-la eonifaci_fw-la epist._n 23._o augustin_n de_fw-fr catechizandis_fw-la rudibus_fw-la de_fw-fr consec_n dist._n 2._o ego_fw-la berengarius_fw-la this_o be_v a_o horrible_a blasphemy_n âlosa_fw-la ibidem_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 1._o luc._n 3â_n 1._o cor._n 15._o psalm_n 22_o ephes._n 1_o philippen_n 2._o philippen_n 3_o augustin_n contra_fw-la adimantum_fw-la ca._n 13._o 1._o corin._n 15._o marcus_n antonius_n constantius_n ad_fw-la obiectum_fw-la 144._o christ_n body_n deify_v augusti_fw-la contra_fw-la faust._n manichaeum_fw-la li._n 11._o ca._n 2._o eutyches_n in_o concilio_n chalcedon_n august_n retracta_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 22._o augustin_n epist._n 57_o ad_fw-la dardanum_n augustine_n in_o psalm_n 49._o dionysius_n de_fw-fr eccle._n hierar_fw-it cap._n 1._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d cyprian_n de_fw-fr zelo_fw-la &_o livore_fw-la et_fw-fr li._n 2._o epist._n 8._o clemens_n in_o protreptico_fw-la dionysi_n de_fw-fr ecclesiast_fw-la hierar_fw-it cap._n 1._o ad_fw-la ephesi_n 1._o hieronym_n ad_fw-la ephes._n ca._n 1._o galat._n 2._o augustin_n in_o johan_n tractat_fw-la 88_o angelomus_n in_o 1._o regum_fw-la ca._n 1._o augusti_fw-la contrae_fw-la epistolam_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la cap._n 23._o de_fw-fr cons._n dis._n 2._o de_fw-fr hac_fw-la chrysostom_n in_o johan._n hom_n 47._o augustin_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_n li._n 3._o ca._n 16._o clemens_n alexdrin_n in_o paedagogo_fw-la lib._n 2._o ca._n 2._o augusti_fw-la contra_fw-la litter_n petilian_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 8._o athanasius_n de_fw-fr peccato_fw-la in_o spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la the_o
be_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o far_o he_o affirm_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o flesh_n itself_o appear_v which_o he_o say_v to_o be_v call_v svo_fw-la modo_fw-la in_o his_o manner_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o who_o shall_v say_v who_o truth_n notwithstanding_o if_o you_o behold_v on_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o exhibitinge_v in_o very_a deed_n it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o be_v in_o visible_a shape_n so_o as_o he_o speak_v of_o christ_n body_n that_o have_v suffer_v the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n here_o m._n hardinge_n allege_v good_a matter_n against_o himself_o for_o by_o these_o word_n s._n augustine_n say_v the_o bread_n be_v so_o christ_n body_n as_o the_o breakinge_v of_o the_o same_o bread_n be_v christ_n death_n but_o the_o break_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o real_o and_o in_o deed_n the_o death_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o real_o or_o in_o deed_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o where_o as_o m._n harding_n seem_v to_o stay_v altogether_o upon_o these_o two_o word_n coelestibus_fw-la panis_n thinkinge_v that_o thereby_o be_v mean_v only_o the_o supernatural_a bread_n of_o christ_n very_a body_n it_o may_v like_v he_o nevertheless_o to_o understande_v that_o not_o only_a christ_n very_a body_n but_o also_o the_o sacrament_n itself_o may_v well_o be_v call_v coelestibus_fw-la panis_n heavenly_a bread_n for_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o that_o heavenly_a bread_n 10_o so_o gregorius_n nyssenus_n call_v the_o water_n of_o baptism_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o divine_a or_o heavenly_a bath_n so_o s._n ambrose_n call_v the_o word_n of_o baptism_n verba_fw-la coelestia_fw-la heavenly_a word_n so_o dionysius_n call_v the_o oil_n consecrate_v divinissimum_fw-la oleum_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d so_o cyrillus_n call_v manna_n spiritual_a bread_n thus_o he_o say_v quomodo_fw-la est_fw-la manna_n panis_n angelorum_fw-la spiritualis_fw-la quia_fw-la quod_fw-la vmbra_fw-la veritatis_fw-la erat_fw-la veritatis_fw-la nomine_fw-la in_o spiritu_fw-la appellavit_fw-la how_o be_v manna_n call_v the_o spiritual_a bread_n of_o angel_n that_o thing_n that_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o spirit_n or_o spiritual_o he_o utter_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o truth_n itself_o and_o albeit_o only_o christ_n very_a body_n itself_o be_v in_o deed_n that_o heavenly_a bread_n yet_o in_o these_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n it_o can_v in_o any_o wise_a so_o be_v take_v as_o to_o the_o learned_a and_o discrete_a reader_n it_o may_v soon_o appear_v for_o first_o s._n augustine_n say_v that_o heavenly_a bread_n whereof_o he_o speak_v be_v a_o sacrament_n but_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n can_v in_o any_o respect_n be_v call_v a_o sacrament_n as_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o understande_v for_o a_o sacrament_n by_o s._n augustine_n definition_n be_v signum_fw-la visibile_fw-la a_o sign_n or_o a_o token_n that_o may_v be_v see_v but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o m._n hardinge_n imagine_v to_o be_v present_a can_v be_v see_v for_o s._n augustine_n say_v it_o be_v spiritual_a and_o invisible_a hereof_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n can_v in_o any_o wise_a be_v call_v a_o sacrament_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o that_o kind_n of_o heavenly_a bread_n that_o be_v here_o mention_v by_o s._n augustine_n moreover_o s._n augustine_n say_v the_o same_o heavenly_a bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n how_o be_v it_o he_o add_v not_o uery_o and_o in_o deed_n but_o svo_fw-la modo_fw-la in_o a_o manner_n or_o kind_a of_o speech_n but_o christ_n very_a body_n be_v in_o deed_n and_o uery_o in_o all_o respect_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n without_o any_o such_o qualifieinge_n or_o limitation_n and_o it_o be_v great_a fondenes_n or_o rather_o mere_a madness_n to_o say_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v after_o a_o certain_a manner_n or_o in_o a_o sort_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n these_o thing_n first_o consider_v for_o further_a understand_v of_o s._n augustine_n mind_n herein_o i_o remit_v the_o reader_n unto_o the_o gloze_v upon_o the_o same_o the_o word_n whereof_o be_v these_o glosa_n coelestibus_fw-la panis_n id_fw-la est_fw-la coeleste_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la quod_fw-la verè_fw-la repraesentat_fw-la carnem_fw-la christi_fw-la dicitur_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la sed_fw-la impropriè_fw-la vnde_fw-la dicitur_fw-la svo_fw-la modo_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la âei_fw-la veritate_fw-la sed_fw-la significante_fw-la mysterio_fw-la ut_fw-la sit_fw-la sensus_fw-la voco_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la significat_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la the_o heavenly_a bread_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o heavenly_a sacrament_n which_o very_o represent_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v christ_n body_n but_o unapte_o and_o unfit_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n belonginge_v unto_o itself_o not_o in_o truth_n of_o matter_n but_o by_o a_o signifieinge_n mystery_n that_o the_o sense_n may_v be_v this_o it_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o signify_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o here_o mark_v thou_o gentle_a reader_n into_o what_o straste_v these_o man_n be_v drive_v to_o maintain_v the_o inconvenience_n and_o absurdity_n of_o their_o doctrine_n they_o be_v fain_o to_o say_v that_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o rei_fw-la veritate_fw-la uery_o and_o in_o deed_n but_o impropriè_fw-fr unapt_o and_o unfit_o call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n m._n hardinge_n the_o .16_o division_n again_o ephel_n s._n augustine_n say_v in_o a_o other_o place_n non_fw-la hoc_fw-la corpus_fw-la quod_fw-la videtis_fw-la comesturi_fw-la estis_fw-la not_o this_o body_n which_o you_o see_v shall_v you_o eat_v division_n and_o s._n hierome_n say_v divinam_fw-la &_o spiritualem_fw-la carnem_fw-la manducandam_fw-la dari_fw-la aliam_fw-la quidem_fw-la ab_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la crucifixa_fw-la est_fw-la that_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a flesh_n be_v give_v to_o be_v eat_v other_o beside_o that_o which_o be_v crucify_a wherefore_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o exhibitinge_n the_o flesh_n be_v divide_v that_o in_o itself_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o flesh_n exhibit_v in_o mystery_n be_v in_o very_a deed_n a_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n visible_a and_o palpable_a which_o suffer_v on_o the_o crosse._n and_o thus_o it_o follow_v of_o convenience_n where_o as_o the_o flesh_n be_v not_o the_o same_o accord_v to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o exhibitinge_n which_o be_v crucify_a and_o which_o now_o be_v sacrifice_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o priest_n again_o where_o as_o the_o passion_n death_n and_o resurrection_n be_v say_v to_o be_v do_v not_o in_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o in_o mystery_n signifieinge_v it_o follow_v i_o say_v that_o the_o flesh_n be_v not_o the_o same_o in_o quality_n so_o as_o it_o be_v on_o the_o cross_n though_o it_o be_v the_o same_o in_o substance_n many_o mo_z authority_n may_v be_v allege_v for_o the_o open_v of_o this_o matter_n but_o these_o for_o this_o present_a be_v enough_o if_o they_o be_v not_o to_o many_o as_o i_o fear_v i_o they_o will_v so_o appear_v to_o the_o unlearned_a reader_n and_o to_o such_o as_o be_v not_o give_v to_o earnest_a study_n and_o diligent_a search_n of_o the_o truth_n by_o these_o place_n it_o be_v make_v clear_a and_o evident_a that_o these_o name_n figure_n image_n sign_n token_n sacrament_n and_o such_o other_o the_o like_a of_o force_n of_o their_o signification_n do_v not_o always_o exclude_v the_o truth_n of_o thing_n but_o do_v only_o show_v and_o note_v the_o manner_n of_o presence_n wherefore_o to_o conclude_v this_o maier_n that_o be_v somewhat_o obscure_a to_o sense_n little_o exercise_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n or_o sign_n of_o the_o body_n the_o image_n of_o the_o body_n do_v note_v the_o coovertnes_n and_o secretenes_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o exhibitinge_n and_o do_v not_o diminish_v any_o whit_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o presence_n so_o we_o do_v accord_n with_o m._n jewel_n in_o this_o article_n touchinge_v the_o form_n of_o word_n but_o withal_o we_o have_v think_v it_o necessary_a to_o declare_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o same_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacramentary_n the_o b._n of_o sarisburie_n m._n hardinge_n as_o in_o his_o word_n he_o pretend_v great_a store_n of_o authority_n so_o in_o his_o choice_n he_o bewray_v great_a want_n for_o to_o pass_v by_o the_o place_n of_o s._n hierome_n which_o be_v answer_v before_o in_o the_o fifthe_o article_n and_o .7_o division_n the_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n seem_v utter_o to_o overthrow_v all_o these_o his_o gross_a and_o fleashe_o fantasy_n for_o better_o understand_v whereof_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o when_o christ_n have_v open_v that_o heavenly_a doctrine_n of_o the_o eatinge_v of_o his_o body_n and_o drink_v of_o his_o